Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bishop_n diocesan_n diocese_n 2,722 5 11.0439 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27058 The true history of councils enlarged and defended against the deceits of a pretended vindicator of the primitive church, but indeed of the tympanite & tyranny of some prelates many hundred years after Christ, with a detection of the false history of Edward Lord Bishop of Corke and Rosse in Ireland ... and a preface abbreviating much of Ludolphus's History of Habassta : written to shew their dangerous errour, who think that a general council, or colledge of bishops, is a supream governour of all the Christian world ... / by Richard Baxter ... ; to which is added by another hand, a defence of a book, entituled, No evidence for diocesan churches ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1682 (1682) Wing B1438; ESTC R39511 217,503 278

There are 57 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

keep_v from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o communion_n for_o a_o crime_n till_o he_o profess_v repentance_n than_o to_o be_v hang_v or_o banish_v or_o ruin_v for_o it_o but_o especial_o the_o temptation_n be_v strong_a to_o the_o bishop_n who_o bait_n be_v the_o most_o allure_a and_o ever_o since_o then_o they_o that_o most_o love_a wealth_n power_n and_o honour_n that_o be_v the_o worst_a most_o worldly_a man_n have_v be_v the_o most_o eager_a desirer_n and_o seeker_n of_o bishopric_n and_o while_o humble_a holy_a man_n must_v rather_o be_v seek_v to_o such_o earnest_a seeker_n be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a finder_n and_o possessor_n 11._o but_o yet_o three_o thing_n keep_v up_o for_o some_o time_n a_o considerable_a number_n of_o godly_a bishop_n in_o the_o church_n which_o with_o the_o humble_a presbyter_n keep_v up_o the_o interest_n of_o sound_n and_o practical_a religion_n 1._o those_o that_o have_v be_v try_v worthy_a man_n before_o constantine_n conversion_n and_o the_o bishop_n exaltation_n keep_v their_o integrity_n in_o the_o main_a though_o in_o the_o nicene_n council_n their_o contentious_a libel_n show_v that_o we_o be_v more_o beholden_a to_o constantine_n than_o to_o they_o that_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o such_o strife_n as_o their_o successor_n do_v good_a man_n may_v be_v carry_v too_o far_o in_o pride_n and_o strife_n but_o they_o will_v not_o be_v master_v by_o they_o and_o turn_v against_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n 2._o the_o people_n and_o inferior_a clergy_n have_v the_o choice_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o so_o though_o they_o oft_o have_v tumult_n as_o in_o popular_a election_n it_o will_v be_v yet_o the_o worst_a ambitious_a man_n be_v long_o keep_v out_o and_o the_o best_a oft_o choose_v till_o the_o people_n and_o presbyter_n themselves_o be_v corrupt_v 3._o and_o divers_a good_a emperor_n arise_v that_o take_v some_o care_n to_o promote_v the_o best_a but_o alas_o this_o have_v sad_a and_o frequent_a interruption_n 12._o for_o the_o arian_n possess_v constantine_n himself_o with_o hard_a thought_n of_o athanasius_n and_o his_o adherent_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v that_o julian_n shall_v countenance_v the_o best_a when_o constantius_n and_o valeus_n have_v do_v so_o much_o against_o they_o and_o get_v most_o of_o all_o the_o church_n head_v by_o arian_n bishop_n to_o say_v nothing_o yet_o of_o after_o time_n 13._o but_o now_o two_o thing_n become_v matter_n of_o contention_n among_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n and_o increase_v the_o strife_n from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a be_v the_o old_a cause_n great_o strengthen_v viz._n who_o shall_v be_v great_a who_o shall_v have_v the_o large_a fat_a and_o most_o rule_v diocese_n and_o seat_n the_o other_o be_v who_o shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o most_o orthodox_n and_o who_o explication_n of_o the_o faith_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o sound_a especial_o about_o the_o description_n of_o the_o person_n and_o immanent_a act_n of_o christ_n or_o brief_o 1._o jurisdiction_n and_o greatness_n 2._o wisdom_n and_o hard_a word_n 14._o now_o also_o constantinople_n contend_v with_o rome_n and_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o church-preheminence_n they_o at_o first_o modest_o take_v the_o second_o place_n and_o now_o the_o trinity_n of_o patriarch_n be_v turn_v to_o five_o jerusalem_n be_v make_v the_o five_o at_o all_o this_o rome_n grudge_v 15._o all_o this_o while_n the_o old_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n be_v tolerable_o keep_v up_o 1._o because_o though_o much_o of_o the_o world_n have_v get_v into_o the_o church_n yet_o a_o very_a great_a part_n be_v tenacious_a of_o their_o heathenish_a custom_n and_o prejudice_v against_o christian_n by_o their_o contention_n odious_o describe_v by_o am._n marcellinus_n and_o many_o other_o and_o prejudice_v against_o constantine_n for_o his_o son_n crispus_n and_o sopaters_n death_n etc._n etc._n and_o against_o constantius_n for_o the_o murder_n of_o julian_n relation_n and_o be_v take_v with_o the_o plausible_a part_n of_o julian_n and_o with_o the_o great_a learning_n and_o high_o extol_v life_n of_o plotinus_n porphyrius_n jamblichus_n aedesius_n maximus_n proeresius_fw-la libanius_n chrysanthius_n and_o such_o other_o describe_v by_o eunapius_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o except_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n for_o 200_o year_n and_o some_o few_o of_o the_o very_a great_a church_n for_o 400_o the_o church_n be_v no_o great_a than_o one_o bishop_n and_o his_o consessus_fw-la may_v tolerable_o govern_v by_o the_o key_n 2._o and_o all_o this_o while_n all_o the_o presbyter_n be_v church-governor_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n though_o he_o be_v their_o chief_n and_o all_o excommunication_n be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o joint_a consent_n and_o so_o many_o church-governor_n may_v do_v more_o than_o one_o 16._o then_o council_n call_v general_n have_v by_o the_o emperor_n grant_v and_o the_o clergy_n desire_v and_o consent_n the_o supreme_a church-power_n it_o be_v in_o these_o council_n that_o the_o pride_n ambition_n and_o domination_n of_o all_o the_o worldly_a prelate_n that_o be_v too_o soon_o get_v in_o do_v exercise_v itself_o as_o the_o valour_n and_o wit_n of_o soldier_n in_o a_o field_n of_o war_n and_o as_o 1._o the_o good_a man_n yet_o among_o they_o 2._o and_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n yet_o retain_v by_o they_o do_v cause_v they_o to_o do_v much_o good_a against_o some_o heresy_n and_o disorder_n so_o the_o pride_n and_o turbulence_n yea_o ignorance_n of_o the_o rest_n cause_v they_o to_o become_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o doleful_a schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o enmity_n of_o christian_n against_o each_o other_o which_o continue_v to_o this_o day_n unhealed_a 17._o these_o hurtful_a contention_n in_o council_n at_o first_o prevail_v but_o little_a and_o that_o at_o nice_n do_v much_o more_o good_a i_o think_v than_o harm_n and_o after_o at_o constant_a a_o little_a more_o hurt_n be_v do_v and_o much_o good_a and_o those_o that_o follow_v do_v worse_a and_o worse_o till_o the_o proud_a worldly_a spirit_n contract_v malignity_n and_o so_o much_o prevail_v that_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o the_o bishop_n with_o their_o prelatical_a clergy_n and_o their_o council_n have_v be_v the_o grand_a corruption_n and_o plague_n of_o the_o church_n which_o many_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a expositor_n of_o the_o revelation_n take_v to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o dr._n h._n moor_n call_v it_o a_o heathenish_a christianity_n which_o they_o have_v make_v their_o religion_n 18._o in_o their_o progress_n to_o all_o this_o as_o the_o diocese_n first_o grow_v up_o from_o our_o parochial_a magnitude_n towards_o that_o of_o the_o present_a diocesan_n so_o the_o very_a pastoral_n power_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v by_o degree_n take_v away_o so_o far_o as_o that_o they_o have_v no_o consent_v power_n in_o ordination_n or_o excommunication_n unless_o the_o bishop_n will_v choose_v a_o few_o for_o his_o council_n so_o that_o the_o proper_a power_n of_o the_o king_n be_v be_v confine_v to_o one_o bishop_n over_o many_o hundred_o parish_n and_o so_o discipline_n become_v a_o impossible_a thing_n save_v as_o it_o serve_v the_o bishop_n against_o some_o that_o they_o dislike_v and_o so_o the_o church_n which_o be_v as_o the_o garden_n of_o christ_n become_v like_o the_o commons_o and_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v little_o difference_v in_o communion_n 19_o yet_o because_o the_o power_n must_v still_o be_v useful_a to_o the_o bishop_n end_n as_o he_o see_v cause_n some_o shadow_n of_o the_o old_a exercise_n must_v be_v keep_v up_o but_o the_o bishop_n have_v not_o leisure_n for_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o labour_n which_o this_o very_a shadow_n require_v layman_n be_v make_v his_o chancellor_n to_o decree_v excommunication_n and_o absolution_n and_o to_o govern_v by_o the_o church_n key_n like_o a_o secular_a court_n and_o commissary_n official_o surrogate_v and_o other_o hard_a name_n and_o thing_n be_v set_v up_o instead_o of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o their_o ancient_n office_n 20._o by_o this_o time_n the_o ancient_a species_n of_o the_o church_n be_v alter_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v long_o hold_v that_o a_o church_n and_o bishop_n be_v correlate_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o church_n than_o bishop_n now_o many_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o parish_n be_v become_v no_o church_n but_o part_n of_o one_o diocesan_n church_n which_o be_v the_o low_a and_o many_o score_n or_o hundred_o of_o the_o old_a sort_n of_o bishop_n all_o cast_v out_o and_o swallow_v up_o by_o one_o just_o as_o if_o a_o thousand_o or_o some_o hundred_o school_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o govern_v schoolmaster_n and_o be_v but_o one_o school_n but_o each_o part_n have_v a_o usher_n to_o read_v to_o the_o boy_n
just_a year_n little_a care_n i._n §_o 16._o i_o praise_v a_o donatist_n council_n of_o 270_o bishop_n at_o carthage_n for_o moderation_n agree_v to_o communicate_v with_o penitent_a traditor_n without_o rebaptise_v they_o and_o so_o do_v for_o 40_o year_n q._n what_o be_v these_o man_n heresy_n he_o say_v this_o look_v like_a a_o piece_n of_o policy_n than_o moderation_n for_o it_o have_v no_o tendency_n to_o peace_n but_o to_o strengthen_v the_o schism_n ans_fw-fr who_o know_v how_o to_o please_v man_n when_o they_o exclaim_v against_o separation_n if_o man_n communicate_v with_o they_o they_o judge_v it_o but_o policy_n that_o have_v no_o tendency_n to_o peace_n 2._o and_o who_o be_v it_o now_o that_o most_o rail_v at_o bishop_n i_o be_o confute_v for_o praise_v the_o moderation_n of_o 270_o of_o they_o and_o he_o be_v their_o censurer_n even_o when_o they_o do_v well_o and_o their_o moderation_n with_o he_o be_v but_o policy_n even_o as_o they_o say_v of_o i_o that_o i_o constant_o communicate_v with_o their_o parish_n church_n to_o undermine_v they_o near_o or_o far_o off_o all_o be_v one_o with_o this_o sort_n of_o man_n if_o you_o stick_v at_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o bid_v you_o say_v or_o do_v but_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o this_o council_n of_o orthodox_n moderate_a donatist_n be_v so_o many_o as_o 270._o because_o 1._o we_o have_v only_o the_o authority_n for_o it_o of_o tychonius_n a_o donatist_n 2._o it_o be_v improbable_a after_o constantine_n suppression_n of_o they_o that_o schism_n shall_v so_o sudden_o spread_v 3._o lest_o it_o shall_v prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v too_o small_a yet_o he_o say_v these_o schismatic_n set_v up_o church_n in_o every_o city_n and_o village_n ans_fw-fr 1._o it_o be_v say_v tychonius_n confess_v this_o council_n because_o the_o late_a donatist_n will_v fain_o have_v bury_v the_o memory_n of_o it_o but_o that_o it_o depend_v only_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o tychonius_n i_o think_v depend_v only_o on_o your_o credit_n 2._o augustine_n that_o report_v it_o honour_v this_o tychonius_n and_o recite_v a_o exposition_n of_o he_o of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n rev._n 2._o and_o 3._o which_o i_o suppose_v displease_v you_o more_o than_o his_o donatism_n 3._o it_o seem_v you_o will_v have_v believe_v some_o stranger_n that_o know_v it_o not_o rather_o than_o a_o donatist_n that_o speak_v against_o the_o will_n and_o interest_n of_o his_o party_n 4._o it_o rather_o seem_v that_o the_o donatist_n be_v the_o great_a number_n of_o christian_n there_o before_o constantine_n time_n and_o like_o the_o papist_n therefore_o count_v themselves_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o other_o the_o schismatic_n constantine_n prohibition_n do_v not_o suppress_v they_o 5._o therefore_o the_o numerousness_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o smallness_n of_o church_n rather_o show_v what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n before_o worldly_a greatness_n swell_v they_o to_o that_o disease_n which_o be_v the_o embryo_n or_o infancy_n of_o popery_n §_o 17._o whether_o the_o donatist_n be_v like_o the_o papist_n or_o the_o separatist_n much_o less_o to_o the_o nonconformist_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v but_o peruse_v what_o i_o have_v say_v and_o what_o mr._n m._n have_v say_v i_o be_o content_a that_o he_o judge_v without_o more_o word_n §_o 18._o he_o pass_v by_o divers_a council_n because_o he_o can_v not_o say_v that_o i_o blame_v they_o and_o he_o pass_v by_o constantine_n epistle_n to_o alexander_n and_o arius_n which_o rail_v at_o they_o more_o than_o i_o do_v in_o his_o sense_n as_o to_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n it_o be_v not_o two_o or_o three_o such_o word_n as_o his_o that_o will_v make_v a_o impartial_a man_n believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v like_o our_o diocese_n when_o every_o convert_n before_o baptism_n be_v to_o say_v his_o catechism_n to_o the_o bishop_n or_o his_o presbyter_n or_o that_o the_o command_v that_o presbyter_n go_v still_o with_o the_o bishop_n into_o the_o church_n and_o not_o before_o he_o do_v not_o both_o imply_v that_o they_o be_v both_o together_o in_o every_o church_n but_o he_o will_v have_v it_o confine_v to_o the_o cathedral_n and_o when_o i_o say_v there_o be_v long_o no_o church_n but_o cathedral_n he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o differ_v with_o i_o whether_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v church_n or_o chapel_n but_o the_o difference_n be_v de_fw-fr re_fw-mi they_o say_v themselves_o that_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o church_n be_v then_o relative_n and_o when_o they_o have_v put_v down_o many_o hundred_o church_n under_o the_o diocesan_n forsooth_o they_o will_v gratify_v we_o by_o give_v we_o leave_n to_o call_v they_o church_n as_o if_o they_o put_v down_o a_o hundred_o to_o one_o of_o the_o city_n and_o corporation_n and_o then_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o call_v they_o corporation_n when_o they_o be_v none_o yet_o blush_v they_o not_o to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v that_o episcopal_a party_n who_o put_v down_o a_o thousand_o church_n and_o bishop_n in_o some_o one_o diocese_n and_o i_o be_o against_o bishop_n yea_o when_o they_o have_v not_o the_o front_n to_o deny_v but_o that_o every_o city_n than_o have_v a_o bishop_n that_o have_v christian_n and_o that_o our_o corporation_n be_v such_o as_o they_o call_v city_n yet_o when_o we_o plead_v but_o at_o least_o if_o they_o will_v have_v no_o chorepiscopi_fw-la they_o will_v restore_v a_o church_n and_o bishop_n with_o his_o presbyter_n to_o every_o such_o city_n with_o its_o adjacent_a village_n hatred_n scorn_n and_o derision_n go_v for_o a_o confutation_n of_o we_o though_o we_o do_v it_o but_o to_o make_v true_a discipline_n a_o possible_a thing_n which_o they_o call_v issachar_n burden_n and_o abhor_v it_o and_o then_o say_v it_o be_v possible_a and_o practise_v §_o 19_o as_o to_o the_o roman_a council_n which_o he_o believe_v not_o he_o may_v perceive_v that_o i_o believe_v at_o least_o their_o antiquity_n as_o little_a as_o he_o but_o the_o canon_n be_v so_o like_o those_o of_o follow_v council_n that_o such_o it_o be_v like_a be_v sometime_o make_v and_o whereas_o i_o note_v that_o their_o condemn_v they_o that_o wrong_v time_v easter_n will_v fall_v on_o the_o subscriber_n to_o our_o english_a liturgy_n where_o 2000_o be_v silence_v for_o not_o subscribe_v the_o man_n have_v no_o better_a answer_n to_o give_v than_o these_o 1._o that_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o almanac-makers_n as_o if_o he_o will_v have_v have_v man_n believe_v that_o falsehood_n that_o it_o be_v the_o almanac_n maker_n and_o not_o our_o liturgy_n changer_n that_o be_v deceive_v 2._o alas_o one_o year_n they_o mistake_v as_o if_o he_o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o their_o rule_n fail_v but_o one_o year_n which_o fail_v oft_o 3._o the_o silence_v minister_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o thank_v he_o or_o any_o body_n else_o that_o give_v this_o reason_n of_o their_o separation_n it_o be_v strange_a this_o shall_v trouble_v their_o conscience_n that_o care_v no_o more_o for_o easter_n than_o for_o christmas_n but_o only_o that_o it_o fall_v upon_o a_o sunday_n here_o see_v his_o historical_a credibility_n 1._o will_v he_o persuade_v man_n that_o we_o give_v this_o reason_n alone_o or_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v one_o with_o twenty_o more_o 2._o he_o intimate_v that_o i_o give_v they_o as_o reason_n of_o separation_n as_o if_o to_o be_v silence_v be_v to_o separate_v and_o to_o be_v passive_a be_v to_o be_v active_a 3._o he_o intimate_v that_o as_o nonsubscriber_n i_o and_o such_o other_o be_v separatist_n which_o be_v false_a while_o we_o live_v in_o their_o communion_n 4._o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o know_v our_o judgement_n as_o against_o easter_n but_o for_o sunday_n when_o we_o never_o tell_v he_o any_o such_o thing_n 5._o he_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v no_o credit_n to_o we_o that_o we_o make_v conscience_n of_o deliberate_a profess_v assent_n to_o a_o know_a untruth_n in_o open_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o if_o the_o contrary_a be_v their_o credit_n i_o wish_v they_o may_v never_o be_v witness_n against_o we_o 6._o he_o intimate_v that_o a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o for_o keep_v easter_n be_v the_o less_o excusable_a if_o he_o will_v not_o profess_v a_o know_a falsehood_n about_o the_o time_n of_o easter_n if_o conscience_n stand_v a_o man_n in_o no_o stead_n for_o great_a end_n than_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o ease_n and_o honour_n who_o will_v not_o be_v a_o latitudinarian_a conformist_n §_o 20._o next_o when_o i_o deny_v belief_n to_o these_o council_n he_o blame_v i_o for_o make_v advantage_n of_o the_o history_n of_o they_o as_o if_o he_o see_v not_o that_o i_o do_v it_o but_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o the_o papist_n who_o record_n they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v real_o true_a for_o it_o
the_o true_a history_n of_o council_n enlarge_v and_o defend_v against_o the_o deceit_n of_o a_o pretend_a vindicator_n of_o the_o primitive-church_n but_o indeed_o of_o the_o tympanite_n &_o tyranny_n of_o some_o prelate_n many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n with_o a_o detection_n of_o the_o false_a history_n of_o edward_n lord_n bishop_n of_o cork_n and_o rosse_n in_o ireland_n and_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o the_o way_n by_o which_o this_o generation_n confute_v their_o adversary_n in_o several_a instance_n and_o a_o preface_n abbreviate_a much_o of_o ludolphus_n history_n of_o habassia_n write_a to_o show_v their_o dangerous_a error_n who_o think_v that_o a_o general_a council_n or_o college_n of_o bishop_n be_v a_o supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n with_o power_n of_o universal_a legislation_n judgement_n and_o execution_n and_o that_o christ_n law_n without_o their_o universal_a law_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n unity_n and_o concord_n by_o richard_n baxter_n a_o lover_n of_o truth_n love_n and_o peace_n and_o a_o hater_n of_o lie_v malignity_n and_o persecution_n to_o which_o be_v add_v by_o another_o hand_n a_o defence_n of_o a_o book_n entitle_v no_o evidence_n for_o diocesan_n church_n wherein_o what_o be_v further_o produce_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a author_n for_o diocesan_n church_n be_v discuss_v london_n print_v for_o tho._n parkhurst_n at_o the_o bible_n and_o three_o crown_n at_o the_o low_a end_n of_o cheapside_n near_o mercer_n chapel_n 1682._o to_o the_o pious_a and_o peaceable_a protestant-conforming_a minister_n who_o be_v against_o our_o subjection_n to_o a_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n the_o notice_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o book_n with_o a_o breviate_v of_o ludolphus_n habassian_a history_n reverend_n brethren_n when_o after_o the_o effect_n of_o our_o calamitous_a division_n the_o rejoice_v nation_n suppose_v they_o have_v be_v unite_v in_o our_o king_n new_o restore_v by_o a_o general_n and_o army_n which_o have_v be_v fight_v against_o he_o invite_v &_o strengthen_v by_o the_o city_n &_o many_o other_o &_o a_o act_n of_o oblivion_n seem_v to_o have_v prepare_v for_o future_a amity_n some_o little_a thought_n that_o man_n be_v about_o go_v further_o from_o each_o other_o than_o they_o be_v before_o but_o the_o malady_n be_v evident_a to_o such_o of_o we_o as_o be_v call_v to_o attempt_v a_o cure_n and_o neither_o the_o cause_n nor_o the_o prognostic_n hard_a to_o be_v know_v a_o certain_a and_o cheap_a remedy_n be_v obvious_a but_o no_o plea_n no_o petition_n can_v get_v man_n to_o accept_v it_o the_o symptom_n than_o threaten_v far_o worse_o than_o yet_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v god_n be_v more_o merciful_a to_o we_o than_o mistake_v man_n we_o be_v then_o judge_v criminal_a for_o foresee_v and_o foretell_v what_o fruit_n the_o seed_n then_o sow_v will_v bring_v forth_o and_o since_o then_o the_o sower_n say_v the_o foreteller_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o we_o quick_o see_v that_o instead_o of_o hope_v for_o any_o concord_n and_o heal_v of_o the_o bone_n which_o then_o be_v break_v it_o will_v become_v our_o care_n and_o too_o hard_a work_n to_o endeavour_v to_o prevent_v a_o great_a breach_n though_o we_o think_v two_o thousand_o such_o minister_n as_o be_v silence_v will_v be_v miss_v when_o other_o think_v it_o a_o blessing_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o we_o then_o fear_v and_o some_o hope_v that_o no_o small_a number_n more_o will_v follow_v they_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o cast_v such_o out_o nor_o be_v it_o you_o that_o wish_v the_o continuance_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o cause_n we_o agree_v with_o you_o in_o all_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a reform_a religion_n and_o concern_v the_o evil_a of_o all_o the_o sin_n which_o we_o fear_v by_o conform_v to_o commit_v though_o we_o agree_v not_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o oath_n promise_n profession_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n fear_v we_o live_v in_o unfeigned_a love_n and_o communion_n with_o those_o that_o love_n truth_n holiness_n and_o peace_n notwithstanding_o such_o difference_n as_o these_o god_n have_v not_o lay_v our_o salvation_n or_o communion_n upon_o our_o agree_v about_o the_o meaning_n of_o every_o word_n or_o sentence_n in_o the_o bible_n much_o less_o on_o our_o agree_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o every_o word_n in_o all_o the_o law_n and_o canon_n of_o man_n two_o thing_n we_o earnest_o request_v of_o you_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n this_o tremble_a nation_n and_o your_o own_o and_o other_o soul_n 1._o that_o you_o will_v in_o your_o parish_n relation_n serious_o use_v your_o best_a endeavour_n to_o promote_v true_a godliness_n and_o brotherly_a love_n and_o to_o heal_v the_o sad_a division_n of_o the_o church_n we_o believe_v that_o it_o must_v be_v much_o by_o the_o parochial_a minister_n and_o assembly_n that_o piety_n and_o protestant_n verity_n must_v be_v keep_v up_o and_o what_o we_o may_v not_o do_v we_o pray_v that_o you_o may_v do_v it_o who_o be_v allow_v 2._o that_o you_o will_v join_v with_o we_o against_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a the_o party_n which_o we_o dread_v i_o have_v give_v you_o some_o account_n of_o in_o my_o reply_n to_o mr._n dodwell_n by_o their_o fruit_n you_o may_v know_v they_o 1._o they_o be_v such_o as_o labour_v to_o make_v our_o breach_n wide_a by_o render_v those_o that_o they_o dissent_v from_o odious_a which_o common_o be_v by_o false_a accusation_n they_o call_v out_o for_o execution_n by_o the_o sword_n against_o those_o that_o dare_v not_o do_v as_o they_o do_v and_o cry_v go_v on_o abate_v nothing_o they_o be_v factious_a schismatic_n rebellious_a they_o may_v easy_o have_v learn_v this_o language_n without_o stay_v long_o in_o the_o university_n and_o without_o all_o the_o brimstone_n book_n that_o teach_v it_o they_o a_o invisible_a tutor_n can_v soon_o teach_v it_o they_o without_o book_n he_o that_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o have_v not_o eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o 2._o they_o be_v for_o a_o universal_a humane_a government_n with_o power_n of_o legislation_n and_o judgement_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_n world_n how_o to_o call_v it_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v whether_o aristocratical_a or_o monarchical_a or_o mix_v some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o collegium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la govern_v per_fw-la literas_fw-la formatas_fw-la for_o fear_n lest_o if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v in_o council_n they_o shall_v present_o be_v confute_v by_o the_o copious_a evidence_n which_o we_o produce_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o may_v well_o think_v that_o man_n will_v ask_v they_o when_o do_v all_o the_o bishop_n on_o earth_n make_v law_n for_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o pass_v sentence_n on_o offender_n without_o ever_o meet_v together_o and_o how_o come_v they_o to_o know_v each_o other_o mind_n and_o which_o way_n the_o major_a vote_n go_v and_o what_o and_o where_o be_v those_o law_n which_o we_o must_v all_o be_v govern_v by_o which_o neither_o god_n nor_o council_n make_v the_o canon_n be_v all_o make_v by_o council_n if_o you_o say_v that_o i_o describe_v man_n so_o mad_a as_o that_o i_o must_v be_v think_v to_o wrong_v they_o i_o now_o only_o ask_v you_o whether_o our_o case_n be_v not_o dismal_a when_o such_o man_n as_o you_o call_v mad_a have_v power_n to_o bring_v we_o and_o keep_v we_o in_o our_o `_o division_n or_o to_o do_v much_o towards_o it_o without_o much_o contradiction_n but_o other_o who_o know_v that_o such_o palpable_a darkness_n will_v not_o serve_v their_o cause_n do_v open_o say_v that_o it_o be_v general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o legislative_a and_o judge_a governor_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n as_o one_o political_a body_n for_o they_o know_v that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o law_n beside_o god_n and_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o the_o world_n but_o when_o the_o case_n open_v by_o i_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o key_n for_o catholic_n and_o else_o where_o do_v silence_n they_o this_o fort_n also_o be_v desert_v by_o they_o even_o albert._n pighius_fw-la have_v render_v it_o ridiculous_a 1._o if_o this_o be_v the_o specify_v or_o unify_v head_n or_o summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la of_o the_o universal_a church_n than_o it_o be_v not_o monarchical_a but_o aristocratical_a 2._o then_o the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n when_o for_o hundred_o of_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_n council_n a_o essential_a part_n be_v want_v and_o they_o that_o own_o but_o the_o 4_o or_o 6_o first_o general_n council_n make_v the_o church_n no_o church_n or_o to_o have_v be_v without_o its_o essentiate_a government_n these_o thousand_o year_n and_o by_o what_o proof_n beside_o their_o incredible_a word_n
discern_v and_o value_v that_o knowledge_n in_o another_o which_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o himself_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o young_a unexperienced_a man_n do_v common_o receive_v that_o man_n opinion_n 1._o who_o have_v by_o nearness_n or_o some_o accident_n the_o great_a advantage_n in_o their_o esteem_n and_o love_n 2._o or_o he_o that_o speak_v most_o for_o their_o fleshly_a interest_n and_o for_o that_o which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v true_a 3._o or_o he_o that_o have_v the_o last_o word_n it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o they_o judge_v of_o any_o thing_n beyond_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o the_o notitiae_fw-la commune_v according_a to_o evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o must_v be_v receive_v by_o long_a and_o serious_a study_n and_o by_o willing_a honest_a mind_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o antecedent_n verity_n §_o 5._o in_o this_o therefore_o divine_a free_a election_n be_v very_o manifest_a as_o in_o give_v the_o gospel_n to_o some_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n when_o most_o other_o never_o have_v it_o so_o in_o give_v some_o young_a person_n the_o blessing_n of_o good_a education_n and_o teacher_n and_o choose_v for_o they_o that_o be_v unable_a to_o choose_v well_o for_o themselves_o as_o also_o in_o blessing_n the_o same_o help_n to_o one_o which_o be_v despise_v by_o another_o and_o very_o when_o i_o have_v be_v long_o stall_v with_o the_o difficulty_n about_o election_n and_o difference_v grace_n undeniable_a experience_n have_v be_v my_o chief_a conviction_n if_o the_o gospel_n be_v true_a the_o common_a worldly_a fleshly_a sort_n that_o be_v for_o christ_n but_o by_o tradition_n law_n and_o custom_n and_o be_v religious_a for_o worldly_a end_n and_o no_o far_a than_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o world_n will_v give_v they_o leave_v have_v no_o true_a save_v grace_n at_o all_o and_o the_o rest_n that_o serious_o believe_v and_o seek_v a_o better_a life_n and_o live_v above_o fleshly_a worldly_a interest_n be_v in_o most_o place_n few_o and_o make_v the_o scorn_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o if_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la god_n do_v sanctify_v only_o a_o peculiar_a people_n who_o can_v deny_v his_o difference_v will_n and_o grace_n §_o 6._o i_o be_v myself_o in_o my_o childhood_n ignorant_a what_o teacher_n among_o such_o diversity_n i_o shall_v prefer_v and_o first_o god_n have_v such_o a_o witness_n in_o my_o conscience_n that_o virtue_n and_o holiness_n be_v better_a than_o vice_n and_o sin_n that_o it_o make_v i_o think_v that_o the_o sort_n of_o teacher_n who_o trade_v mere_o for_o the_o world_n and_o never_o speak_v a_o serious_a word_n of_o heaven_n nor_o differ_v from_o sober_a heathen_n but_o in_o opinion_n yea_o that_o endeavour_v to_o make_v serious_a godliness_n to_o seem_v but_o hypocrisy_n be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v the_o wise_a and_o most_o trusty_a man_n and_o yet_o how_o to_o judge_v among_o the_o serious_a which_o be_v right_a be_v long_o too_o hard_o for_o i_o §_o 7._o when_o i_o come_v to_o consider_v of_o the_o division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o ●eard_v the_o papist_n pretend_v to_o catholicism_n and_o call_v all_o other_o schismarick_n or_o heretic_n it_o sometime_o seem_v a_o plausible_a opinion_n that_o the_o great_a power_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n by_o riches_n honour_n and_o power_n they_o may_v protect_v the_o godly_a and_o keep_v religion_n from_o contempt_n among_o the_o worldly_a sort_n of_o man_n or_o from_o oppression_n at_o the_o least_o 2._o and_o i_o see_v that_o in_o all_o age_n and_o country_n of_o the_o world_n historian_n tell_v we_o how_o rare_a a_o thing_n a_o wise_a and_o holy_a prince_n have_v be_v and_o how_o common_o by_o wealth_n and_o greatness_n they_o have_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o that_o sensuality_n and_o pride_n which_o have_v make_v they_o the_o capital_a enemy_n to_o serious_a piety_n if_o not_o the_o persecutor_n of_o it_o 3._o i_o think_v with_o myself_o if_o such_o godly_a christian_n as_o much_o value_n the_o interest_n of_o religion_n have_v live_v in_o such_o time_n and_o place_n where_o ruler_n be_v persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n how_o glad_a will_v they_o have_v be_v to_o have_v have_v the_o power_n of_o church-matter_n put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o choose_a pastor_n what_o will_v they_o have_v desire_v more_o 4._o and_o i_o read_v that_o till_o riches_n and_o honour_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o office_n the_o people_n have_v still_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o own_o pastor_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o wish_v their_o estate_n and_o life_n and_o all_o as_o well_o as_o their_o religion_n to_o be_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o so_o no_o doubt_n when_o the_o bishop_n be_v advance_v to_o great_a diocese_n and_o power_n it_o be_v by_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a christian_n who_o value_v most_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o and_o i_o can_v not_o but_o observe_v that_o though_o christ_n give_v his_o apostle_n no_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n he_o set_v they_o above_o other_o minister_n not_o only_o in_o miraculous_a gift_n and_o infallible_a testify_a and_o record_v his_o command_n and_o work_n but_o in_o some_o sort_n of_o oversight_n which_o seem_v a_o thing_n appoint_v for_o continuance_n as_o well_o as_o preach_v 6._o and_o i_o think_v that_o if_o church-grandure_a be_v the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o unity_n the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n it_o look_v very_o plausible_o to_o reason_n that_o as_o bishop_n be_v over_o presbyter_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o over_o bishop_n and_o that_o national_a church_n shall_v by_o such_o government_n be_v hinder_v from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n as_o well_o as_o parochial_a and_o that_o diocesan_n and_o metropolitan_o power_n shall_v be_v derive_v from_o a_o superior_a as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n and_o that_o when_o poor_a subject_n dare_v not_o reprove_v a_o prince_n some_o that_o be_v above_o fear_v his_o power_n may_v 7._o and_o when_o i_o read_v the_o pope_n claim_n i_o think_v it_o seem_v not_o improbable_a that_o petrus_n primus_fw-la and_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la and_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la be_v not_o speak_v in_o vain_a and_o these_o thought_n plead_v thus_o for_o church-grandeur_n in_o prelate_n and_o pope_n §_o 8._o on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o see_v 1._o that_o christ_n say_v his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o come_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o observable_a pomp._n and_o that_o when_o they_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a he_o reprove_v they_o and_o conclude_v with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o that_o the_o most_o serviceable_a be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o great_a that_o peter_n himself_o according_o describe_v their_o office_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 2._o i_o find_v that_o christ_n appoint_v they_o another_o sort_n of_o work_n to_o do_v even_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o nation_n through_o all_o straits_n difficulty_n and_o suffering_n and_o to_o baptize_v and_o teach_v christian_n to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o as_o he_o never_o put_v the_o sword_n into_o their_o hand_n so_o a_o official_a declare_v and_o apply_v his_o word_n to_o voluntary_a disciple_n be_v all_o their_o office_n as_o ordinary_a pastor_n to_o be_v continue_v 3._o i_o find_v that_o christ_n send_v they_o out_o by_o two_o and_o two_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v do_v on_o foresight_n that_o man_n will_v erect_v a_o church-monarchy_n and_o that_o no_o scripture_n tell_v we_o of_o any_o division_n of_o the_o church_n into_o diocese_n where_o over_o apostle_n be_v a_o monarch_n or_o have_v power_n above_o the_o rest_n or_o be_v his_o peculiar_a province_n nor_o that_o the_o twelve_o settle_v twelve_o such_o or_o any_o as_o the_o seat_n of_o their_o successor_n 4._o i_o find_v not_o that_o ever_o any_o one_o apostle_n exercise_v government_n over_o the_o rest_n nor_o that_o ever_o christ_n give_v the_o rest_n any_o command_n or_o direction_n to_o obey_v any_o one_o nor_o that_o ever_o the_o contend_v or_o schismatical_a sort_n of_o christian_n be_v direct_v to_o end_v their_o strife_n by_o take_v any_o one_o for_o the_o head_n who_o must_v determine_v all_o their_o controversy_n and_o that_o they_o that_o say_v i_o be_o of_o cephas_n be_v reprove_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o all_o be_v call_v member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o only_a christ_n the_o head_n and_o if_o it_o have_v be_v his_o will_n that_o one_o universal_a head_n or_o power_n shall_v have_v be_v set_v up_o as_o the_o principium_fw-la or_o centre_n of_o unity_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o christ_n will_v not_o have_v plain_o
and_o tell_v the_o one_o schoolmaster_n as_o a_o monitor_n what_o they_o do_v amiss_o but_o may_v correct_v none_o nor_o put_v they_o out_o 21._o by_o this_o time_n they_o begin_v to_o live_v on_o blood_n and_o even_o as_o they_o swell_v in_o the_o beginning_n cruelty_n grow_v up_o equal_o with_o pride_n for_o reason_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n nor_o will_v justify_v their_o cause_n and_o they_o and_o therefore_o violence_n must_v do_v it_o they_o desire_v not_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o power_n but_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o to_o promote_v the_o issue_n of_o their_o wit_n and_o will._n they_o begin_v with_o rash_a silence_v eject_v and_o depose_v dissenter_n and_o thence_o to_o anathematise_v they_o and_o thence_o to_o banish_v till_o at_o last_o it_o grow_v up_o to_o torment_v in_o the_o inquisition_n and_o burn_v they_o 22._o and_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o the_o petty_a heresy_n among_o christian_n too_o early_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o ancient_a persecute_a christian_n be_v their_o entire_a love_n and_o concord_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v their_o discord_n it_o come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o whereas_o a_o heresy_n of_o old_a do_v start_v up_o among_o a_o few_o for_o a_o small_a time_n like_o our_o ranter_n and_o quaker_n who_o shame_n religion_n no_o more_o than_o bedlam_n shame_v reason_n now_o the_o great_a continent_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o million_o of_o those_o call_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n by_o each_o other_o about_o 1400_o or_o 1300_o year_n eusebius_n in_o praepar_n &_o demonstr_n copious_o show_v that_o the_o philosopher_n be_v all_o confound_v in_o dissension_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o persecute_v each_o other_o but_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n cleave_v to_o one_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n of_o which_o also_o see_v raym._n breganium_n in_o theol._n gent._n the_o cogn_n dei_fw-la enar._n 5._o cap._n 8._o to_o be_v lover_n of_o good_a man_n be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o old_a bishop_n to_o be_v divider_n and_o hater_n and_o slanderer_n and_o silencer_n and_o persecutor_n and_o murderer_n of_o they_o grow_v up_o with_o corrupter_n pride_n 23._o and_o with_o these_o do_v gradual_o grow_v up_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n even_o while_o they_o pretend_v a_o burn_a zeal_n against_o heresy_n and_o corruption_n of_o god_n public_a worship_n till_o it_o grow_v up_o to_o all_o the_o mass_n and_o roman_a impurity_n 24._o and_o to_o secure_v all_o this_o against_o reformation_n ridiculous_a legend_n and_o falsification_n of_o church-history_n make_v it_o hard_o for_o posterity_n what_o to_o believe_v or_o who_o §_o 15._o be_v thus_o far_o sure_a of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n by_o what_o degree_n prelacy_n grow_v up_o to_o the_o height_n that_o it_o have_v now_o attain_v in_o the_o world_n abroad_o i_o consider_v what_o man_n think_v of_o it_o now_o at_o home_n i_o be_o speak_v yet_o but_o of_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o i_o find_v great_a diversity_n in_o man_n thought_n of_o it_o 1._o as_o to_o the_o roman_a height_n i_o find_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o the_o reformation_n till_o a._n b._n laud'_v time_n take_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o antichrist_n it_o be_v in_o their_o church-book_n many_o other_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n downam_n have_v write_v for_o it_o what_o bishop_n morton_n and_o hall_n and_o abbot_n and_o abundance_n such_o have_v write_v against_o popery_n i_o need_v not_o name_n 2._o i_o find_v that_o then_o the_o stream_n begin_v to_o turn_v and_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n be_v put_v out_o and_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o rome_n be_v take_v to_o be_v a_o hopeful_a work_n and_o actual_o endeavour_v which_o by_o their_o conversion_n all_o good_a man_n desire_v 3._o i_o find_v that_o many_o among_o we_o of_o great_a reverence_n and_o name_n have_v lay_v down_o such_o term_n as_o these_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v one_o visible_a society_n under_o one_o humane_a govern_v sovereignty_n that_o this_o universal_a sovereign_n have_v power_n of_o universal_a legislation_n and_o judgement_n that_o the_o college_n of_o bishop_n through_o all_o the_o world_n be_v this_o one_o supreme_a universal_a sovereign_n that_o they_o exercise_v it_o in_o general_a council_n when_o they_o sit_v that_o every_o bishop_n be_v by_o office_n the_o representative_a of_o his_o diocesan_n church_n and_o these_o bishop_n may_v or_o must_v have_v metropolitan_n and_o patriarch_n and_o by_o these_o patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_o per_fw-la literas_fw-la formatas_fw-la and_o their_o nuntii_fw-la the_o universal_a supreme_a college_n may_v exercise_v their_o power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o what_o they_o do_v thus_o the_o church_n or_o college_n do_v in_o the_o interval_n of_o general_a council_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la to_o this_o universal_a church_n and_o college_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o ordinary_a precedent_n of_o general_n council_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la that_o council_n call_v without_o the_o precedent_n who_o have_v the_o sole_a power_n be_v unlawful_a assembly_n and_o punishable_a rout_n that_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o precedent_n if_o not_o of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v the_o note_n by_o which_o a_o authorise_a oblige_a council_n be_v to_o be_v know_v from_o other_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v according_o as_o prime_a patriarch_n principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la precedent_n of_o general_n council_n and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n that_o all_o that_o will_v not_o unite_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o these_o term_n be_v schismatic_n and_o so_o to_o be_v account_v and_o use_v that_o those_o that_o thus_o unite_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o papist_n but_o a_o papist_n be_v only_a one_o that_o hold_v all_o to_o be_v just_a and_o good_a that_o be_v do_v by_o pope_n or_o at_o least_o one_o that_o be_v for_o the_o pope_n absolute_a power_n of_o govern_v above_o canon-law_n and_o church-parliament_n or_o council_n and_o that_o if_o they_o will_v but_o abate_v their_o last_o 400_o year_n innovation_n or_o at_o least_o not_o impose_v they_o on_o other_o we_o may_v unite_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o claim_v as_o peter_n successor_n the_o universal_a supremacy_n at_o least_o to_o be_v exercise_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o at_o present_a we_o may_v not_o unite_v with_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o have_v have_v a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n and_o its_o sacrament_n true_a sacrament_n but_o none_o of_o those_o protestant_a church_n be_v true_a church_n that_o have_v not_o diocesan_n bishop_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o pastor_n true_a minister_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v not_o diocesan_n episcopal_n ordination_n nor_o any_o that_o have_v such_o unless_o it_o have_v as_o such_o be_v convey_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n by_o uninterrupted_a succession_n by_o such_o diocesan_n that_o such_o man_n have_v no_o true_a sacrament_n god_n not_o own_v what_o be_v do_v by_o any_o not_o so_o ordain_v that_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o covenant-promise_n of_o or_o right_a to_o pardon_n and_o salvation_n because_o such_o right_n be_v give_v only_o by_o the_o sacrament_n that_o therefore_o all_o such_o protestant_n sacrament_n be_v but_o nullity_n and_o a_o profanation_n of_o holy_a thing_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o instituter_n of_o these_o sacred_a thing_n it_o be_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o undertake_v and_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n &_o celebrate_v sacrament_n without_o such_o uninterrupted_a successive_a ordination_n that_o a_o ordain_v minister_n have_v no_o more_o power_n than_o be_v intend_v he_o by_o his_o ordainer_n that_o in_o such_o presbyterian_o or_o episcopal_a church_n which_o have_v their_o power_n from_o the_o ordainer_n and_o so_o far_o for_o want_v of_o succession_n be_v nullity_n it_o be_v safe_a for_o man_n as_o e._n g._n in_o france_n to_o be_v rather_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o they_o §_o 16._o and_o as_o i_o find_v this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o ascendent_n in_o england_n so_o i_o meet_v with_o such_o as_o be_v for_o use_v protestant_n according_o even_o for_o the_o silence_v of_o they_o by_o thousand_o if_o they_o will_v not_o swear_v profess_v promise_n and_o do_v all_o that_o and_o for_o use_v the_o people_n according_o and_o abate_v neither_o big_a nor_o little_a a_o oath_n or_o a_o ceremony_n to_o unite_v or_o save_v they_o and_o i_o live_v in_o a_o age_n where_o these_o thing_n be_v no_o idle_a speculation_n §_o 17._o be_v thus_o far_o sure_a of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n i_o study_v as_o well_o as_o
i_o be_v able_a to_o know_v which_o of_o these_o way_n be_v right_a and_o i_o see_v that_o either_o popery_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n universal_a headship_n or_o government_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a usurpation_n and_o form_v a_o sort_n of_o church_n which_o be_v not_o on_o any_o pretence_n of_o concord_n to_o be_v own_v and_o as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o have_v say_v before_o and_o in_o many_o book_n what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v against_o it_o which_o be_v all_o sum_v up_o in_o doctor_n iz._n barrow_n and_o doctor_n h._n moor_n and_o large_o tell_v the_o world_n by_o chamier_n sadeel_v whitaker_n jewel_n usher_n morton_n white_n chillingworth_n crakenthorne_n and_o abundance_n more_o and_o i_o think_v it_o strange_a if_o either_o papacy_n or_o that_o tympanite_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o tend_v to_o it_o be_v of_o god_n that_o the_o person_n shall_v be_v ordinary_o so_o bad_a and_o it_o shall_v introduce_v so_o great_a mischief_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o practice_n over_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o bring_v the_o church_n into_o such_o a_o divide_a and_o pollute_a state_n and_o that_o as_o the_o clergy_n swell_v the_o body_n shall_v pine_v away_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n and_o love_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o skelleton_n of_o ceremony_n and_o formality_n and_o into_o hatred_n cruelty_n and_o tear_v and_o torment_v pain_n §_o 18._o upon_o all_o such_o thought_n i_o conclude_v in_o these_o resolution_n 1._o that_o i_o must_v not_o accuse_v any_o office_n make_v by_o god_n for_o man_n abuse_n of_o it_o 2._o nor_o must_v i_o accuse_v the_o good_a for_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o bad_a 3._o nor_o confound_v the_o office_n itself_o with_o its_o disease_n and_o the_o accidental_a tympanite_n 4._o nor_o aggravate_v humane_a infirmity_n in_o good_a man_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o malignant_a enemy_n 5._o much_o less_o lay_v any_o of_o the_o blame_n on_o christianity_n or_o piety_n when_o nothing_o in_o the_o world_n be_v so_o much_o against_o all_o these_o evil_n nor_o will_v they_o have_v be_v so_o far_o limit_v restrain_v or_o resist_v have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o that_o christianity_n and_o piety_n that_o be_v keep_v up_o against_o it_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o other_o cure_n of_o it_o it_o be_v not_o by_o religion_n but_o for_o want_v of_o more_o true_a and_o serious_a religion_n that_o all_o these_o mischief_n have_v so_o lamentable_o prevail_v §_o 19_o i_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o avoid_v extreme_n conclude_v thus_o 1._o that_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o as_o such_o he_o himself_o do_v make_v universal_a law_n and_o will_v be_v the_o final_a universal_a judge_n and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o that_o have_v universal_a legislative_a and_o judicial_a power_n but_o he_o 3._o as_o such_o he_o institute_v necessary_a church-officer_n first_o extraordinary_a one_o to_o be_v his_o instrument_n in_o legislation_n as_o moses_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n give_v they_o his_o spirit_n extraordinary_o for_o that_o use_n to_o bring_v all_o that_o he_o teach_v they_o to_o their_o remembrance_n and_o guide_v they_o to_o deliver_v and_o record_v all_o his_o command_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n as_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o teach_v and_o apply_v these_o command_n or_o universal_a law_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o to_o add_v diminish_v or_o alter_v they_o 4._o that_o the_o formal_a essence_n of_o this_o continue_a sacred_a ministry_n consist_v in_o a_o derive_v power_n and_o obligation_n in_o subordination_n to_o christ_n as_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n to_o teach_v to_o guide_v the_o church_n in_o holy_a worship_n and_o to_o rule_v they_o by_o the_o pastoral_n power_n which_o make_v they_o ministerial_a judge_n of_o man_n capacity_n for_o church-communion_n but_o they_o have_v as_o such_o no_o force_a power_n of_o the_o sword_n 5._o that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o these_o minister_n accidental_o distinguish_v 1._o such_o as_o be_v only_o ordain_v to_o the_o ministry_n in_o general_n and_o not_o special_o relate_v to_o any_o one_o particular_a church_n more_o than_o other_o who_o work_n be_v to_o do_v their_o best_a to_o teach_v infidel_n and_o baptize_v they_o and_o gather_v church_n and_o occasional_o to_o officiate_v orderly_o in_o such_o church_n where_o they_o come_v as_o need_v their_o help_n 2._o those_o that_o have_v moreover_o a_o additional_a call_n to_o be_v the_o state_v pastor_n overseer_n or_o guide_n of_o particular_a church_n as_o fix_a officer_n of_o christ_n all_o which_o have_v the_o three_o foresay_a essential_o of_o the_o office_n to_o teach_v worship_n and_o rule_n 6._o that_o the_o office_n of_o these_o man_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o themselves_o and_o no_o layman_n may_v do_v any_o essential_a part_n of_o they_o by_o their_o deligation_n and_o therefore_o as_o in_o physician_n tutor_n etc._n etc._n necessary_a personal_a ability_n be_v as_o essential_a as_o the_o necessary_a dispositio_fw-la materiae_fw-la be_v ad_fw-la receptionem_fw-la alicujus_fw-la formae_fw-la and_o ex_fw-la quovis_fw-la ligno_fw-la non_fw-la fit_a mercurius_fw-la 7._o that_o it_o be_v very_o much_o and_o great_a and_o most_o important_a work_n which_o these_o minister_n have_v to_o do_v to_o preach_v god_n word_n understand_o faithful_o constant_o fervent_o to_o resolve_v the_o doubtful_a to_o reprove_v the_o scandalous_a to_o persuade_v the_o obstinate_a to_o confute_v gainsayer_n to_o comfort_v the_o sad_a and_o strengthen_v the_o weak_a particular_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o visit_v the_o sick_a catechise_v baptise_v beside_o all_o act_n of_o public_a government_n therefore_o one_o man_n can_v possible_o do_v all_o this_o for_o too_o great_a a_o number_n of_o soul_n but_o great_a congregation_n must_v have_v many_o minister_n and_o so_o they_o have_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n where_o the_o most_o able_a speaker_n preach_v usual_o in_o public_a and_o the_o rest_n do_v more_o of_o the_o personal_a and_o more_o private_a work_n 8._o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v very_o early_a that_o most_o single_a church_n have_v one_o that_o have_v a_o pre-eminence_n among_o the_o rest_n not_o as_o of_o another_o office_n but_o as_o a_o precedent_n in_o a_o college_n of_o philosopher_n physician_n or_o divine_a student_n to_o be_v a_o governor_n over_o those_o of_o his_o own_o profession_n by_o moderate_a guidance_n and_o it_o be_v not_o unmeet_a that_o when_o one_o worthy_a teacher_n have_v gather_v a_o church_n and_o bring_v up_o young_a christian_n to_o ministerial_a ability_n that_o they_o when_o they_o be_v ordain_v shall_v take_v he_o for_o their_o father_n i_o will_v never_o gainsay_v such_o a_o episcopacy_n in_o single_a church_n that_o be_v society_n of_o christian_n combine_v for_o personal_a communion_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o holy_a live_n under_o such_o pastor_n as_o aforesaid_a 9_o and_o because_o i_o find_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n have_v a_o ministerial_a care_n of_o many_o church_n to_o teach_v reprove_v exhort_v the_o pastor_n and_o people_n and_o though_o the_o apostle_n extraordinary_a power_n and_o work_v cease_v yet_o church-oversight_n as_o well_o as_o preach_v be_v a_o ordinary_a continue_a work_n and_o when_o i_o find_v christ_n have_v institute_v some_o teacher_n over_o many_o church_n i_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o he_o have_v repeal_v this_o till_o i_o can_v prove_v it_o and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n tell_v we_o that_o if_o some_o grave_a holy_a man_n have_v the_o care_n of_o counsel_v and_o warn_v and_o reprove_v the_o minister_n of_o many_o church_n who_o be_v below_o they_o in_o part_n and_o worth_a it_o may_v do_v much_o good_a and_o can_v do_v no_o harm_n to_o the_o church_n while_o they_o have_v no_o power_n of_o force_n or_o tyranny_n therefore_o i_o resolve_v never_o to_o speak_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o such_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n though_o diocesan_n §_o 20._o thus_o far_o i_o have_v oft_o declare_v myself_o for_o episcopacy_n but_o find_v in_o all_o the_o aforesaid_a history_n how_o the_o church_n come_v to_o the_o woeful_a state_n that_o it_o have_v be_v in_o these_o 1200_o year_n and_o what_o it_o suffer_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n in_o almost_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o that_o even_o the_o english_a diocesan_n can_v endure_v no_o more_o parochial_a pastoral_n discipline_n than_o they_o do_v i_o mean_v such_o as_o bucer_n in_o script_n anglic._n press_v so_o vehement_o on_o king_n edw._n and_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o can_v content_o hold_v their_o lordship_n wealth_n and_o honour_n without_o silence_v and_o ruine_v two_o thousand_o such_o as_o i_o or_o better_a and_o use_v many_o thousand_o of_o godly_a christian_n as_o they_o do_v
and_o find_v that_o i_o and_o such_o other_o be_v accuse_v as_o be_v disobedient_a to_o they_o and_o for_o not_o swear_v and_o covenant_v never_o to_o endeavour_v any_o alteration_n of_o their_o present_a church-government_n and_o all_o excommunicate_a by_o the_o canon_n that_o say_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o even_o from_o the_o archdeacon_n downward_o to_o the_o rest_n in_o office_n repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o take_v it_o at_o last_o to_o be_v my_o duty_n to_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o my_o dissent_n in_o a_o full_a treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o because_o i_o perceive_v young_a man_n and_o stranger_n to_o former_a time_n deceive_v by_o the_o general_a noise_n how_o ancient_a and_o universal_a episcopacy_n have_v be_v as_o if_o all_o that_o be_v call_v episcopacy_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o as_o if_o we_o be_v against_o the_o primitive_a episcopacy_n therefore_o i_o sudden_o and_o too_o hasty_o for_o want_v of_o time_n bestow_v a_o few_o week_n in_o sum_v up_o the_o head_n of_o the_o history_n of_o bishop_n and_o council_n out_o of_o a_o few_o historian_n which_o be_v most_o common_a next_o at_o hand_n and_o of_o most_o credit_n with_o those_o who_o fault_n i_o open_v that_o it_o may_v be_v true_o know_v how_o much_o the_o tumified_a degenerate_a sort_n of_o prelacy_n have_v cause_v the_o division_n and_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 21._o for_o this_o mr._n morrice_n as_o fame_n say_v and_o many_o more_o be_v so_o great_o offend_v with_o i_o and_o say_v of_o i_o herein_o what_o they_o do_v and_o on_o pretence_n of_o vindicate_v the_o primitive_a church_n which_o untrue_o imply_v that_o i_o who_o vindicate_v it_o against_o corrupter_n do_v oppose_v it_o he_o defend_v the_o corruption_n and_o sinful_a miscarriage_n and_o disease_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o this_o he_o do_v 1._o by_o strive_v to_o make_v i_o contemptible_a as_o unlearned_a as_o if_o that_o will_v excuse_v the_o sin_n which_o i_o rehearse_v and_o lament_v he_o find_v in_o one_o place_n through_o my_o haste_n and_o heedlessness_n a_o word_n of_o theodoret_n misplace_v and_o the_o word_n calami_fw-la translate_o quill_n which_o he_o think_v shall_v be_v reed_n and_o one_o or_o two_o more_o such_o as_o if_o he_o prevaricate_v and_o have_v a_o design_n to_o extol_v the_o book_n which_o he_o find_v no_o more_o and_o great_a fault_n in_o than_o he_o real_o have_v do_v and_o he_o prove_v it_o likely_a that_o i_o never_o see_v the_o history_n that_o stand_v by_o i_o near_o twenty_o year_n because_o the_o printer_n put_v a_o comma_n between_o marquardus_n and_o freherus_n i_o think_v there_o be_v a_o dozen_o comma_n misplace_v in_o my_o whole_a book_n when_o he_o himself_o say_v of_o his_o own_o book_n the_o fault_n that_o have_v escape_v be_v almost_o infinite_a but_o of_o these_o thing_n more_o anon_o 2._o he_o loud_o and_o frequent_o charge_v i_o with_o malicious_a falsify_v history_n and_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n i_o have_v show_v you_o who_o the_o falsifier_n be_v 3._o the_o great_a thing_n i_o be_o accuse_v of_o be_v make_v the_o bishop_n more_o the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n schism_n and_o violence_n than_o they_o be_v and_o of_o that_o i_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o i_o think_v i_o have_v full_o prove_v and_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v by_o this_o follow_a catalogue_n domineer_a pride_n have_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n especial_o work_v in_o the_o clergy_n to_o tumid_a prelacy_n and_o tyrrany_n i._o i_o before_o note_v how_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a till_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n after_o christ_n rebuke_n have_v cure_v they_o and_o what_o tyranny_n diotrephes_n use_v through_o love_n of_o pre-eminence_n ii_o if_o the_o doubtful_a story_n of_o simon_n magus_n be_v true_a his_o tumour_n be_v more_o than_o papal_a and_o epiphanius_n make_v menander_n saturnilus_fw-la basilides_n to_o be_v but_o his_o offspring_n the_o original_a of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o gnostic_n who_o epiphanius_n say_v have_v ensnare_v himself_o once_o be_v utter_o uncertain_a carpocras_n cerinthus_n ebion_n valentinus_n secundus_fw-la ptolomaeus_n be_v all_o but_o bird_n of_o the_o same_o gnostic_n nest_n a_o craze_a sort_n of_o man_n that_o mingle_v christianity_n platonism_n and_o magical_a imagination_n and_o what_o they_o be_v themselves_o be_v not_o know_v such_o be_v marcus_n colarbasus_fw-la heracleon_n the_o ophitae_n the_o cainites_n the_o sethian_o cerdo_n martion_n be_v a_o bishop_n son_n cast_v out_o for_o vice_n and_o lucian_n apelles_n and_o severus_n his_o offspring_n the_o head_n of_o their_o little_a sect_n whether_o bishop_n or_o not_o be_v unknown_a what_o kind_n of_o heretic_n tertullian_n tatianus_n and_o origen_n be_v and_o how_o many_o fault_n as_o soul_n lactantius_n and_o many_o not_o number_v with_o heretic_n have_v be_v well_o know_v and_o among_o all_o these_o in_o those_o early_a day_n till_o there_o be_v pope_n and_o diocesan_n such_o as_o now_o in_o the_o world_n none_o such_o can_v be_v heretic_n iii_o many_o council_n contend_v about_o the_o time_n of_o easter_n and_o victor_n with_o one_o part_n of_o bishop_n excommunicate_v polycrates_n and_o the_o arian_n bishop_n while_n as_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n tell_v we_o the_o church_n that_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a have_v peace_n iv._o a_o council_n of_o the_o best_a bishop_n at_o carthage_n decree_v rebaptise_v v._o a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n cilicia_n galatia_n &c_n &c_n at_o iconium_n for_o rebaptise_v those_o baptise_a by_o heretic_n and_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n excommunicate_v they_o all_o vi_o a_o council_n at_o synadis_n and_o divers_a other_o decree_v the_o same_o rebaptise_v vii_o divers_n more_o african_a council_n of_o good_a bishop_n with_o cyprian_a decree_v the_o same_o who_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n condemn_v viii_o divers_a bishop_n be_v say_v to_o be_v sabellian_n heretic_n ix_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la bishop_n of_o antioch_n be_v a_o heretic_n x._o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n at_o cirta_n in_o numidia_n under_o secundus_fw-la mr._n m._n call_v worse_a than_o i_o do_v xi_o a_o carthage_n council_n of_o 70_o bishop_n an._n 306._o set_v up_o the_o donatists_n schism_n strive_v for_o the_o pre-eminence_n who_o shall_v be_v bishop_n of_o carthage_n xii_o an._n 308._o another_o donatists_n council_n have_v 270_o bishop_n many_o more_o council_n they_o have_v xiii_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o nice_a we_o honour_v and_o assent_v to_o its_o creed_n but_o thank_v constantine_n for_o burn_v all_o their_o libel_n and_o keep_v peace_n by_o his_o presence_n and_o speech_n fourteen_o the_o schism_n make_v by_o meletius_n and_o peter_n bishop_n be_v well_o know_v xv._n the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n a_o presbyter_n that_o will_v have_v be_v a_o prelate_n quick_o infect_v eusebius_n nicome_v if_o not_o eusebius_n caesariensis_n and_o divers_a other_o bishop_n xvi_o epiphanius_n say_v that_o audius_n be_v drive_v to_o his_o heresy_n by_o be_v long_o abuse_v beat_a and_o at_o last_o excommunicate_v for_o reprove_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n for_o their_o covetousness_n luxury_n and_o other_o sin_n and_o so_o he_o become_v a_o bishop_n himself_o xvii_o eusebius_n nicom_n make_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o you_o tell_v we_o valesius_fw-la think_v be_v no_o heretic_n hire_v a_o whore_n at_o antioch_n to_o father_n her_o child_n on_o eustathius_n the_o bishop_n there_o and_o get_v more_o bishop_n to_o depose_v he_o and_o the_o emperor_n to_o banish_v he_o xviii_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n at_o tyre_n unjust_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v athanasius_n xix_o three_o bishop_n say_v mr._n m._n overcome_v with_o too_o much_o wine_n and_o persuasion_n ordain_v novatian_n false_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o this_o aforementioned_a xx._n a_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n an._n 335._o try_v and_o approve_a arius_n faith_n and_o restore_v he_o xxi_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n condemn_v marcellus_n ancyranus_n and_o athanasius_n and_o justify_v arius_n xxii_o a_o council_n of_o near_o 100_o bishop_n at_o antioch_n 36_o be_v arian_n depose_v athanasius_n xxiii_o another_o council_n at_o antioch_n make_v a_o new_a creed_n without_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d xxiv_o a_o council_n of_o 376_o bishop_n at_o sardica_n decree_n appeal_n to_o rome_n which_o augustin_n and_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v against_o xxv_o the_o semi-arian_n bishop_n go_v to_o philippopolis_n and_o condemn_v such_o as_o the_o other_o at_o sardica_n have_v absolve_v but_o cast_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o not_o scriptural_a and_o cast_v dreadful_a accusation_n on_o athanasius_n paulus_n c._n p._n and_o marcellus_n xxvi_o an._n 350._o a_o council_n at_o milan_n receive_v ursacius_n and_o valens_n arian_n xxvii_o stephen_n a_o arian_n bishop_n hire_v a_o
senex_fw-la ad_fw-la illorum_fw-la adspectum_fw-la etiam_fw-la corpore_fw-la commoveretur_fw-la dignitatum_fw-la &_o magnarum_fw-la divitiarum_fw-la contumax_n contemptor_n neque_fw-la quicquam_fw-la prius_fw-la otio_fw-la habuit_fw-la ac_fw-la libertate_fw-la and_o i_o think_v as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o cuspinian_n ratus_fw-la se_fw-la satisfacturum_fw-la ingenuo_fw-la lectori_fw-la siquae_fw-la verissima_fw-la esse_fw-la comperisset_fw-la simplicissima_fw-la oratione_fw-la mandaret_fw-la posteritati_fw-la satis_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la historico_fw-la ut_fw-la praeclare_fw-la dixit_fw-la apud_fw-la ciceronem_fw-la catullus_n non_fw-la esse_fw-la mendacem_fw-la and_o as_o to_o my_o end_n and_o expectation_n i_o be_o not_o so_o vain_a as_o to_o write_v with_o any_o great_a hope_n of_o persuade_v many_o if_o any_o who_o be_v possess_v of_o large_a diocese_n wealth_n and_o power_n to_o forsake_v they_o much_o less_o to_o cure_v the_o common_a thirst_n that_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v possess_v with_o and_o to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o a_o public_a reformation_n if_o i_o may_v satisfy_v my_o conscience_n and_o save_v some_o from_o be_v deceive_v by_o false_a history_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o ancient_a schism_n it_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v hope_v for_o have_v i_o live_v in_o alb._n crantzius_n day_n i_o may_v perhaps_o have_v say_v as_o he_o of_o luther_n frater_fw-la frater_fw-la abi_fw-la in_o cellam_fw-la tuam_fw-la &_o dic_fw-la miserere_fw-la mei_fw-la deus_fw-la et_fw-la de_fw-fr canonicis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dictis_fw-la nunquam_fw-la posse_fw-la eos_fw-la reduci_fw-la ad_fw-la meliorem_fw-la srugem_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la a_o viris_fw-la doctis_fw-la expugnata_fw-la arce_fw-la i._n e._n papatu_fw-la and_o for_o myself_o none_o of_o the_o interest_v man_n reproach_n be_v unexpected_a to_o i_o anger_n will_v speak_v i_o know_v what_o the_o papist_n say_v of_o the_o reformer_n and_o all_o the_o protestant_n and_o yet_o i_o expect_v that_o all_o at_o last_o will_v turn_v to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o falsehood_n by_o put_v man_n to_o search_v church-history_n for_o the_o truth_n the_o case_n of_o capnio_n be_v worth_a a_o brief_a recital_n a_o covetous_a jew_n pretend_v conversion_n contrive_v with_o the_o friar_n and_o inquisitor_n to_o get_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o money_n from_o the_o jew_n by_o procure_v a_o edict_n from_o the_o emperor_n to_o burn_v all_o the_o jew_n book_n that_o so_o they_o may_v purchase_v they_o of_o the_o friar_n the_o emperor_n will_v first_o hear_v what_o capnio_n a_o great_a hebrician_n say_v capnio_n advise_v to_o spare_v all_o that_o only_o promote_v the_o hebrew_n literature_n and_o burn_v only_o those_o that_o be_v write_v against_o christ_n hockstrate_a and_o the_o friar_n be_v vex_v thus_o to_o lose_v the_o prey_n and_o accuse_v capnio_n of_o heresy_n the_o cause_n be_v oft_o try_v especial_o at_o rome_n all_o the_o learned_a hebrician_n be_v for_o capnio_n the_o friar_n rage_v the_o more_o this_o awaken_v many_o learned_a man_n to_o search_v into_o the_o cause_n and_o arm_v they_o against_o the_o friar_n galatinus_n hutten_n erasmus_n etc._n etc._n be_v for_o capnio_n the_o friar_n accuse_v they_o also_o of_o heresy_n but_o by_o this_o they_o stir_v up_o such_o a_o party_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n against_o they_o that_o when_o tezelius_fw-la come_v to_o vend_fw-mi his_o indulgency_n luther_n have_v so_o many_o ready_a to_o join_v against_o the_o inquisitor_n and_o mercenary_a cheat_a friar_n as_o great_o further_v the_o reformation_n and_o two_o or_o three_o ingenuous_a conformist_n who_o have_v late_o write_v against_o the_o violent_a batter_a cannoneer_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o some_o be_v like_a to_o be_v excite_v by_o the_o over_n of_o the_o accuse_v silence_v party_n to_o search_v better_o into_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o right_n till_o they_o can_v distinguish_v between_o a_o eucrasie_n and_o a_o tympanite_n or_o if_o this_o world_n be_v incurable_a they_o can_v keep_v we_o out_o of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n where_o there_o be_v no_o error_n schism_n nor_o persecution_n because_o no_o ignorance_n malignity_n or_o pride_n but_o the_o general_n assembly_n of_o perfect_a spirit_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o perfect_a head_n in_o perfect_a life_n and_o light_n and_o love_n the_o particular_a defence_n of_o the_o history_n of_o council_n and_o schism_n a_o account_n to_o mr._n morrice_n why_o my_o mention_v the_o church-distracting_a sin_n of_o the_o clergy_n when_o worldly_a grandeur_n corrupt_v they_o be_v not_o a_o dishonour_v but_o a_o honour_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o vindicate_v those_o sin_n be_v no_o vindicat_fw-la ion_fw-la of_o the_o primitive_a church_n chap._n i._n the_o reason_n and_o design_n of_o my_o history_n of_o bishop_n and_o council_n §_o 1._o they_o that_o know_v the_o man_n with_o who_o i_o have_v to_o do_v and_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o have_v in_o controversy_n with_o they_o will_v easy_o understand_v my_o purpose_n the_o person_n with_o who_o i_o be_o to_o deal_v be_v such_o as_o hold_v 1._o that_o a_o general_n council_n of_o bishop_n or_o the_o college_n of_o bishop_n govern_v per_fw-la literas_fw-la formatas_fw-la out_o of_o council_n be_v the_o supreme_a govern_v power_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n on_o earth_n have_v the_o power_n of_o universal_a legislation_n and_o judgement_n 2._o that_o among_o these_o the_o pope_n be_v just_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la to_o the_o whole_a and_o the_o ordinary_a precedent_n in_o such_o council_n and_o say_v some_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o precedent_n to_o call_v they_o and_o they_o be_v but_o rebellious_a rout_n that_o assemble_v without_o a_o just_a call_n 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o concord_n to_o be_v have_v but_o in_o the_o obedience_n to_o this_o universal_a govern_v church_n but_o all_o person_n and_o all_o national_a church_n be_v schismatic_n who_o live_v not_o in_o such_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n 4._o that_o such_o as_o the_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n which_o be_v over_o one_o low_a church_n contain_v hundred_o or_o multitude_n of_o parish_n and_o altar_n without_o any_o other_o bishop_n but_o the_o say_a diocesan_n be_v that_o episcopacy_n which_o all_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o while_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o universal_a supreme_a 5._o that_o every_o christian_a must_v hold_v subjective_a communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o live_v and_o say_v some_o must_v not_o practice_v contrary_a to_o his_o command_n nor_o appeal_v for_o such_o practice_n to_o scripture_n or_o to_o god_n 6._o that_o if_o this_o supreme_a power_n silence_n the_o diocesan_n or_o these_o diocesan_n silence_v all_o the_o minister_n in_o city_n or_o country_n they_o must_v cease_v their_o ministry_n and_o forsake_v the_o flock_n 7._o and_o say_v divers_a of_o they_o they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n or_o minister_n that_o have_v not_o ordination_n from_o such_o diocesan_n yea_o by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o want_v of_o this_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o more_o of_o this_o nature_n i_o have_v already_o transcribe_v and_o confute_v out_o of_o a._n bishop_n bromhall_n dr._n heylins_n life_n of_o a._n bishop_n laud_n mr_n thorndike_n mr_n dodwell_n and_o divers_a other_o §_o 2._o the_o first_o thing_n then_o in_o my_o intention_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a grandeur_n which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o necessary_a mean_n of_o its_o unity_n safety_n and_o true_a prosperity_n have_v prove_v clean_a contrary_n even_o the_o mean_n of_o church_n corruption_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n discipline_n &_o conversation_n the_o soil_n of_o the_o most_o odious_a crime_n the_o mean_n of_o tyranny_n suppression_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o persecution_n of_o god_n faithful_a servant_n and_o of_o rebellious_a war_n and_o cruel_a bloodshed_n §_o 3._o to_o this_o end_n i_o describe_v the_o step_n by_o which_o the_o clergy_n ascend_v to_o the_o papal_a height_n for_o as_o all_o protestant_n just_o maintain_v that_o their_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n &_o worship_n come_v not_o in_o at_o once_o but_o by_o slow_a degree_n so_o do_v they_o also_o of_o the_o papal_a government_n and_o discipline_n and_o they_o common_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o papist_n demand_n who_o ask_v we_o who_o be_v the_o man_n and_o which_o be_v the_o year_n as_o if_o the_o world_n have_v go_v to_o bed_n in_o simple_a christianity_n and_o awake_v papist_n the_o next_o morning_n whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o all_o church_n history_n that_o the_o clergy_n leave_v the_o christian_a purity_n simplicity_n and_o love_n do_v climb_v the_o ladder_n step_v by_o step_n till_o they_o ascend_v to_o the_o papal_a height_n and_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a dream_n of_o they_o that_o think_v it_o be_v the_o bp._n of_o rome_n alone_o
death_n i_o confess_v i_o understand_v not_o latin_a i_o think_v the_o council_n mean_v death_n by_o lex_fw-la perimi_fw-la jubet_fw-la but_o they_o will_v be_v more_o merciful_a which_o i_o blame_v they_o not_o for_o but_o note_v here_o what_o many_o other_o canon_n instance_n where_o they_o also_o punish_v murder_n but_o with_o keep_v man_n from_o communion_n that_o this_o agree_v with_o some_o sectary_n opinion_n i_o leave_v mr._n m_n great_a skill_n in_o expound_v council_n here_o to_o any_o equal_a judge_n but_o if_o i_o ignorant_o mistake_v in_o all_o this_o and_o neither_o capitis_fw-la sententia_fw-la feriantur_fw-la nor_o vivas_n in_o terra_fw-la desossas_fw-la signify_v death_n but_o excommunication_n yet_o many_o other_o canon_n after_o cite_v full_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o bishop_n clemency_n chap._n vii_o mr_n m_n exposition_n of_o church_n history_n try_v by_o his_o exposition_n of_o my_o own_o word_n and_o 1._o of_o his_o false_a supposition_n that_o i_o be_o only_o for_o a_o church_n of_o one_o congregation_n meet_v in_o one_o place_n §_o 1._o if_o so_o many_o repetition_n of_o my_o opinion_n can_v save_v mr_n m._n from_o so_o untrue_a a_o supposition_n of_o myself_o i_o must_v not_o too_o far_o trust_v he_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o that_o he_o be_v as_o distant_a from_o as_o i._o yet_o this_o supposition_n run_v through_o all_o his_o book_n show_v that_o he_o write_v it_o against_o he_o know_v not_o who_o nor_o what_o his_o foundation_n be_v because_o i_o define_v a_o single_a church_n by_o personal_n present_a communion_n §_o 2._o i_o do_v so_o and_o 1._o do_v he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o christian_n conjoin_v for_o assemble_v in_o god_n ordinary_a worship_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o their_o proper_a pastor_n i_o will_v not_o censure_v he_o so_o hardly_o as_o to_o think_v he_o will_v deny_v it_o 2._o be_v these_o church_n or_o not_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v say_v yea._n 3_o but_o be_v there_o no_o personal_a present_a communion_n but_o in_o public_a worship_n yes_o sure_a neighbour_n who_o worship_n god_n in_o divers_a place_n may_v yet_o live_v in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o conversation_n of_o each_o other_o and_o may_v meet_v for_o election_n of_o officer_n and_o other_o church_n business_n and_o may_v frequent_o exhort_v reprove_v and_o admonish_v each_o other_o and_o relieve_v each_o other_o in_o daily_a want_n and_o many_o meet_v sometime_o by_o turn_n in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o they_o all_o can_v meet_v at_o once_o we_o have_v great_a town_n like_a ipswich_n plymouth_n shrewsbury_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v many_o parish_n and_o yet_o neighbourhood_n make_v they_o capable_a of_o personal_n communion_n in_o presence_n as_o distinct_a from_o communion_n by_o letter_n or_o delegate_n with_o those_o that_o we_o neither_o see_v nor_o know_v and_o we_o have_v many_o great_a parish_n which_o have_v several_a chapel_n where_o the_o people_n ordinary_o meet_v yet_o per_fw-la vice_n some_o one_o time_n and_o some_o another_o come_v to_o the_o parish_n church_n have_v these_o no_o parochial_a personal_a communion_n to_o the_o well-being_n of_o a_o church_n i_o confess_v i_o will_v not_o have_v a_o single_a church_n of_o the_o low_a species_n have_v too_o many_o nor_o too_o few_o no_o more_o than_o who_o personal_a communion_n shall_v be_v frequent_a in_o god_n public_a worship_n nor_o so_o few_o as_o shall_v not_o full_o employ_v more_o minister_n of_o christ_n than_o one_o but_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n i_o only_o require_v that_o the_o end_n of_o their_o association_n be_v personal_a communion_n as_o distinct_a from_o distant_a communion_n by_o letter_n and_o delegate_n and_o by_o communion_n i_o mean_v not_o only_o the_o sacrament_n §_o 2._o it_o be_v in_o vain_a therefore_o to_o answer_v a_o book_n that_o go_v on_o such_o false_a supposition_n and_o a_o man_n that_o will_v face_v down_o the_o world_n that_o i_o plead_v for_o that_o which_o i_o never_o own_v and_o so_o frequent_o disclaim_v chap._n viii_o of_o his_o false_a supposition_n that_o i_o be_o against_o diocesan_n bishop_n because_o i_o be_o against_o that_o species_n of_o they_o which_o put_v down_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o single_a church_n and_o those_o church_n themselves_o §_o 1._o this_o supposition_n go_v through_o almost_o all_o the_o book_n in_o his_o preface_n he_o say_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o catholic_n and_o schismatic_n &_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o this_o church_n history_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v the_o contrary_a and_o so_o throughout_o §_o 2._o and_o yet_o to_o show_v that_o he_o know_v the_o contrary_a in_o one_o place_n he_o confess_v it_o and_o describe_v part_n of_o my_o judgement_n and_o say_v that_o none_o will_v be_v of_o my_o mind_n in_o it_o but_o it_o be_v singular_a to_o myself_o yea_o i_o have_v in_o my_o disput_n of_o church_n government_n which_o he_o take_v on_o he_o in_o part_n to_o answer_v and_o in_o my_o treat_n of_o episcopacy_n which_o he_o also_o pretend_v to_o answer_v in_o part_n tell_v they_o of_o more_o sort_n of_o bishop_n than_o one_o that_o i_o oppose_v not_o no_o not_o a._n bishop_n themselves_o and_o one_o of_o they_o hereupon_o note_v it_o as_o if_o i_o differ_v but_o about_o the_o name_n submit_v to_o diocesan_n so_o they_o may_v but_o be_v call_v a._n bishop_n to_o who_o i_o answer_v that_o a._n bishop_n have_v bishop_n under_o they_o so_o that_o though_o i_o over_o and_o over_o even_o to_o tediousness_n tell_v they_o it_o be_v the_o depose_n of_o all_o the_o first_o or_o low_a species_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o consequent_o all_o possibility_n of_o true_a discipline_n that_o i_o oppose_v and_o submit_v to_o any_o that_o oversee_v many_o such_o church_n without_o destroy_v they_o and_o their_o privilege_n institute_v by_o christ_n i_o speak_v ●ill_o in_o vain_a to_o they_o these_o true_a historian_n face_n down_o the_o world_n that_o i_o write_v whole_a book_n to_o the_o clean_a contrary_n chap._n ix_o of_o his_o supposition_n that_o i_o be_o a_o independent_a and_o yet_o that_o i_o plead_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o §_o 1._o this_o be_v also_o a_o supposition_n that_o be_v part_n of_o the_o stamina_n of_o his_o book_n and_o how_o far_o he_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v herein_o judge_v by_o the_o evidence_n follow_v 1._o he_o know_v what_o i_o say_v before_o for_o three_o sort_n of_o bishop_n 1._o episcopi_fw-la gregis_fw-la overseer_n of_o single_a low_a church_n as_o of_o divine_a institution_n 2._o for_o episcopi_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la or_o presidents-bishop_n ejusdem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la non_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la gradus_fw-la in_o the_o same_o church_n as_o of_o early_a humane_a institution_n which_o i_o resist_v not_o 3._o episcopi_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la overseer_n of_o many_o church_n which_o i_o suspect_v to_o be_v successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o such_o as_o timothy_n titus_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o continue_a ordinary_a part_n of_o their_o work_n exercise_v no_o other_o power_n than_o they_o do_v insomuch_o that_o dr._n sherlock_n will_v be_v think_v so_o much_o less_o episcopal_a than_o i_o as_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v antichristian_a to_o assert_v episcopos_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la §_o 2._o and_o dr._n parker_n have_v new_o write_v a_o book_n for_o episcopacy_n which_o i_o hear_v many_o despise_v but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o strong_a that_o i_o have_v see_v write_v for_o it_o these_o twenty_o year_n but_o to_o no_o purpose_n against_o i_o for_o it_o be_v but_o for_o episcopacy_n in_o general_n which_o i_o oppose_v not_o it_o excellent_a well_o improve_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o k._n and_o bishop_n at_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n even_o that_o one_o argument_n that_o a_o superiority_n of_o some_o over_o other_o be_v settle_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o form_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o continue_v unless_o we_o have_v clear_a proof_n of_o the_o repeal_n or_o cessation_n i_o have_v oft_o say_v the_o same_o i_o can_v never_o answer_v that_o argument_n but_o this_o will_v not_o justify_v the_o depose_n of_o thousand_o of_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o of_o their_o discipline_n to_o turn_v they_o all_o into_o two_o or_o three_o diocesan_n §_o 3._o also_o he_o know_v that_o i_o have_v write_v these_o 35_o year_n against_o lay._n elder_n believe_v that_o the_o college_n of_o elder_n which_o of_o old_a assist_v the_o bishop_n be_v none_o of_o they_o layman_n nor_o unordain_v but_o of_o the_o same_o order_n though_o not_o degree_n with_o the_o bishop_n himself_o §_o 4._o and_o i_o have_v also_o write_v that_o synod_n of_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n be_v but_o for_o concord_n and_o have_v not_o as_o such_o by_o a_o major_a vote_n a_o proper_a government_n of_o the_o minor_a part_n
number_n say_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o how_o great_a a_o number_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n have_v our_o city_n how_o many_o christian_n will_v you_o that_o there_o be_v that_o be_v will_v you_o grant_v or_o do_v you_o think_v there_o be_v will_v you_o that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o hundred_o thousand_o but_o how_o great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o jew_n and_o ethnic_n how_o many_o pound_n of_o gold_n have_v be_v gather_v or_o myriad_o and_o how_o great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o poor_a that_o be_v of_o the_o whole_a city_n i_o do_v not_o think_v they_o be_v above_o fifty_o thousand_o commelin_n have_v put_v a_o hundred_o thousand_o as_o erasmus_n translation_n i_o suppose_v by_o the_o error_n of_o the_o press_n now_o if_o there_o be_v in_o chrysostom_n day_n but_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o many_o say_v be_v not_o near_o so_o many_o as_o there_o be_v in_o two_o parish_n here_o martins_z and_o stepney_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o in_o constantine_n time_n they_o be_v half_a so_o many_o at_o most_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o far_o from_o think_v that_o there_o be_v then_o no_o more_o than_o usual_o meet_v in_o a_o assembly_n or_o can_v so_o meet_v §_o 6._o the_o jesuit_n valesius_fw-la and_o sirmondus_fw-la i_o be_o no_o fit_a person_n to_o censure_v but_o i_o be_o not_o satisfy_v why_o their_o credit_n shall_v go_v as_o far_o with_o i_o as_o it_o do_v with_o he_o i_o have_v before_o speak_v of_o valesius_n record_v grotius_n as_o one_o that_o design_v to_o bring_v many_o with_o he_o into_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o grotius_n himself_o say_v that_o many_o of_o the_o english_a bishop_n be_v of_o his_o mind_n as_o bishop_n bromhall_n and_o many_o doctor_n by_o defend_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o when_o i_o write_v my_o christian_a concord_n and_o the_o grotian_n religion_n how_o many_o censure_v i_o as_o a_o slanderer_n for_o say_v less_o than_o valesius_fw-la do_v yet_o i_o be_o false_a with_o this_o historian_n and_o valesius_fw-la be_v a_o credible_a jesuit_n and_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o tell_v we_o the_o judgement_n of_o valesius_fw-la that_o eusebius_n nicome_v be_v no_o arian_n pag._n 332._o where_o he_o say_v eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n be_v no_o heretic_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o valesius_fw-la but_o if_o he_o be_v he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n because_o he_o do_v not_o begin_v the_o arch-heresie_n but_o follow_v arius_n what_o the_o meaning_n be_v of_o the_o latter_a word_n i_o know_v not_o if_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n i_o conjecture_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o almost_o infinite_a errata_n of_o the_o printer_n but_o he_o suppose_v my_o printer_n to_z be_v my_o own_o but_o that_o eusebius_n nicome_v shall_v be_v no_o heretic_n who_o all_o the_o stream_n of_o credible_a historian_n make_v to_o be_v that_o arch-heretick_n i_o say_v not_o the_o first_o who_o corrupt_v constantine_n his_o court_n and_o son_n which_o introduce_v the_o prevalency_n of_o arianism_n to_o the_o almost_o ruin_n of_o the_o orthodox_n church_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o he_o that_o believe_v valesius_fw-la in_fw-la must_v prefer_v the_o credit_n of_o one_o jesuit_n that_o live_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o before_o the_o whole_a current_n of_o the_o best_a historian_n of_o the_o same_o and_o many_o follow_a age_n and_o do_v i_o ever_o so_o discredit_v the_o whole_a stream_n of_o church-historian_n as_o on_o the_o word_n of_o one_o jesuit_n to_o bring_v they_o under_o the_o suspicion_n of_o such_o a_o lie_n but_o i_o confess_v i_o be_o more_o incline_v to_o believe_v a_o jesuit_n and_o a_o prelatist_n when_o they_o excuse_v any_o man_n of_o heresy_n than_o when_o they_o accuse_v he_o §_o 7._o in_o the_o preface_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o have_v i_o consult_v sirmond_n edition_n of_o the_o french_a council_n i_o must_v have_v want_v several_a allegation_n for_o the_o congregational_a way_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o corrupt_a reading_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n nor_o can_v we_o suspect_v sirmond_n as_o too_o great_a a_o favourer_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n since_o it_o be_v well_o know_v how_o he_o be_v charge_v by_o the_o abbot_n of_o s._n cyran_n under_o the_o name_n of_o petrus_n aurelius_n for_o have_v falsify_v a_o canon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o orange_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o episcopal_a order_n jesuit_n care_v as_o little_a for_o bishop_n as_o our_o protestant_a dissenter_n can_v do_v answ_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o sirmond_n be_v a_o very_a learned_a man_n and_o have_v not_o the_o conformist_n divest_v i_o of_o all_o church-maintenance_n i_o have_v be_v like_a to_o have_v buy_v his_o french_a council_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o notice_n which_o other_o before_o he_o give_v of_o the_o act_n and_o canon_n of_o council_n suffice_v to_o my_o furniture_n full_o to_o prove_v the_o cause_n i_o maintain_v but_o i_o confess_v his_o pretend_a reason_n no_o whit_n induce_v i_o to_o give_v more_o credit_n to_o a_o jesuit_n than_o to_o another_o man_n though_o albaspineus_n be_v a_o bishop_n there_o be_v so_o much_o judgement_n and_o honesty_n appear_v in_o his_o observation_n that_o i_o will_v soon_o believe_v he_o about_o episcopacy_n than_o a_o jesuit_n that_o you_o say_v be_v against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v as_o incredible_a to_o i_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o spurious_a history_n that_o the_o jesuit_n care_v as_o little_a for_o bishop_n as_o our_o protestant_a dissenter_n can_v do_v sure_o many_o of_o those_o call_a presbyterian_o and_o independent_o will_v have_v none_o at_o all_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o 1._o the_o jesuit_n will_v have_v no_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o be_v his_o swear_a servant_n 2._o then_o they_o will_v have_v no_o bishop_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n 3._o then_o they_o will_v have_v all_o particular_a church_n to_o be_v without_o bishop_n or_o to_o be_v unchurcht_v 4._o then_o they_o will_v have_v ordination_n without_o bishop_n 5._o then_o they_o think_v not_o that_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v necessary_a to_o church_n or_o ministry_n 6._o then_o they_o think_v that_o bishop_n shall_v not_o confirm_v 7._o then_o they_o be_v against_o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n general_n or_o provincial_a 8._o and_o against_o diocesan_n government_n of_o the_o parish_n priest_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o jesuit_n a_o papist_n wonderful_a that_o they_o will_v venture_v their_o life_n in_o endeavour_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o write_v so_o much_o of_o and_o for_o bishop_n council_n and_o yet_o be_v quite_o against_o they_o but_o if_o real_o this_o be_v so_o you_o that_o take_v i_o for_o incredible_a who_o be_o against_o but_o the_o corruption_n of_o episcopacy_n do_v allow_v i_o to_o take_v sirmondus_n and_o valesius_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jesuit_n for_o incredible_a who_o be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o very_a office_n as_o our_o dissenter_n can_v be_v but_o what_o will_v not_o some_o historian_n confident_o say_v chap._n xvi_o mr._n m_n observation_n on_o my_o note_n of_o credible_a and_o incredible_a history_n examine_v §_o 1._o i._o because_o i_o suppose_v that_o common_a sound_a sense_n be_v to_o be_v trust_v he_o 1._o infer_v that_o i_o be_v asleep_a &_o think_v that_o i_o see_v all_o that_o i_o relate_v that_o be_v he_o that_o say_v he_o must_v believe_v sense_n imply_v that_o he_o see_v all_o that_o he_o report_v i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o unlearned_a and_o this_o logic_n be_v too_o hard_a for_o i_o let_v it_o be_v his_o own_o 2._o he_o conclude_v that_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v our_o sense_n if_o they_o be_v not_o presbyterian_o but_o episcopal_n that_o begin_v the_o late_a war_n in_o england_n as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v not_o only_o the_o parliament_n lord_n and_o commons_o then_o and_o the_o army_n then_o forty_o year_n ago_o almost_o but_o have_v see_v their_o religion_n or_o hear_v or_o read_v they_o then_o so_o profess_v it_o whereas_o i_o can_v learn_v yet_o whether_o he_o be_v then_o bear_v or_o of_o capable_a understanding_n and_o have_v neither_o sense_n nor_o reason_n for_o what_o he_o say_v the_o case_n that_o we_o be_v in_o be_v very_o sad_a when_o both_o side_n say_v they_o have_v the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n itself_o against_o each_o other_o what_o hope_v then_o of_o reconciliation_n they_o that_o be_v yet_o live_v that_o be_v lord_n commons_z and_o commander_n say_v their_o internal_a sense_n and_o self-knowledge_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v no_o presbyterian_o but_o episcopal_a and_o their_o daily_a converse_n tell_v they_o that_o their_o companion_n be_v most_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o mind_n but_o young_a man_n that_o never_o converse_v
with_o they_o know_v they_o all_o better_a and_o that_o infallible_o by_o sense_n itself_o §_o 2._o ii_o because_o i_o say_v the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v certain_o credible_a it_o be_v ground_n enough_o to_o say_v that_o all_o be_v not_o gospel_n that_o i_o write_v as_o if_o i_o have_v say_v it_o be_v §_o 3._o iii_o because_o i_o say_v prophet_n be_v sure_a of_o their_o revelation_n he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v mr._n b._n hear_v a_o bene_fw-la scripsisti_fw-la as_o if_o i_o have_v pretend_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n §_o 4._o iv._o i_o say_v that_o history_n be_v certain_a even_o by_o natural_a evidence_n when_o it_o be_v the_o common_a agreement_n of_o all_o man_n of_o most_o contrary_a interest_n etc._n etc._n in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o sense_n to_o all_o that_o know_v it_o to_o which_o he_o say_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o catholic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n man_n of_o very_a contrary_a mind_n disposition_n and_o interest_n and_o yet_o this_o church-history_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v the_o contrary_n answ_n this_o be_v our_o credible_a historian_n 1._o he_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o in_o what_o age_n it_o be_v so_o acknowledge_v when_o those_o who_o doubt_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n doubt_v but_o some_o of_o 100_o some_o of_o 150_o or_o 200_o year_n do_v any_o doubt_n whether_o it_o be_v so_o now_o 2._o he_o tell_v we_o not_o either_o what_o species_n of_o bishop_n the_o question_n be_v of_o nor_o what_o species_n of_o presbyter_n nor_o what_o the_o superiority_n be_v 3._o he_o speak_v without_o distinction_n or_o exception_n and_o so_o must_v be_v understand_v to_o say_v that_o this_o church_n history_n will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o even_a precedent_n bishop_n ejusdem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la have_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la no_o superiority_n at_o all_o over_o presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n and_o of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o they_o which_o be_v a_o untruth_n so_o gross_a as_o be_v no_o credit_n to_o our_o historian_n i_o have_v name_v both_o more_o than_o one_o rank_a of_o bishop_n who_o superiority_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la i_o deny_v not_o &_o pope_n patriarch_n primate_fw-la diocesan_n who_o depose_v the_o bishop_n of_o single_a church_n who_o superiority_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la i_o full_o enough_o affirm_v in_o the_o age_n and_o degree_n in_o which_o they_o do_v ascend_v if_o he_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v it_o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o that_o of_o such_o diocesan_n as_o have_v score_n or_o hundred_o of_o true_a church_n and_o altar_n without_o their_o particular_a bishop_n or_o any_o presbyter_n that_o be_v ejusdem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la with_o the_o bishop_n and_o be_v episcopi_fw-la gregis_fw-la and_o that_o have_v such_o power_n of_o the_o key_n over_o their_o flock_n as_o we_o have_v not_o or_o that_o have_v so_o many_o such_o assembly_n that_o be_v no_o true_a church_n if_o he_o will_v be_v prove_v a_o historian_n worthy_a credit_n let_v he_o give_v we_o any_o proof_n that_o all_o man_n describe_v by_o he_o agree_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o there_o be_v so_o long_o such_o a_o superiority_n of_o such_o bishop_n but_o these_o man_n deride_v distinguish_v and_o banish_v logic_n that_o be_v reason_n from_o their_o history_n §_o 5._o v._o the_o next_o evidence_n of_o certainty_n which_o i_o mention_v be_v from_o continue_a existent_a visible_a effect_n which_o prove_v their_o cause_n and_o here_o this_o undistinguish_a historian_n be_v at_o it_o again_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o all_o church_n this_o have_v the_o same_o answer_n which_o i_o will_v not_o repeat_v either_o it_o false_o report_v my_o denial_n or_o it_o false_o affirm_v that_o all_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v leave_v we_o visible_a effect_n of_o the_o foresay_a species_n and_o i_o will_v he_o will_v help_v we_o that_o be_v ignorant_a therein_o with_o such_o history_n and_o evidence_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n in_o scotland_n and_o in_o the_o southern_a and_o eastern_a country_n that_o be_v without_o the_o empire_n §_o 6._o vi_o i_o say_v that_o history_n be_v credible_a which_o speak_v consent_o against_o the_o know_a interest_n of_o the_o author_n and_o therefore_o i_o name_v few_o testimony_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o of_o those_o that_o be_v their_o most_o zealous_a friend_n to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o my_o character_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n be_v take_v from_o their_o profess_a enemy_n as_o my_o account_n of_o athanasius_n theophylus_fw-la cyril_n and_o divers_a other_o ans_fw-fr 1._o my_o account_n of_o athanasius_n be_v almost_o all_o if_o not_o all_o in_o his_o praise_n and_o be_v not_o a_o enemy_n testimony_n there_o valid_a if_o i_o mention_v the_o displeasure_n of_o constantine_n against_o he_o it_o be_v not_o any_o character_n of_o he_o but_o of_o constantine_n the_o agent_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v constantine_n or_o eusebius_n caesar_n meet_v to_o be_v number_v with_o his_o enemy_n why_o do_v he_o not_o instance_n in_o some_o word_n of_o i_o as_o to_o theophylus_fw-la and_o cyril_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n and_o the_o historian_n that_o concur_v with_o they_o be_v their_o enemy_n and_o if_o in_o recite_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n i_o recite_v their_o enemy_n word_n so_o do_v surius_n nicholinus_fw-la binnius_n baronius_n and_o all_o just_a writer_n of_o those_o act_n and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o chrysostom_n himself_o or_o isidore_n pelusiota_n have_v any_o enmity_n to_o they_o nor_o pope_n innocent_a neither_o of_o the_o rest_n before_o §_o 7._o vii_o the_o next_o degree_n of_o credibility_n that_o i_o mention_v be_v that_o which_o depend_v on_o the_o veracity_n and_o fitness_n of_o the_o reporter_n of_o which_o i_o name_v nine_o thing_n requisite_a here_o he_o suppose_v i_o one_o that_o be_v unfit_a and_o particular_o say_v whether_o any_o have_v ●ailed_v with_o great_a intemperance_n and_o less_o provocation_n ans_fw-fr 1._o i_o be_o not_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o mention_a council_n or_o pope_n or_o bishop_n but_o the_o transcriber_n let_v i_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o tribe_n have_v make_v i_o that_o prove_v not_o that_o socrates_n sozomen_n theodorite_n nitephorus_fw-la etc._n etc._n or_o binnius_n baronius_n etc._n etc._n have_v misreport_v what_o they_o write_v if_o i_o have_v misreport_v these_o author_n in_o any_o material_a point_n prove_v it_o and_o i_o will_v soon_o retract_v it_o as_o for_o my_o rail_n i_o expect_v that_o title_n from_o all_o such_o who_o fault_n i_o name_n and_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n he_o that_o call_v man_n to_o repent_v call_v they_o sinner_n and_o that_o be_v rail_a he_o it_o never_o so_o great_a his_o first_o instance_a rail_n be_v pag._n 19_o a_fw-la few_o turbulent_a prelate_n persecute_v good_a man_n he_n say_v thus_o i_o call_v the_o present_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v he_o mean_v all_o or_o some_o if_o all_o he_o be_v a_o untrue_a historian_n he_o may_v see_v many_o name_v before_o my_o apology_n who_o i_o except_v and_o if_o i_o have_v name_v two_o i_o have_v annex_v the_o proof_n the_o next_o be_v pag._n 46._o silence_v destroy_a prelate_n ans_fw-fr be_v there_o none_o such_o be_v not_o about_o 2000_o here_o silence_v do_v we_o not_o continue_v so_o and_o impoverish_v almost_o 20_o year_n have_v none_o perish_v in_o prison_n or_o with_o want_n do_v man_n call_v out_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n and_o plead_v for_o our_o silence_v as_o a_o good_a work_n and_o take_v it_o for_o rail_v to_o have_v it_o name_v do_v not_o conscience_n recoil_v in_o these_o man_n when_o in_o pulpit_n press_v and_o conference_n they_o maintain_v it_o to_o be_v a_o good_a work_n and_o tell_v the_o world_n how_o sinful_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o ruler_n to_o suffer_v we_o out_o of_o gaol_n what_o be_v you_o now_o ashamed_a of_o your_o meritorious_a work_n sure_o they_o be_v s●ant_v good_a if_o it_o be_v rail_v to_o name_v they_o you_o will_v not_o say_v i_o rail_v if_o i_o call_v you_o preacher_n and_o why_o do_v you_o say_v so_o if_o i_o call_v you_o silencer_n if_o that_o be_v as_o good_a the_o next_o rail_n be_v pag._n 73_o if_o all_o the_o proud_a contentious_a ambitious_a hereticate_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v of_o this_o christian_a mind_n to_o endure_v each_o other_o in_o small_a tolerable_a difference_n what_o sin_n scandal_n and_o shame_n what_o crime_n confusion_n and_o misery_n have_v the_o christian_a world_n escape_v and_o be_v this_o rail_n have_v the_o christian_a world_n have_v no_o such_o bishop_n these_o 1000_o year_n
quam_fw-la à_fw-la baptismo_fw-la hauserant_fw-la puritatem_fw-la eam_fw-la nulla_fw-la aspersam_fw-la vitii_fw-la alicujus_fw-la macula_fw-la &_o soeditate_v conservarent_fw-la imo_fw-la ca_fw-mi se_fw-la veritate_fw-la adhibita_fw-la ut_fw-la fugiendum_fw-la sibi_fw-la detestandumque_fw-la peccatum_fw-la quovis_fw-la terror_fw-la proposito_fw-la putarent_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la autem_fw-la multa_fw-la crimina_fw-la peccataque_fw-la numerabantur_fw-la quorum_fw-la authores_fw-la artificesque_fw-la absolutionem_fw-la omnem_fw-la desperabant_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o ea_fw-la quoque_fw-la quibus_fw-la ignoscet_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la concedi_fw-la opertere_fw-la censuerat_fw-la peccata_fw-la ita_fw-la ulciscebatur_fw-la ●ut_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la semel_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la ea_fw-la commisissent_fw-la unius_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la copiam_fw-la faceret_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la post_fw-la baptismum_fw-la lethaliter_fw-la peccassent_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la reconciliatus_fw-la in_o idem_fw-la aut_fw-la aliud_fw-la mortale_fw-la peccatum_fw-la iterum_fw-la prolaberetur_fw-la ita_fw-la in_o perpetuum_fw-la tribus_fw-la primis_fw-la saeculis_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la repulsam_fw-la ferebat_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la &_o in_fw-la morte_fw-la precum_fw-la quae_fw-la reliqua_fw-la erant_fw-la subsidia_fw-la expectanda_fw-la sibi_fw-la duceret_fw-la nulla_fw-la absolutione_n data_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o spem_fw-la veniae_fw-la illum_fw-la erigeret_fw-la and_o he_o add_v that_o many_o that_o can_v deny_v his_o proof_n yet_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o ever_o such_o a_o discipline_n be_v use_v but_o this_o be_v in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n after_o when_o prosperity_n and_o wealth_n entice_v the_o ungodly_a into_o bishop_n seat_n and_o into_o the_o church_n the_o case_n be_v alter_v and_o as_o he_o show_v observe_v 6._o the_o case_n be_v so_o alter_v to_o the_o loose_a extreme_a that_o criminal_n be_v admit_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la and_o in_o his_o note_n on_o tertullian_n he_o show_v that_o this_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o orthodox_n and_o the_o heretic_n that_o the_o orthodox_n do_v di●_n multumque_fw-la deliberare_fw-la quos_fw-la in_o societatem_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o corporis_fw-la recipere_fw-la debeant_fw-la but_o the_o heretic_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v all_o that_o come_v yet_o i_o suppose_v not_o near_o so_o loose_a as_o those_o diocesan_n and_o parochial_a church_n that_o know_v not_o who_o come_v but_o without_o question_n take_v all_o that_o will_v but_o come_v to_o the_o rail_n and_o kneel_v and_o when_o by_o the_o magnitude_n of_o diocese_n and_o other_o mean_n they_o have_v secure_v themselves_o against_o the_o trouble_n and_o possibility_n of_o pastoral_n discipline_n the_o priest_n wipe_v off_o all_o guilt_n with_o a_o word_n and_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v atheist_n hobbist_n sadducee_n whoremonger_n common_a blasphemer_n drunkard_n it_o be_v no_o fault_n of_o i_o i_o know_v it_o not_o and_o no_o wonder_n when_o he_o know_v not_o who_o in_o the_o parish_n be_v his_o flock_n that_o eusebius_n himself_o and_o other_o name_v by_o petavius_n mistake_v the_o novatian_o be_v no_o wonder_n to_o those_o who_o read_v the_o volume_n of_o palpable_a falsehood_n write_v against_o the_o nonconformist_n in_o this_o present_a age_n and_o hear_v witness_n at_o the_o bar_n swear_v those_o plot_n and_o conspiracy_n &_o treason_n against_o man_n from_o which_o grave_n and_o conscionable_a jury_n quit_v they_o but_o i_o think_v when_o mr._n m._n have_v say_v that_o socrates_n be_v a_o historian_n of_o good_a credit_n and_o acquaint_v with_o they_o he_o much_o forget_v his_o own_o end_n when_o he_o recite_v these_o word_n as_o his_o some_o take_v part_n with_o novatian_n and_o other_o with_o cornelius_n according_a to_o their_o several_a inclination_n and_o course_n of_o life_n the_o loose_a and_o more_o licentious_a sort_n favour_v the_o most_o indulgent_a discipline_n the_o other_o of_o more_o austere_a life_n incline_v most_o to_o the_o novatian_a severity_n good_a still_o i_o now_o see_v that_o the_o novatian_o indeed_o be_v puritan_n though_o episcopal_n and_o i_o accuse_v not_o our_o accuser_n of_o any_o such_o heresy_n but_o i_o confess_v that_o i_o shall_v believe_v a_o novatian_a historian_n who_o be_v so_o strict_a against_o sin_n must_v be_v strict_a against_o a_o lie_n rather_o than_o those_o that_o scorn_v such_o puritanism_n and_o deride_v the_o person_n that_o can_v swallow_v a_o big_a pill_n and_o when_o mr._n m._n labour_n to_o show_v out_o of_o socrates_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_a idolatry_n that_o they_o censure_v he_o labour_v in_o vain_a it_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o schism_n that_o i_o mention_v and_o not_o socrates_n his_o age._n as_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n and_o all_o the_o three_o first_o age_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o what_o albaspine_n say_v before_o if_o you_o can_v consute_n he_o do_v i_o be_o not_o engage_v to_o defend_v he_o but_o i_o believe_v he_o §_o 26._o i_o conclude_v this_o and_o the_o former_a chapter_n with_o this_o counsel_n to_o the_o scorner_n of_o puritan_n never_o trust_v to_o your_o title_n and_o order_n how_o good_a soever_o without_o a_o careful_a holy_a obedience_n to_o the_o supreme_a lawgiver_n either_o for_o concord_n on_o earth_n or_o salvation_n in_o heaven_n true_a parish-reformation_n be_v the_o way_n to_o satisfy_v godly_a person_n better_a than_o either_o violence_n or_o separation_n but_o if_o you_o still_o obstinate_o resist_v parish_n discipline_n and_o reformation_n you_o must_v have_v toleration_n of_o such_o as_o will_v not_o consent_v to_o your_o corruption_n or_o else_o persecute_v the_o best_a to_o your_o own_o ruin_n theophilus_n parochialis_fw-la have_v say_v more_o for_o parish_n order_n against_o the_o regulars_n and_o privilege_v than_o you_o have_v do_v against_o the_o separatist_n and_o yet_o the_o confraternity_n of_o the_o oratorian_n set_v up_o in_o every_o parish_n be_v the_o best_a way_n he_o can_v devise_v to_o recover_v the_o state_n of_o lapse_v parish_n as_o the_o privilege_n of_o friar_n be_v the_o pope_n last_o remedy_n instead_o of_o reform_v his_o corrupt_a church_n chap._n xix_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o some_o follow_v §_o 1._o this_o historian_n have_v put_v himself_o into_o a_o military_a posture_n seem_v to_o conceit_n that_o every_o word_n proceed_v from_o a_o enemy_n and_o first_o he_o feign_v i_o to_o make_v constantine_n judge_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o council_n be_v of_o little_a use_n when_o i_o have_v no_o such_o word_n or_o thought_n but_o the_o contrary_n §_o 2._o next_o he_o himself_o confess_v that_o which_o i_o blame_v those_o bishop_n for_o even_o those_o libel_n which_o they_o contentious_o offer_v against_o one_o another_o to_o have_v raise_v quarrel_n instead_o of_o peace_n and_o which_o constantine_n cast_v altogether_o into_o the_o fire_n without_o read_v they_o and_o when_o he_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v be_v he_o not_o a_o railer_n at_o the_o bishop_n as_o much_o as_o i_o in_o that_o as_o to_o his_o excuse_n that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n consider_v their_o great_a dissension_n in_o religion_n etc._n etc._n i_o easy_o grant_v it_o but_o in_o this_o excuse_n he_o say_v yet_o more_o against_o they_o §_o 3._o because_o i_o say_v that_o athanasius_n differ_v from_o constantine_n about_o the_o reception_n of_o arius_n his_o repentance_n cause_v much_o calamity_n he_o feign_v i_o heinous_o to_o accuse_v athanasius_n which_o i_o intend_v not_o even_o a_o just_a action_n may_v cause_v calamity_n as_o christ_n say_v his_o gospel_n will_v bring_v division_n all_o his_o labour_n in_o justify_v athanasius_n fight_v but_o with_o a_o spectre_n of_o his_o own_o imagination_n and_o yet_o i_o be_o incline_v to_o think_v that_o if_o a_o hypocrite_n arius_n have_v be_v connive_v at_o to_o please_v such_o a_o emperor_n the_o death_n of_o arius_n will_v have_v leave_v the_o church_n quiet_a than_o it_o do_v though_o he_o here_o think_v great_a rigour_n have_v be_v safe_a and_o i_o think_v multitude_n of_o sadducee_n infidel_n and_o debauch_a person_n in_o one_o of_o our_o diocese_n yea_o or_o parish_n be_v worse_a than_o one_o arius_n while_o hypocrisy_n restrain_v he_o from_o vent_v his_o opinion_n §_o 4._o and_o here_o he_o that_o dream_v i_o accuse_v athanasius_n real_o accuse_v constantine_n as_o impose_v on_o by_o a_o counterfeit_n repentance_n and_o restore_v the_o incendiary_n to_o opportunity_n of_o do_v mischief_n and_o be_v against_o the_o mean_n that_o may_v have_v end_v that_o fatal_a mischief_n but_o i_o confess_v constantine_n be_v no_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v not_o a_o accusation_n of_o bishop_n or_o a_o rail_n at_o they_o §_o 5._o next_o when_o i_o have_v full_o open_v the_o case_n of_o the_o mel●tians_n out_o of_o epiphanius_n on_o pretence_n of_o abbreviate_a he_o leave_v out_o that_o which_o he_o like_v not_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o the_o nonconformist_n have_v advantage_v the_o papist_n if_o i_o think_v the_o man_n believe_v himself_o i_o will_v try_v to_o undeceive_v
which_o be_v simple_a christianity_n we_o return_v to_o it_o by_o reformation_n beside_o the_o dectrine_n of_o two_o nature_n about_o which_o they_o see_v they_o agree_v in_o sense_n while_o the_o jesuit_n hereticate_v they_o three_o thing_n much_o alienate_v the_o habassine_n 1._o deny_v they_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n 2._o rebaptise_v their_o child_n 3._o reordain_v their_o priest_n this_o much_o be_v do_v the_o papist_n be_v by_o degree_n soon_o overcome_v 1._o the_o patriarch_n be_v accuse_v for_o preach_v sedition_n 2._o then_o the_o temple_n be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o they_o break_v their_o own_o image_n lest_o the_o habassine_n shall_v do_v it_o in_o seorn_n 3._o on_o sept._n 16._o 1632._o the_o king_n die_v and_o his_o son_n basilides_n be_v against_o they_o 4._o ras-seelaxus_a their_o most_o powerful_a friend_n be_v banish_v and_o other_o after_o he_o 5._o upon_o more_o accusation_n their_o farm_n good_n and_o gun_n be_v seize_v on_o 6._o they_o be_v confine_v to_o fremona_n thence_o they_o petition_v again_o for_o new_a disputation_n the_o king_n basilides_n answer_v they_o thus_o by_o writing_n what_o i_o do_v heretofore_o be_v do_v by_o my_o father_n command_n who_o i_o must_v needs_o obey_v so_o that_o by_o his_o conduct_n i_o make_v war_n against_o my_o kindred_n and_o subject_n but_o after_o the_o last_o battle_n in_o wainadega_n both_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a clergy_n and_o laity_n civil_a and_o military_a man_n great_a and_o small_a fearless_o say_v to_o my_o father_n the_o king_n how_o long_o shall_v we_o be_v vex_v &_o tire_v with_o unprofitable_a thing_n how_o long_o shall_v we_o fight_v against_o our_o brethren_n and_o near_a friend_n cut_v off_o our_o right_a hand_n with_o our_o left_n how_o long_o shall_v we_o turn_v our_o sword_n against_o our_o own_o bowel_n when_o yet_o by_o the_o roman_a belief_n we_o know_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o know_v before_o for_o what_o the_o roman_n call_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n the_o divinity_n and_o humanity_n we_o know_v it_o long_o ago_o from_o the_o begin_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n for_o we_o all_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n perfect_a god_n in_o his_o divinity_n and_o perfect_a man_n in_o his_o humanity_n but_o whereas_o those_o nature_n be_v not_o separate_v nor_o divide_v for_o each_o of_o they_o subsist_v not_o by_o itself_o but_o conjunct_a with_o the_o other_o therefore_o we_o say_v not_o that_o they_o be_v two_o thing_n for_o one_o be_v make_v of_o two_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o the_o nature_n be_v not_o confound_v or_o mix_v in_o his_o be_v this_o controversy_n therefore_o be_v of_o small_a moment_n among_o we_o nor_o do_v we_o fight_v much_o for_o this_o but_o special_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o the_o blood_n be_v deny_v the_o laity_n in_o the_o lucharist_n whenas_o christ_n himself_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v eternal_a life_n but_o they_o detest_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o reiteration_n of_o baptism_n as_o if_o before_o the_o father_n rebaptise_v we_o we_o have_v be_v heathen_n or_o publican_n and_o that_o they_o reordain_v our_o priest_n and_o deacon_n you_o too_o late_o offer_v we_o now_o that_o which_o may_v have_v be_v yield_v at_o the_o first_o for_o there_o be_v now_o no_o return_v to_o that_o which_o all_o look_n at_o with_o the_o great_a horror_n and_o detestation_n and_o therefore_o all_o further_a conference_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a in_o short_a the_o patriarch_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v utter_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n ludolph_n l._n 3._o c._n 13._o i_o add_v one_o but_o thing_n ex_fw-la cap._n 14._o to_o end_v the_o story_n as_o the_o new_a alexandrian_a abuna_n be_v come_v out_o of_o egypt_n the_o foresay_a dr._n peter_n heyling_n of_o lubeck_n be_v then_o in_o egypt_n take_v that_o opportunity_n to_o see_v habassia_n and_o go_v with_o he_o on_o the_o border_n at_o suagena_n they_o meet_v the_o depart_a roman_a patriarch_n where_o peter_n heyling_n enter_v the_o list_n with_o he_o &_o so_o handle_v he_o as_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o poor_a habassine_a priest_n unlearnedness_n which_o have_v give_v the_o jesuit_n their_o success_n and_o the_o patriarch_n at_o the_o part_n sigh_v say_v to_o his_o company_n if_o this_o doctor_n come_v into_o habassia_n he_o will_v precipitate_v they_o into_o the_o extreme_a heresy_n but_o what_o become_v of_o he_o be_v yet_o unknown_a and_o so_o much_o for_o this_o history_n of_o the_o roman_a conquest_n in_o habassia_n by_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n and_o the_o hereticate_a the_o habassine_n about_o the_o one_o or_o two_o nature_n and_o the_o eight_o year_n possession_n popery_n get_v by_o it_o and_o the_o many_o bloody_a battle_n fight_v for_o it_o the_o prelate_n powerful_a oratory_n for_o it_o and_o the_o people_n more_o powerful_a against_o it_o the_o king_n mind_n change_v by_o sad_a experience_n and_o the_o papist_n final_o extirpate_v and_o it_o be_v exceed_o observable_a that_o their_o very_a victory_n be_v their_o ruin_n and_o the_o last_o and_o great_a which_o kill_v 8000_o be_v it_o that_o overcome_v they_o when_o they_o think_v they_o have_v do_v their_o work_n and_o those_o that_o conquer_v for_o they_o drive_v they_o out_o when_o they_o consider_v what_o they_o have_v do_v but_o have_v it_o not_o be_v better_o know_v at_o a_o cheap_a rate_n this_o tragedy_n be_v but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o council_n which_o mr._n morrice_n justify_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o church_n determination_n above_o 1200_o year_n ago_o if_o you_o have_v see_v the_o field_n of_o blood_n in_o habassia_n will_v it_o not_o have_v incline_v you_o to_o my_o opinion_n against_o mr._n m._n or_o if_o he_o have_v see_v it_o will_v it_o not_o have_v change_v his_o mind_n i_o doubt_v it_o will_v not_o because_o the_o silencing_n and_o calamity_n in_o england_n no_o more_o move_v such_o man_n and_o because_o they_o still_o call_v for_o execution_n against_o those_o that_o obey_v not_o all_o their_o oath_n and_o ceremony_n and_o will_v abate_v nothing_o what_o ever_o it_o may_v oft_o the_o land_n by_o the_o strengthen_n of_o they_o that_o be_v for_o our_o division_n and_o because_o the_o 1200_o year_n experience_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o see_v the_o faultiness_n of_o such_o bishop_n &_o council_n ●ay_n because_o they_o yet_o take_v not_o all_o god_n law_n in_o nature_n and_o scripture_n for_o sufficient_a to_o rule_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o religion_n without_o the_o law_n of_o these_o same_o council_n which_o have_v have_v such_o effect_n but_o some_o bishop_n and_o cle●●g●_n man_n yet_o stand_v to_o it_o that_o all_o must_v be_v take_v as_o schismatic_n who_o obey_v no●_n these_o same_o council_n decree_n as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o if_o lud●lp●●s_v and_o the_o abassine_n can_v say_v so_o much_o against_o here_o 〈…〉_z g_o those_o call_a eutychian_o much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o nestorian_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o contro_fw-mi u●●s●_n be_v but_o verbal_a there_o be_v in_o biblioth_n pat._n to._n 6._o p._n 131._o the_o missa_fw-la quâ_fw-la utuntur_fw-la antiqui_fw-la christiani_n episcopatus_fw-la angamallensis_n in_o montanis_n mallabarici_n regni_fw-la apud_fw-la indos_n orientales_fw-la emendata_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la erroribus_fw-la blasphemiisque_fw-la nestorianorum_n expurgata_fw-la per_fw-la alexium_fw-la menesium_n archiepiscopum_fw-la goanum_n a_o 1599_o i_o have_v rather_o have_v have_v it_o with_o all_o its_o error_n that_o we_o may_v have_v true_o know_v how_o much_o be_v genuine_a but_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o scriptural_a rational_a and_o well_o compose_v liturgy_n of_o all_o there_o publish_v it_o will_v make_v one_o think_v 1._o that_o these_o nestorian_n be_v not_o so_o bad_a a_o people_n as_o their_o anathematiser_n will_v have_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v they_o 2._o that_o the_o banishment_n of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o accidental_o prove_v a_o great_a mean_n of_o the_o church_n enlargement_n beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n whither_o they_o be_v banish_v and_o this_o be_v plain_a in_o current_a history_n i_o have_v give_v you_o this_o account_n of_o my_o design_n in_o both_o the_o book_n the_o history_n of_o council_n with_o its_o vindication_n and_o the_o follow_a treatise_n i_o add_v a_o answer_n to_o a_o lord_n bishop_n of_o cork_n and_o rosse_n who_o have_v write_v many_o historical_a untruth_n by_o his_o credulity_n believe_v false_a reporter_n as_o to_o his_o and_o other_o reprehension_n of_o my_o sharp_a unpeaceable_a word_n my_o case_n be_v hard_a my_o own_o conscience_n at_o once_o forbid_v i_o to_o justify_v my_o
style_n or_o passion_n and_o also_o tell_v i_o that_o if_o make_v odious_a god_n servant_n silence_v and_o persecute_v faithful_a minister_n and_o perjury_n shall_v prove_v as_o great_a a_o guilt_n and_o danger_n of_o destruction_n to_o the_o land_n as_o be_v fear_v i_o can_v justify_v my_o long_a silence_n nor_o that_o i_o use_v no_o more_o plainness_n and_o fervency_n in_o call_v the_o guilty_a to_o repent_v the_o content_n i._o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o the_o way_n by_o which_o this_o generation_n confute_v their_o adversary_n in_o several_a instance_n ii_o in_o the_o general_n part_n §_o 1._o hard_o for_o young_a man_n to_o know_v what_o teacher_n or_o history_n to_o believe_v §_o 7._o tempt_v reason_n for_o papacy_n §_o 8._o evident_a against_o it_o §_o 9_o the_o step_v by_o which_o bishop_n ascend_v to_o papacy_n §_o 15._o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o popery_n in_o the_o english_a §_o 18._o the_o case_n of_o fact_n discern_v what_o judgement_n i_o settle_v in_o about_o church-power_n §_o 20._o for_o what_o mr._n m._n have_v write_v with_o so_o much_o displeasure_n against_o i_o §_o 22._o instance_n of_o above_o a_o hundred_o council_n beside_o particular_a bishop_n all_o before_o an._n 1050._o of_o who_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o sober_a man_n whether_o they_o have_v not_o be_v the_o tearer_n of_o the_o church_n general_a instance_n of_o the_o great_a schism_n since_o then_o by_o popish_a bps._n some_o question_n put_v to_o mr._n m._n and_o some_o reason_n to_o abate_v his_o displeasure_n §_o 22._o of_o a_o late_a book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o my_o life_n to_o prove_v i_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n §_o 24._o whether_o i_o be_v guilty_a of_o falsify_v history_n iii_o the_o particular_a answer_n to_o mr._n m_n vindication_n ch._n 1._o the_o reason_n and_o design_n of_o my_o history_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o bishop_n and_o council_n ch._n 2._o whether_o we_o ought_v to_o tell_v of_o the_o bishop_n and_o council_n church-corrupting_a way_n ch._n 3._o of_o mr._n m_n industry_n to_o show_v i_o to_o be_v unlearned_a ch._n 4._o whether_o i_o vain_o name_v historian_n which_o i_o never_o read_v ch._n 5._o of_o my_o use_n of_o translation_n and_o follow_v binnius_n ch._n 6._o his_o charge_n of_o my_o own_o mistranslation_n and_o mistake_n ch._n 7._o his_o false_a supposition_n that_o i_o be_o only_o for_o a_o church_n of_o one_o congregation_n ch._n 8._o his_o false_a supposition_n that_o i_o be_o against_o diocesanes_n when_o it_o be_v only_o the_o ill_a species_n ch._n 9_o and_o that_o i_o be_o a_o independent_a and_o yet_o plead_v for_o presbyterian_o ch._n 10._o his_o false_a accusation_n that_o i_o make_v the_o bishop_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o schism_n ch._n 11._o and_o that_o i_o mention_v all_o the_o bishop_n fault_n and_o none_o of_o their_o goodness_n ch._n 12._o his_o accusation_n of_o spite_n malice_n and_o rail_a examine_v dr._n burnet_n satisfy_v ch._n 13._o his_o supposition_n that_o i_o speak_v against_o all_o bishop_n council_n ch._n 14._o some_o man_n credit_n about_o ancient_a history_n try_v by_o their_o history_n of_o this_o age._n twenty_o instance_n of_o the_o history_n of_o our_o time_n my_o own_o experience_n of_o it_o whether_o i_o hate_v compliance_n with_o superior_n or_o to_o preach_v by_o licence_n ch._n 15._o mr._n m._n magisterial_a authorise_v or_o reject_v what_o historian_n he_o please_v his_o accusation_n of_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n and_o value_v valesius_fw-la simond_n etc._n etc._n ch._n 16._o his_o observation_n on_o my_o note_n of_o credible_a and_o incredible_a history_n his_o instance_n of_o my_o rail_a particular_o consider_v whether_o the_o word_n hereticate_a be_v rail_n or_o causeless_a a_o instance_n of_o fifty_o five_o of_o bp._n st._n philastrius_n accuse_v heress_n by_o which_o i_o desire_v any_o sober_a man_n to_o judge_v other_o instance_n whether_o st._n theophilus_n or_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n be_v the_o criminal_n even_o pope_n honorius_n and_o vigilius_n hereticate_v for_o be_v wise_a than_o other_o pope_n ch._n 17._o of_o his_o censure_n of_o my_o design_n and_o church_n principle_n whether_o i_o be_v guilty_a of_o expose_v christianity_n more_o than_o julian_n &_o lucian_n ch._n 18._o of_o his_o 2d_o chap._n who_o be_v most_o against_o discipline_n of_o anathematise_v whether_o novatus_n be_v a_o bishop_n or_o a_o ordain_v presbyter_n council_n for_o rebaptise_v his_o self-contradiction_n some_o question_n to_o he_o whether_o the_o diocesane_a party_n as_o mr._n dodwel_n who_o nullify_v our_o sacrament_n be_v heretic_n if_o the_o re-baptisers_a be_v such_o the_o old_a qu._n be_v not_o of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n but_o of_o such_o as_o heretic_n have_v baptize_v of_o the_o donatist_n and_o many_o council_n of_o our_o liturgy_n rule_n to_o find_v easter-day_n what_o the_o novatian_o hold_v petavius_n and_o albaspineus_n testimony_n of_o they_o his_o quarrel_n about_o epiphanius_n the_o arian_n the_o audian_o divers_a synod_n antioch_n of_o the_o circumcellian_o optatus_n of_o the_o donatist_n as_o brethren_n his_o excuse_n of_o the_o bishop_n ch._n 19_o of_o the_o one_a general_n council_n at_o c._n p._n whether_o bishop_n follow_v emperor_n their_o usage_n of_o greg._n nazianz._n of_o the_o priscillianist_n the_o bishop_n and_o martin_n of_o my_o letter_n to_o dr._n hill_n of_o the_o council_n at_o capua_n jovinian_a easter_n african_n bps._n donatist_n theophilus_n aliars_n ch._n 20._o his_o 5_o chap._n of_o the_o one_a ephes_n council_n his_o revile_v socrates_n and_o sozomene_n as_o against_o cyril_n cyrils_n story_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o cruelty_n nestorius_n case_n his_o cavil_n against_o my_o translation_n the_o effect_n of_o that_o council_n at_o this_o day_n consider_v ch._n 21._o of_o the_o 2d_o ephes_n council_n of_o cyril_n the_o eutychian_o and_o dioscorus_n ch._n 22._o of_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n pulcheria_n and_o eudocia_n what_o one_o sound_a man_n can_v do_v in_o a_o council_n whether_o our_o late_a conciliatory_a endeavour_n about_o arminianism_n have_v be_v as_o vain_a as_o these_o council_n of_o theodos_n 2._o and_o the_o eutychian_o the_o whole_a story_n of_o that_o council_n luther_n as_o well_o as_o i_o make_v the_o controversy_n verbal_a of_o the_o bishop_n peccavimus_fw-la many_o accusation_n refell_v more_o of_o the_o council_n success_n and_o late_a conciliator_n the_o westminster_n synod_n mr._n m_n way_n of_o concord_n of_o the_o old_a conformity_n and_o we_o mr._n edward_n gangrena_fw-la and_o the_o late_a sect_n and_o heresy_n ch._n 24._o of_o his_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o old_a heresy_n whether_o project_n for_o moderation_n have_v be_v the_o chief_a distracter_n of_o the_o church_n he_o oft_o false_o say_v that_o i_o charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o all_o the_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n what_o it_o be_v that_o i_o say_v of_o they_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o schism_n confess_v his_o misreport_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o bishop_n his_o false_a say_n of_o i_o that_o i_o compare_v oliver_n and_o his_o son_n to_o david_n and_o solomon_n my_o profess_a repentance_n which_o he_o seign_v i_o a_o enemy_n to_o what_o nonconformity_n be_v and_o what_o his_o misreport_n of_o it_o a_o explitatory_n profession_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o book_n against_o misinterpreter_n the_o ready_a way_n of_o confute_v mr._n baxter_n a_o specimen_fw-la of_o the_o present_a mode_n of_o controversy_n in_o england_n joh._n 8._o 44._o 1_o king_n 22._o 22._o prov._n 29._o 12._o &_o 19_o 5_o 9_o rev._n 21._o 8._o &_o 22._o 15._o in_o 1662._o dr._n boreman_n of_o trinity-college_n in_o cambridge_n publish_v a_o book_n against_o i_o as_o have_v write_v to_o dr._n hill_n against_o physical-predetermination_a to_o sin_n and_o in_o it_o say_v that_o it_o be_v report_v that_o i_o kill_v a_o man_n with_o my_o own_o hand_n in_o cold_a blood_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a i_o be_o not_o the_o first_o that_o have_v be_v wrong_v the_o man_n though_o promote_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o this_o parish_n st._n giles_n in_o the_o field_n be_v account_v so_o weak_a forbear_v his_o ministry_n and_o say_v he_o be_v suspend_v some_o year_n before_o he_o die_v that_o i_o think_v it_o vain_a to_o take_v public_a notice_n of_o his_o word_n neither_o imagine_v whence_o he_o have_v they_o nor_o ever_o hear_v of_o they_o before_o but_o a_o few_o week_n before_o the_o late_a plot_n be_v report_v one_o mr._n p._n come_v to_o i_o and_o tell_v i_o that_o at_o the_o coffeehouse_n in_o fullers-rent_n where_o papist_n and_o protectants_n use_v familiar_o to_o meet_v he_o provoke_v the_o papist_n to_o answer_v my_o book_n or_o to_o dispute_v with_o i_o be_v answer_v by_o a_o gentleman_n of_o this_o parish_n say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o mr._n baxter_n have_v kill_v a_o man_n in_o cold_a blood_n with_o his_o
command_v it_o 5._o i_o find_v that_o christ_n have_v himself_o do_v the_o work_n for_o which_o the_o necessity_n of_o universal_a humane_a government_n by_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v pretend_v viz._n he_o have_v make_v and_o cause_v his_o apostle_n peculiar_o qualify_v for_o it_o to_o record_v universal_a church-law_n even_o as_o many_o as_o be_v universal_o necessary_a and_o if_o so_o i_o can_v but_o think_v 1._o that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o better_o than_o man_n can_v do_v 2._o and_o that_o to_o add_v more_o unnecessary_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o snare_n and_o burden_n to_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o usurp_a the_o power_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o universal_a governor_n there_o be_v no_o other_o that_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v universal_a law_n therefore_o this_o be_v treason_n against_o christ_n and_o a_o make_v man_n a_o vice-christ_n 6._o i_o find_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o natural_a capacity_n in_o any_o one_o or_o many_o for_o a_o universal_a government_n church-government_n be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o make_v it_o far_o more_o impossible_a than_o for_o one_o monarch_n or_o aristocracy_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o do_v it_o by_o a_o true_o general_n council_n or_o by_o the_o diffuse_v bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v further_a from_o possibility_n than_o to_o do_v it_o by_o a_o pope_n 7._o i_o search_v the_o council_n pretend_v to_o be_v general_n to_o see_v whether_o they_o have_v make_v any_o better_a law_n than_o christ_n or_o make_v any_o desirable_a addition_n and_o i_o find_v 1._o that_o while_o they_o be_v not_o whole_o papist_n they_o never_o pretend_v to_o make_v canon_n for_o any_o christian_n but_o only_o those_o in_o the_o roman_a empire_n 2._o and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v much_o happy_a for_o the_o church_n if_o they_o have_v make_v no_o more_o law_n than_o christ_n have_v make_v they_o for_o holy_a doctrine_n worship_n and_o church-discipline_n and_o have_v only_o as_o teacher_n expound_v and_o apply_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n 8._o i_o consider_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o i_o find_v it_o such_o as_o no_o party_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n do_v own_o the_o pope_n plead_v for_o a_o universal_a sovereignty_n and_o all_o his_o clergy_n do_v the_o same_o some_o say_n it_o be_v in_o council_n some_o in_o the_o pope_n and_o most_o in_o both_o together_o or_o council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o protestant_n greek_n nestorian_n jacobite_n and_o almost_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n accuse_v this_o roman_a church_n and_o claim_n the_o papist_n condemn_v the_o rest_n the_o greek_n arminian_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n accuse_v each_o other_o 9_o i_o consider_v what_o popery_n be_v that_o be_v clergy-power_n in_o its_o height_n and_o what_o it_o have_v do_v in_o the_o world_n and_o i_o find_v 1._o a_o woeful_a description_n of_o the_o life_n of_o multitude_n of_o pope_n record_v by_o their_o own_o most_o credit_v historian_n and_o 2._o i_o find_v multitude_n of_o vicious_a canon_n obtrude_v by_o they_o as_o law_n on_o the_o universal_a church_n 3._o i_o find_v most_o doleful_a history_n of_o the_o war_n and_o rebellion_n that_o they_o have_v cause_v from_o age_n to_o age._n 4._o i_o find_v that_o they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o abundance_n of_o particular_n 5._o and_o that_o they_o have_v lock_v up_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n from_o the_o vulgar_a as_o they_o have_v not_o do_v their_o canon_n 6._o and_o that_o they_o have_v turn_v god_n spiritual_a worship_n into_o a_o multitude_n of_o superstitious_a rite_n and_o scenical_a ceremony_n and_o show_n 7._o and_o that_o they_o have_v turn_v spiritual_a church-discipline_n into_o a_o secular_a sort_n of_o tyranny_n 8._o and_o that_o they_o have_v most_o schismatical_o unchurch_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n 9_o and_o that_o they_o have_v brand_v the_o sound_a church_n with_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n while_o they_o be_v the_o grand_a heresy_n of_o the_o world_n 10._o and_o that_o they_o have_v be_v and_o be_v the_o great_a silencer_n of_o sound_a preacher_n and_o hinderer_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n 11._o and_o that_o they_o have_v woeful_o vitiate_v the_o people_n that_o be_v their_o subject_n so_o that_o odious_a wickedness_n feed_v by_o ignorance_n abound_v among_o they_o and_o it_o be_v their_o votary_n that_o be_v call_v religious_a and_o a_o few_o canonize_v person_n saint_n as_o if_o religion_n and_o sanctity_n be_v rarity_n or_o any_o can_v be_v save_v without_o they_o 12._o last_o i_o find_v that_o they_o have_v live_v upon_o blood_n like_o leech_n and_o have_v be_v the_o cruel_a persecutor_n of_o holy_a man_n on_o pretence_n of_o kill_a heretic_n and_o that_o it_o be_v this_o to_o which_o they_o trust_v 10._o i_o take_v not_o this_o notice_n of_o they_o upon_o mere_a prejudice_n but_o have_v read_v i_o think_v as_o many_o papist_n book_n as_o protestant_n or_o any_o other_o against_o they_o nor_o have_v i_o take_v it_o upon_o dark_a scripture_n prophecy_n suspect_v my_o understanding_n of_o they_o but_o 1._o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n from_o themselves_o 2._o against_o their_o papal_a supremacy_n from_o such_o argument_n as_o be_v full_o collect_v by_o dr._n barrow_n 3._o against_o their_o heinous_a church-corruption_n from_o such_o moral_a evidence_n as_o dr._n h._n moor_n have_v full_o gather_v in_o his_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 4._o against_o their_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n and_o antiquity_n i_o fetch_v my_o argument_n from_o the_o history_n and_o author_n which_o they_o themselves_o allege_v and_o especial_o their_o council_n with_o the_o father_n write_n §_o 9_o see_v the_o church_n in_o this_o sad_a condition_n and_o the_o papal_a part_n so_o great_o vitiate_v i_o consider_v how_o long_o it_o have_v so_o be_v and_o i_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o bishop_n grow_v not_o up_o like_o a_o mushroom_n in_o a_o day_n but_o have_v be_v long_o in_o thrive_a to_o maturity_n and_o i_o meet_v with_o no_o man_n that_o can_v just_o tell_v what_o year_n or_o what_o age_n the_o disease_n or_o tumour_n do_v begin_v bishop_n bromhall_n think_v if_o they_o will_v abate_v their_o last_o 400_o year_n innovation_n we_o may_v have_v hope_n of_o agree_v with_o they_o bishop_n gunning_n will_v own_v no_o general_n council_n but_o the_o first_o six_o some_o will_v receive_v eight_o some_o but_o four_o mr._n morris_n here_o go_v no_o further_a in_o his_o defence_n of_o they_o whatever_o he_o think_v some_o begin_v popery_n with_o leo_n the_o great_a some_o with_o gregory_n successor_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v first_o a_o embryo_n and_o next_o a_o infant_n and_o so_o grow_v up_o from_o childhood_n to_o maturity_n by_o degree_n and_o the_o first_o church-corruption_n be_v not_o that_o which_o we_o now_o call_v popery_n and_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o the_o tumour_n do_v neither_o begin_v nor_o grow_v up_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o but_o in_o other_o bishop_n who_o grow_v up_o with_o he_o &_o be_v his_o strength_n and_o council_n and_o he_o their_o head_n §_o 10._o it_o be_v know_v when_o the_o greek_n and_o roman_n begin_v most_o notable_o to_o strive_v which_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o how_o the_o division_n increase_v and_o when_o and_o how_o it_o come_v to_o a_o anathematise_v or_o excommunicate_v each_o other_o §_o 11._o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o ephesus_n that_o the_o great_a separate_a body_n of_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o now_o call_v jacobite_n that_o possess_v the_o east_n and_o south_n be_v break_v off_o with_o nestorius_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o so_o continue_v to_o this_o day_n §_o 12._o i_o consider_v who_o be_v the_o chief_a author_n of_o all_o these_o lamentable_a schism_n and_o church-corruption_n in_o the_o several_a age_n when_o they_o rise_v and_o who_o continue_v they_o to_o this_o day_n and_o i_o find_v that_o many_o prince_n be_v much_o to_o be_v blame_v and_o the_o people_n not_o innocent_a no_o not_o the_o religious_a monk_n but_o the_o bishop_n that_o have_v the_o main_a church-power_n by_o abuse_v it_o be_v with_o their_o clergy_n the_o principal_a cause_n and_o so_o be_v to_o this_o day_n the_o breach_n may_v yet_o be_v heal_v in_o east_n west_n and_o south_n be_v it_o not_o for_o they_o §_o 13._o find_v this_o in_o history_n of_o undoubted_a truth_n i_o next_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n shall_v become_v such_o church-corrupter_n and_o divider_n and_o still_o continue_v the_o church_n misery_n and_o
i_o find_v as_o follow_v 1._o that_o none_o be_v able_a to_o do_v so_o much_o hurt_v as_o those_o that_o have_v the_o great_a part_n power_n interest_n and_o trust_n none_o kill_v so_o many_o except_o soldier_n as_o those_o physician_n who_o be_v entrust_v to_o heal_v and_o save_v they_o if_o five_o hundred_o neighbour_n mistake_v a_o man_n disease_n who_o he_o never_o trust_v it_o hurt_v he_o not_o but_o a_o unskilful_a nurse_n or_o parent_n may_v kill_v a_o sick_a child_n and_o a_o unskilful_a or_o unfaithful_a physician_n may_v kill_v multitude_n 2._o and_o there_o go_v so_o much_o to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o skilful_a faithful_a pastor_n as_o that_o such_o be_v rare_a as_o a_o physician_n be_v like_a to_o kill_v his_o patient_n if_o he_o mistake_v but_o some_o one_o thing_n in_o his_o disease_n or_o some_o ingredient_n in_o his_o medicine_n though_o he_o be_v right_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n so_o if_o a_o guide_n of_o soul_n be_v excellent_a in_o all_o other_o thing_n what_o work_n one_o opinion_n yea_o or_o unskilful_a word_n may_v make_v not_o only_o the_o case_n of_o the_o nestorian_n eutychian_o monothelite_n etc._n etc._n tell_v we_o but_o even_o the_o strife_n that_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n about_o hypostasis_fw-la and_o persona_fw-la which_o have_v almost_o hereticated_a jerom_n himself_o for_o all_o his_o skill_n in_o the_o language_n and_o the_o case_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n about_o filioque_fw-la and_o abundance_n such_o 3._o and_o pride_n be_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o old_a man_n first_o living_n and_o last_o die_v and_o great_a power_n great_a part_n and_o great_a esteem_n do_v feed_v it_o if_o true_a grace_n do_v not_o mortify_v it_o knowledge_n puff_v up_o and_o especial_o when_o man_n live_v among_o the_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a and_o be_v but_o half_a learned_a themselves_o and_o be_v think_v by_o the_o people_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v much_o wise_a than_o they_o be_v inter_fw-la coecos_fw-la luscus_fw-la rex_fw-la 4._o and_o selfishness_n be_v the_o very_a sum_n of_o all_o positive_a iniquity_n and_o pride_n and_o selfishness_n make_v man_n desirous_a to_o be_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o seem_v as_o god_n know_v good_a and_o evil_n and_o to_o have_v their_o will_n of_o all_o that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o 5._o and_o the_o strong_a temptation_n use_v to_o cause_v the_o great_a sin_n §_o 14._o these_o general_n presuppose_v it_o be_v most_o clear_a 1._o that_o the_o remnant_n of_o these_o sin_n even_o in_o christ_n apostle_n set_v they_o on_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o make_v james_n and_o john_n desire_v pre-eminence_n and_o also_o to_o have_v call_v for_o fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o make_v they_o after_o christ_n resurrection_n hope_v that_o he_o will_v have_v restore_v the_o earthly_a kingdom_n unto_o israel_n and_o it_o put_v paul_n to_o vindicate_v his_o apostleship_n against_o many_o that_o disparage_v he_o as_o it_o make_v diotrephes_n who_o love_v to_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n to_o cast_v out_o the_o brethren_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o john_n it_o give_v peter_n occasion_n to_o warn_v the_o bishop_n not_o to_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n heritage_n but_o to_o be_v example_n to_o the_o flock_n overseeing_a they_o not_o by_o constraint_n but_o willing_o 2._o even_o in_o good_a man_n this_o fault_n though_o not_o in_o a_o reign_a degree_n do_v live_v more_o in_o other_o afterward_o that_o have_v not_o that_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v to_o overcome_v it_o and_o if_o even_o in_o paul_n day_n he_o have_v none_o likeminded_a to_o timothy_n who_o natural_o care_v for_o the_o good_a of_o all_o for_o all_o too_o much_o seek_v their_o own_o and_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n as_o demas_n forsake_v he_o for_o some_o worldly_a interest_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o afterward_o pride_n and_o worldliness_n grow_v great_a and_o heresy_n and_o strife_n increase_v 3._o yet_o while_o christianity_n be_v a_o suffering_n and_o laborious_a state_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v common_o the_o best_a man_n that_o have_v more_o knowledge_n holiness_n and_o love_n than_o other_o and_o the_o church_n prosper_v under_o the_o cross_n they_o that_o spare_v not_o their_o labour_n but_o imitate_v the_o pattern_n set_v by_o paul_n act_v 20._o do_v not_o strive_v who_o shall_v have_v the_o large_a diocese_n and_o undertake_v that_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v but_o they_o strive_v to_o do_v as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a and_o to_o increase_v and_o edify_v the_o flock_n 4._o but_o when_o extraordinary_a gift_n abate_v and_o acquire_v one_o become_v more_o necessary_a and_o few_o philosopher_n turn_v christian_n able_a take_v preacher_n or_o orator_n grow_v few_o and_o those_o few_o that_o be_v eminent_a in_o knowledge_n and_o speech_n be_v just_o prefer_v before_o the_o rest_n and_o usual_o some_o one_o man_n have_v the_o chief_a hand_n in_o convert_v man_n and_o gather_v a_o church_n in_o each_o particular_a town_n and_o then_o he_o rightful_o be_v take_v for_o their_o pastor_n and_o it_o be_v find_v that_o the_o public_a and_o private_a care_n of_o soul_n require_v in_o each_o church_n where_o be_v fit_a man_n more_o than_o one_o pastor_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o more_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o ●im_v that_o be_v there_o before_o without_o his_o approbation_n and_o consent_n but_o that_o he_o be_v to_o the_o junior_n as_o a_o father_n and_o because_o the_o rest_n be_v usualiy_v below_o he_o in_o gift_n and_o worth_a it_o be_v think_v but_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v what_o they_o do_v by_o his_o consent_n and_o also_o to_o avoid_v division_n to_o which_o they_o be_v over-prone_a it_o be_v judge_v fit_a that_o one_o shall_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n and_o a_o negative_a and_o partly_o roll_a vote_n 5._o the_o church_n which_o in_o the_o beginning_n have_v these_o bishop_n and_o fellow-presbyter_n be_v single_a congregation_n and_o short_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v more_o than_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o some_o few_o great_a city_n persecution_n hinder_v they_o from_o very_o large_a assembly_n beside_o their_o want_n of_o large_a capacious_a temple_n dr._n hammond_n think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n that_o in_o scripture-time_n there_o be_v any_o other_o presbyter_n than_o bishop_n and_o consequent_o a_o bishop_n have_v but_o one_o congregation_n unless_o he_o go_v one_o hour_n to_o one_o and_o another_o to_o another_o which_o be_v not_o their_o use_n but_o doubtless_o in_o this_o he_o be_v mistake_v as_o the_o many_o speaker_n as_o corinth_n show_v 6._o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v prepare_v by_o god_n to_o be_v then_o a_o exceed_a great_a fortherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o under_o the_o same_o civil_a law_n and_o power_n where_o one_o or_o two_o language_n be_v understand_v by_o most_o christian_n have_v the_o far_o great_a advantage_n for_o communication_n want_v of_o foreign_a language_n be_v now_o our_o great_a hindrance_n from_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o confusion_n at_o babel_n be_v a_o unspeakable_a judgement_n but_o as_o ship_n yea_o navies_n can_v sail_v on_o the_o ocean_n when_o small_a bark_n or_o boat_n only_o can_v pass_v on_o river_n so_o the_o vastness_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v a_o great_a help_n to_o the_o church_n by_o communication_n language_n and_o access_n but_o especial_o when_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian_n the_o advantage_n be_v exceed_v great_a whereas_o now_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o turkish_a tartarian_a &_o indostan_n empire_n be_v great_a impediment_n to_o the_o gospel_n because_o the_o barbarian_n be_v more_o cruel_a enemy_n than_o the_o civil_a roman_n notwithstanding_o the_o ten_o persecution_n be_v and_o their_o opposition_n be_v the_o more_o extensive_a by_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o dominion_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v now_o more_o scandalize_v the_o infidel_n by_o their_o corruption_n while_o they_o be_v not_o corrupt_v by_o worldly_a power_n and_o wealth_n the_o great_a holiness_n of_o the_o church_n convince_v the_o sober_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n albaspineus_n show_v we_o clear_o that_o their_o strictness_n be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o endure_v no_o notable_a scandalous_a sin_n among_o they_o yea_o and_o come_v very_o near_o to_o the_o novatian_o in_o their_o discipline_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o great_a strictness_n that_o the_o novatian_o be_v condemn_v but_o for_o deny_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o absolve_v man_n penitent_a that_o sin_v after_o baptism_n and_o their_o canon_n show_v it_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christian_n obey_v paul_n avoid_v the_o heathen_a judicature_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v and_o censure_v those_o that_o do_v not_o and_o end_v their_o difference_n
by_o the_o way_n of_o arbitration_n and_o take_v the_o bishop_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o clergy_n to_o be_v a_o authorize_v arbitrator_n and_o thus_o the_o affair_n of_o all_o the_o christian_n be_v cast_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o force_v any_o but_o only_o to_o govern_v volunteer_n the_o bishop_n be_v constrain_v to_o make_v their_o rule_n of_o discipline_n so_o much_o the_o strict_a that_o all_o that_o will_v not_o renounce_v christianity_n and_o church-communion_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o obedience_n to_o escape_v excommunication_n 7._o god_n have_v make_v the_o great_a power_n and_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n so_o great_a a_o mean_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o christianity_n the_o christian_n think_v that_o the_o great_a they_o grow_v themselves_o the_o more_o it_o will_v tend_v to_o the_o church_n deliverance_n from_o contempt_n and_o persecution_n and_o their_o advancement_n lie_v in_o that_o advancement_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o private_a man_n can_v not_o expect_v save_v only_o by_o subsequent_a participation_n hereupon_o the_o bishop_n by_o the_o people_n consent_n endeavour_v to_o form_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n within_o the_o empire_n into_o a_o conformity_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o they_o contrive_v that_o those_o city_n who_o governor_n have_v the_o chief_a civil_a power_n their_o bishop_n shall_v have_v answerable_a church-power_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o empire_n draw_v they_o for_o seem_a interest_n into_o imitation_n 8._o from_o the_o like_a principle_n they_o desire_v great_o the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v overseer_n and_o whereas_o christ_n have_v make_v single_a church_n like_o school_n and_o every_o state_v worship_v church_n be_v also_o a_o govern_v church_n as_o every_o school_n have_v its_o schoolmaster_n one_o or_o mo●●_n by_o degree_n these_o church_n be_v by_o degeneration_n quite_o alter_v 〈…〉_z o_o other_o thing_n first_o they_o be_v like_o a_o parochial_a church_n 〈◊〉_d add_v chapel_n they_o think_v not_o so_o contemptible_o of_o the_o p●●●●ral_a work_n as_o we_o do_v but_o find_v enough_o as_o be_v say_v for_o many_o i_o 〈…〉_z a_o church_n of_o a_o few_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o soul_n and_o when_o by_o persecution_n or_o number_n or_o distance_n they_o can_v not_o all_o meet_v ordinary_o in_o one_o place_n they_o appoint_v they_o to_o meet_v under_o several_a presbyter_n in_o several_a place_n but_o without_o appropriate_v a_o particular_a presbyter_n to_o each_o assembly_n 2._o after_o they_o appropriate_v they_o to_o their_o distinct_a charge_n and_o distinguish_v a_o state_v worship_v company_n from_o a_o govern_v church_n the_o bishop_n and_o his_o consistory_n rule_v all_o in_o common_a and_o the_o people_n tie_v to_o communicate_v only_o at_o the_o bishop_n altar_n and_o elsewhere_o to_o be_v but_o hearer_n and_o worshipper_n 3._o after_o that_o they_o set_v up_o altar_n up_o and_o down_o for_o monument_n and_o memorial_n of_o martyr_n and_o then_o in_o the_o presbyter_n chapel_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o people_n be_v at_o easter_n whitsuntide_n and_o the_o nativity_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o mother_n church_n or_o cathedral_n 4._o then_o when_o country-village_n distant_a have_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o christian_n they_o allow_v country-bishop_n chorepiscopos_fw-la prove_v by_o petavius_n to_o be_v true_a bishop_n if_o they_o be_v not_o presbyter_n ordain_v but_o they_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o city_n bishop_n 5._o after_o this_o they_o decree_v that_o very_o little_a city_n shall_v have_v no_o bishop_n ne_fw-la vilescat_fw-la nomen_fw-la episcopi_fw-la whenas_o before_o that_o every_o city_n have_v a_o bishop_n and_o elder_n that_o have_v christian_n enough_o and_o every_o town_n like_o our_o corporation_n or_o market-town_n be_v call_v city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v only_o such_o as_o we_o now_o call_v city_n distinct_a from_o such_o town_n be_v they_o no_o big_a than_o cenchrea_n majuma_n and_o such_o other_o close_o to_o great_a city_n they_o have_v bishop_n yea_o every_o church_n be_v to_o have_v their_o elder_n and_o consequent_o bishop_n say_v dr._n hammond_n where_o ever_o it_o be_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act_v 14._o 23._o and_o god_n never_o say_v let_v there_o be_v no_o church_n but_o in_o city_n else_o when_o a_o emperor_n will_v put_v down_o all_o the_o city_n or_o many_o he_o shall_v put_v down_o as_o many_o church_n 6._o after_o this_o they_o set_v up_o patriarch_n as_o before_o they_o have_v do_v metropolitan_n and_o it_o be_v three_o that_o they_o first_o set_v up_o but_o no_o where_o out_o of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o papist_n find_v in_o the_o institution_n the_o mystery_n of_o trinity_n in_o unity_n for_o they_o can_v not_o find_v any_o where_fw-mi twelve_o seat_n successor_n to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o so_o they_o feign_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o centre_n of_o unity_n the_o trinity_n flow_v from_o he_o 1._o he_o as_o bishop_n erect_v the_o antiochian_a patriarchate_n 2._o by_o st._n mark_v his_o disciple_n the_o alexandriau_n and_o 3._o by_o his_o final_a episcopacy_n the_o roman_a say_v joh._n dartis_fw-la de_fw-la statu_fw-la eccles_n tempore_fw-la apostoli_fw-la pag._n 23_o 24._o imitatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la deum_fw-la ut_fw-la trinum_fw-la in_o personis_fw-la &_o unum_fw-la in_o essentia_fw-la quatenus_fw-la scilicet_fw-la una_fw-la &_o eadem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la multiplex_fw-la ratione_fw-la locorum_fw-la nam_fw-la distributio_fw-la prima_fw-la &_o generalis_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o tres_fw-la patriarchatus_fw-la romanum_fw-la alexandrinum_fw-la &_o antiochenum_fw-la ut_fw-la unum_fw-la esset_fw-la per_fw-la tres_fw-la antistites_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la ad_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la instar_fw-la cui_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la atque_fw-la individua_fw-la potestas_fw-la ut_fw-la recte_fw-la interpretatur_fw-la symmachus_n pap._n ad_fw-la eonium_fw-la dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o trinitate_fw-la una_fw-la existente_fw-la essentia_fw-la tamen_fw-la personae_fw-la differentes_fw-la existunt_fw-la it_o a_o ecclesia_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la essentia_fw-la licet_fw-la plures_fw-la particulares_fw-la existant_fw-la et_fw-la sicut_fw-la omnes_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la personae_fw-la originem_fw-la sumunt_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la origo_fw-la filii_fw-la &_o uterque_fw-la sp._n sancti_fw-la ita_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la origo_fw-la est_fw-la romana_fw-la aliarum_fw-la 7._o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o begin_v to_o describe_v church_n or_o bishop_n province_n by_o the_o measure_n of_o land_n which_o before_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o person_n of_o volunteer_n inhabit_v near_o each_o other_o say_v the_o aforesaid_a dartis_fw-la p._n 128._o et_fw-la sane_fw-la diu_fw-la duravit_fw-la ille_fw-la mos_fw-la tanquam_fw-la apostolicus_n in_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la essent_fw-la alii_fw-la termini_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la quam_fw-la multitudo_fw-la eorum_fw-la quos_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la convertissent_fw-la &_o baptizassent_v which_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o canon_n 8._o rome_n be_v the_o imperial_a seat_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v near_a the_o emperor_n and_o subordinate_a ruler_n and_o so_o most_o capable_a to_o make_v friend_n for_o christian_n under_o any_o accusation_n and_o persecution_n by_o which_o advantage_n all_o christian_n through_o the_o empire_n need_v and_o be_v glad_a of_o such_o help_n do_v willing_o give_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n 9_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n turn_v christian_a and_o take_v they_o for_o his_o sure_a soldier_n resolve_v to_o raise_v they_o as_o high_a as_o he_o well_o can_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n and_o his_o own_o and_o thereby_o to_o work_v down_o the_o heathen_n by_o degree_n and_o according_o give_v they_o chief_a countenance_n and_o chief_a power_n and_o their_o bishop_n be_v their_o chief_a man_n it_o must_v be_v do_v by_o exalt_v they_o he_o make_v they_o the_o authorize_v judge_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o desire_v it_o even_o in_o criminal_a case_n he_o yet_o give_v not_o the_o bishop_n the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n but_o if_o any_o christian_n have_v commit_v fornication_n adultery_n perjury_n yea_o murder_n the_o bishop_n be_v to_o punish_v they_o by_o penance_n and_o suspension_n from_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o which_o christian_n have_v the_o chief_a preferment_n as_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o in_o the_o army_n and_o civil_a government_n so_o that_o they_o triumph_v over_o their_o late_a persecutor_n and_o now_o honour_n power_n and_o wealth_n be_v most_o on_o the_o christian_n side_n but_o especial_o the_o bishop_n 10._o worldly_n interest_n be_v now_o on_o the_o church_n side_n much_o of_o the_o world_n by_o such_o motive_n crowd_v into_o the_o church_n and_o no_o man_n can_v imagine_v that_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o who_o consider_v which_o way_n the_o vulgar_a go_v and_o how_o apt_a to_o be_v of_o the_o prince_n mind_n and_o how_o much_o nature_n incline_v to_o fleshly_a interest_n who_o have_v not_o rather_o be_v
whore_n to_o go_v in_o to_o bishop_n euphrata_n and_o this_o euphrata_n after_o turn_v photinian_n xxviii_o an._n 353._o a_o council_n at_o arles_n condemn_v athanasius_n xxix_o an._n 355._o a_o general_n council_n at_o milan_n of_o above_o 300_o western_a bishop_n though_o the_o eastern_a that_o be_v most_o arian_n can_v not_o come_v where_o athanasius_n be_v condemn_v and_o communion_n with_o the_o arian_n subscribe_v xxx_o an._n 356._o a_o council_n at_o byterris_n condemn_v and_o banish_a hilary_n and_o condemn_v they_o as_o separatist_n or_o schismatic_n that_o renounce_v the_o arian_n communion_n xxxi_o a_o general_n council_n at_o sirmium_n of_o 300_o western_a bishop_n beside_o the_o eastern_a make_v three_o different_a creed_n condemn_v athanasius_n leave_v out_o the_o word_n substance_n make_v p._n liberius_n and_o old_a osius_n subscribe_v against_o athanasius_n xxxii_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n at_o ancyra_n be_v only_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o with_o macedonius_n against_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n xxxiii_o a_o general_n council_n 400_o bishop_n meet_v at_o ariminum_n of_o who_o most_o at_o first_o be_v orthodox_n but_o after_o when_o the_o emperor_n interpose_v subscribe_v to_o the_o arian_n party_n xxxiv_o the_o rest_n sit_v at_o seleucia_n and_o be_v more_o orthodox_n but_o divide_v into_o acacian_o who_o be_v for_o leave_v out_o substance_n and_o semi-arians_a who_o be_v for_o like_a substance_n sulp._n severus_n tell_v we_o that_o many_o bishop_n quiet_v their_o conscience_n by_o subscribe_v in_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o so_o deceive_v the_o arian_n that_o think_v they_o have_v win_v they_o xxxv_o a_o council_n at_o c._n p._n make_v a_o nine_o creed_n leave_v out_o substance_n and_o hypostasit_fw-la the_o semi-arians_a for_o this_o banish_v the_o author_n xxxvi_o a_o council_n at_o antioch_n cast_v out_o miletius_n and_o make_v a_o ten_o creed_n worse_o than_o the_o rest_n xxxvii_o julian_n reign_v athanasius_n call_v a_o council_n at_o alexandria_n which_o have_v almost_o divide_v east_n and_o west_n about_o the_o name_n hypostasit_fw-la and_o persona_fw-la but_o that_o some_o wise_a man_n persuade_v they_o that_o the_o word_n be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o signification_n which_o yet_o be_v hardly_o entertain_v afterward_o xxxviii_o a_o council_n at_o antioch_n of_o semi-arians_a petition_v jovianus_n to_o cast_v out_o the_o acacian_o till_o they_o know_v his_o mind_n and_o then_o the_o arian_n bishop_n turn_v orthodox_n thirty-nine_o at_o a_o synod_n in_o tyana_n eustath_n sebast_n deny_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n xl._o a_o arian_n council_n of_o bishop_n in_o caria_n under_o valens_n and_o another_o at_o singeduni_n in_o misia_n xli_o damasus_n in_o a_o roman_a council_n condemn_v sisinnius_n for_o conventicle_n for_o at_o the_o election_n in_o the_o church_n they_o fight_v for_o these_o two_o and_o damasus_n his_o party_n one_o day_n leave_v 137_o dead_a body_n behind_o they_o and_o get_v the_o better_a xlii_o valens_n by_o cruelty_n set_v up_o arian_n bishop_n in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o eas●_n xliii_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o c._n p._n be_v common_o call_v the_o second_o general_n when_o yet_o that_o at_o sardica_n ariminum_n sirmium_n milan_n be_v general_n also_o they_o be_v many_o good_a man_n and_o do_v good_a but_o how_o they_o use_v nazianzen_n to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o the_o church_n of_o c._n p._n and_o how_o nazianzen_n describe_v they_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o take_v from_o his_o own_o word_n and_o not_o from_o i_o or_o mr._n m._n xliv_o the_o council_n at_o caesar_n augusta_n do_v that_o which_o make_v martin_n separate_v from_o they_o and_o all_o their_o council_n after_o to_o his_o death_n xlv_o a_o council_n at_o c._n p._n set_v up_o flavian_n at_o antioch_n and_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n be_v for_o paulinus_n the_o former_a advance_v c._n p._n and_o jerusalem_n xlvi_o many_o schismatical_a council_n of_o donatist_n bishop_n follow_v xlvii_o for_o theophilus_n case_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o socrates_n and_o sozemene_n xlviii_o epiphanius_n his_o schismatical_a usage_n of_o chrysostom_n be_v unexcusable_a xlix_o and_o so_o be_v theophilus_n prosecution_n of_o he_o and_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n cast_v he_o out_o and_o cyril_n resist_v the_o restore_n of_o his_o name_n when_o dead_a and_o revile_v the_o joannites_n that_o keep_v separate_v meeting_n for_o his_o sake_n l._n the_o diospolitan_a council_n absolve_v pelagius_n divers_a carthage_n council_n condemn_v he_o p._n innocent_a condemn_v he_o zosimus_n once_o absolve_v he_o and_o condemn_v his_o accuser_n the_o bishop_n cast_v out_o for_o simony_n i_o will_v not_o number_v here_o li._n the_o contention_n between_o bonisace_n and_o eulalius_n and_o other_o after_o they_o to_o get_v the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o many_o as_o i_o will_v not_o number_v they_o and_o the_o strive_v of_o three_o bishop_n successive_o against_o the_o african_a father_n for_o the_o roman_a supereminence_n and_o appeal_n to_o rome_n be_v common_o know_v lii_o one_o of_o bishop_n boniface_n decree_n be_v that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v be_v bring_v before_o any_o judge_n civil_a or_o military_a either_o for_o any_o civil_a or_o criminal_a cause_n liii_o what_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o ephesus_n do_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o nestorius_n i_o have_v full_o open_v derodons_n evidence_n be_v undeniable_a that_o nestorius_n be_v orthodox_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n though_o he_o mistake_v as_o to_o word_n in_o think_v that_o mary_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n but_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n which_o luther_n also_o show_v yet_o since_o that_o council_n anathematise_v he_o a_o great_a body_n of_o christian_n in_o many_o eastern_a kingdom_n to_o this_o day_n be_v a_o party_n hereticated_a by_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o such_o a_o effect_n of_o 1200_o year_n continuance_n a_o witness_n of_o the_o fail_n of_o that_o council_n liv._o the_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n and_o alexandria_n strive_v which_o shall_v be_v great_a a_o council_n at_o c._n p._n decide_v it_o for_o c._n p._n where_o theodoret_n be_v for_o alexandria_n and_o fall_v under_o displeasure_n lv._o leo_n m._n bishop_n of_o rome_n claim_v the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n lvi_o two_o council_n at_o c._n p._n one_o against_o eutyches_n the_o other_o for_o he_o lvii_o the_o second_o council_n at_o ephesus_n be_v so_o heavy_o accuse_v by_o mr._n m._n and_o such_o other_o that_o i_o need_v not_o accuse_v it_o more_o flavianus_n of_o c._n p._n be_v there_o hurt_v to_o death_n yet_o bellarmin_n confess_v it_o want_v nothing_o of_o a_o true_a general_n council_n but_o the_o pope_n approbation_n lviii_o a_o council_n at_o alexandria_n under_o dioscorus_n excommucate_v leo._n lix_n what_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v do_v i_o have_v show_v instead_o of_o reconcile_a the_o nestorian_a and_o eutychian_a controversy_n by_o a_o skilful_a explication_n of_o their_o ambiguous_a unfit_a word_n they_o anathematise_v both_o and_o banish_a dioscorus_n and_o ever_o since_o to_o this_o day_n the_o eutychian_o and_o nestorian_n be_v separate_v dissenter_n lx._n at_o alexand._n the_o bishop_n party_n that_o the_o council_n be_v for_o proterius_n and_o timothy_n who_o dioscorus_n party_n be_v for_o so_o rege_v that_o they_o murder_v proterius_n and_o drag_v his_o carcase_n in_o the_o street_n and_o bite_v his_o flesh_n and_o each_o party_n still_o accuse_v the_o other_o lxi_o pulcheria_n theodosius_n sister_n and_o martian_n wife_n be_v for_o the_o council_n and_o eudocia_n theodosius_n widow_n for_o dioscarus_fw-la they_o animate_v the_o several_a party_n of_o bishop_n and_o monk_n and_o in_o palestine_n juvenal_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v expel_v severianus_n bishop_n of_o schythopolis_n kill_v etc._n etc._n lxii_o leo_fw-la the_o emperor_n command_v obedience_n to_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n at_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n the_o army_n of_o contend_a bishop_n be_v in_o continual_a war_n call_v each_o other_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o one_o bishop_n banish_v by_o the_o emperor_n the_o contrary_a bishop_n murder_v by_o the_o people_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o river_n the_o next_o get_v the_o better_a again_o etc._n etc._n lxiii_o in_o martian_n and_o leo_n day_n most_o bishop_n subscribe_v to_o the_o council_n when_o basiliscus_n usurp_v and_o be_v against_o the_o council_n say_v niceph._n three_z patriarch_n and_o five_o hundred_o bishop_n renounce_v it_o most_o before_o have_v damn_v its_o adversary_n basiliscus_n recant_v his_o command_n and_o command_v all_o to_o be_v for_o the_o council_n and_o the_o bishop_n obey_v he_o save_o those_o of_o asia_n zeno_n recover_v the_o empire_n and_o be_v for_o the_o council_n and_o the_o asian_a bishop_n turn_v for_o it_o and_o say_v they_o subscribe_v
to_o basiliscus_n at_o first_o for_o fear_n zeno_n see_v it_o impossible_a otherwise_o to_o make_v peace_n leave_v all_o indifferent_a whether_o they_o will_v subscribe_v the_o council_n or_o not_o then_o the_o war_n grow_v hot_a between_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o army_n against_o each_o other_o special_o the_o patriarch_n all_o be_v in_o confusion_n at_o alexand._n antioch_n and_o c._n p._n and_o no_o emperor_n wise_a enough_o to_o quiet_v they_o lxiv_o anastasius_n a_o peaceable_a man_n make_v emperor_n leave_v all_o to_o think_v of_o the_o council_n as_o they_o will_v then_o the_o bishop_n fall_v into_o three_o party_n some_o for_o every_o word_n in_o the_o council_n some_o anathematise_v it_o and_o some_o for_o the_o indifferency_n the_o east_n one_o way_n the_o west_n another_o and_o lybia_n another_o yea_o each_o country_n divide_v among_o themselves_o say_v niceph._n so_o great_a confusion_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n befall_v the_o whole_a world_n the_o emperor_n fall_v upon_o the_o impeaceable_a of_o both_o side_n at_o his_o own_o place_n c._n p._n the_o sedition_n of_o the_o people_n overcome_v he_o for_o their_o council_n bishop_n which_o turn_v the_o emperor_n more_o against_o the_o council_n and_o that_o bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n lxv_o at_o antioch_n the_o army_n of_o two_o bishop_n fight_v it_o out_o and_o the_o council_n party_n get_v the_o better_a kill_v so_o many_o monk_n as_o to_o save_v the_o labour_n of_o bury_v they_o they_o cast_v their_o body_n into_o the_o river_n and_o after_o another_o party_n of_o they_o make_v as_o great_a a_o slaughter_n for_o this_o blood_n the_o emperor_n banish_v flavianus_n the_o council_n bishop_n this_o be_v call_v persecution_n pet._n alex._n be_v dead_a the_o bishop_n of_o alex._n egypt_n and_o lybia_n fall_v all_o into_o piece_n among_o themselves_o and_o have_v separate_a meeting_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o east_n separate_v from_o the_o west_n because_o the_o west_n refuse_v communion_n with_o they_o unless_o they_o will_v anathematise_v nestorius_n eutyches_n dioscorus_n moggus_n and_o acacius_n and_o yet_o say_v niceph._n qui_fw-la germani_fw-la dioscori_n &_o eutychetis_n sectatores_fw-la fuere_fw-la ad_fw-la maximam_fw-la paucitatem_fw-la redacti_fw-la sunt_fw-la note_v that_o flavian_n the_o council_n bishop_n for_o fear_n with_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n threaten_v by_o bishop_n xenaias_n subscribe_v a_o anathema_n against_o theodore_n theodorite_n ibas_n as_o nestorian_n the_o isaurian_a bishop_n yield_v to_o anathematise_v the_o council_n severus_n a_o fierce_a enemy_n of_o the_o nestorian_n make_v patriarch_n at_o antioch_n force_v many_o bishop_n to_o renounce_v the_o council_n and_o many_o to_o fly_v the_o isaurian_a bishop_n repent_v and_o condemn_v severus_n the_o emperor_n command_v out_o two_o bishop_n for_o condemn_v their_o patriarch_n the_o people_n defend_v they_o and_o force_v the_o emperor_n to_o desist_v because_o he_o will_v shed_v no_o blood_n for_o bishop_n helias_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n see_v all_o the_o bishop_n in_o such_o confusion_n that_o he_o will_v communicate_v with_o none_o of_o they_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n the_o monk_n at_o jerusalem_n proclaim_v anathema_n to_o all_o that_o equal_v not_o the_o four_o council_n to_o the_o four_o evangelist_n and_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o they_o will_v make_v good_a the_o conflict_n to_o blood_n and_o go_v about_o to_o engage_v man_n to_o the_o council_n the_o emperor_n command_v the_o bishop_n to_o reform_v this_o he_o refuse_v the_o emperor_n send_v soldier_n to_o compel_v they_o and_o the_o bishop_n and_o monk_n forcible_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o send_v olympius_n with_o a_o strong_a band_n who_o cast_v out_o the_o bishop_n the_o next_o bishop_n and_o more_o soldier_n have_v yet_o more_o conflict_n after_o this_o and_o the_o soldier_n drive_v away_o by_o force_n lxvi_o faelix_fw-la of_o rome_n with_o 77_o bishop_n excommunicate_a acacius_n of_o c._n p._n with_o a_o nunquam_fw-la anathematis_fw-la vinculis_fw-la exuendus_fw-la and_o their_o own_o two_o bishop_n that_o obey_v the_o emperor_n in_o communicate_v the_o schism_n between_o laurentius_n and_o symmachus_n come_v to_o bloodshed_n when_o five_o or_o six_o council_n labour_v to_o heal_v it_o symmachus_n excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n as_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n but_o not_o a_o arian_n king_n then_o at_o rome_n lxvii_o a_o council_n of_o 80_o bishop_n at_o sidon_n anathematise_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o strive_a party_n keep_v up_o still_o in_o great_a body_n and_o the_o melchites_n as_o they_o call_v those_o that_o obey_v king_n and_o the_o council_n have_v one_o patriarch_n at_o damascus_n the_o eutychian_a jacobite_n one_o at_o mesopotamia_n the_o maronites_n one_o at_o m._n libanus_n all_o call_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o roman_n make_v a_o four_o of_o the_o same_o title_n and_o the_o nestorian_n have_v their_o patriarch_n at_o muzal_n of_o the_o many_o heresy_n or_o sect_n that_o rise_v up_o from_o the_o intemperate_a opposition_n to_o nestorius_n and_o the_o woeful_a ruin_n they_o make_v in_o the_o east_n after_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n and_o all_o cause_v by_o pride_n and_o prosperity_n and_o wantonness_n of_o wit_n and_o stop_v only_o by_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o saracen_n and_o arabian_n and_o how_o orthodox_n now_o in_o their_o captivity_n and_o poverty_n they_o all_o be_v even_o the_o jacobite_n the_o nestorian_n the_o armenian_n the_o cophti_n the_o abassine_n the_o indian_n and_o the_o maronites_n see_v the_o notable_a word_n of_o brierwrod_n enquir_n p._n 180_o 181_o 182_o 183._o as_o also_o how_o the_o persian_a king_n be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o spread_a of_o the_o nestorian_n through_o his_o dominion_n lxviii_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v divide_v in_o justin_n reign_n on_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o name_n of_o two_o orthodox_n dead_a bishop_n shall_v be_v restore_v into_o the_o diptychs_n even_o euphemius_n and_o macedonius_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v damn_v as_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n be_v for_o it_o and_o the_o west_n against_o it_o lxix_o justin_n turn_v the_o stream_n for_o the_o calce_v council_n the_o bishop_n in_o a_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o another_o at_o tyre_n be_v for_o it_o and_o condemn_v severus_n and_o a_o roman_a council_n condemn_v the_o three_o dead_a bishop_n of_o c._n p._n acacius_n euphemius_n and_o macedonius_n lxx_o so_o far_o be_v the_o bishop_n yet_o from_o peace_n that_o justinian_n be_v emperor_n head_v the_o council_n party_n and_o his_o wife_n the_o adverse_a party_n about_o 30000_o they_o say_v be_v then_o kill_v in_o c._n p._n at_o a_o insurrection_n lxxi_o a_o mischievous_a schism_n for_o the_o bishopric_n at_o rome_n between_o boniface_n 2._o and_o dioscorus_n and_o agapetus_n after_o boniface_n lxxii_o in_o justinian_n time_n a_o controversy_n arise_v whether_o we_o may_v say_v one_o of_o the_o trinity_n be_v crucify_v hormisda_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v no._n the_o nestorian_n take_v hold_v of_o this_o and_o say_v than_o we_o may_v not_o say_v mary_n be_v mother_n to_o one_o of_o the_o trinity_n justinian_n send_v for_o a_o council_n about_o it_o to_o pope_n john_n he_o and_o his_o bishop_n conclude_v contrary_a to_o hormisda_n that_o we_o may_v say_v one_o of_o the_o trinity_n be_v crucify_v and_o say_v baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la ita_fw-la mutatis_fw-la hostibus_fw-la arma_fw-la mutari_fw-la necesse_fw-la suis_fw-la faith_n change_v as_o occasion_n change_v reader_n if_o thou_o see_v not_o here_o how_o bishop_n have_v break_v the_o church_n in_o piece_n i_o must_v not_o tell_v thou_o lest_o mr._n m._n be_v angry_a i_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o see_v what_o i_o say_v hist_o p._n 132._o of_o the_o conference_n of_o hypatius_n and_o the_o eutychian_o lxxiii_o a_o council_n at_o c._n p._n call_v their_o bishop_n patriarcha_fw-la oecumenicus_fw-la and_o condemn_v divers_a bishop_n as_o do_v a_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n lxxiv_o at_o rome_n the_o arian_n king_n make_v silverius_n bishop_n and_o other_o choose_v vigilius_n that_o murder_v he_o vigilius_n excommunicate_v menna_n of_o c._n p._n which_o justinian_n revenge_v lxxv_o a_o new_a controversy_n be_v state_v whether_o christ_n body_n be_v corruptible_a the_o denier_n have_v gainas_n a._n bishop_n the_o affirmer_n have_v theodosius_n the_o first_o be_v call_v phantasiastae_n the_o other_o corrupticolae_fw-la most_o be_v for_o gainas_n but_o the_o soldier_n for_o theodosius_n they_o fight_v many_o day_n and_o the_o soldier_n kill_v many_o and_o many_o of_o they_o be_v kill_v and_o the_o woman_n with_o stone_n from_o the_o top_n of_o the_o house_n and_o the_o soldier_n with_o fire_n continue_v the_o war_n and_o the_o division_n continue_v in_o liberatus_n day_n justinian_n be_v so_o zealous_a for_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o he_o murder_v thousand_o as_o they_o say_v in_o egypt_n and_o
yet_o die_v a_o repute_a heretic_n himself_o be_v for_o the_o corrupticolae_fw-la and_o evagrius_n say_v when_o he_o have_v set_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o tumult_n he_o be_v damn_v himself_o but_o god_n best_o know_v that_o lxxvi_o a_o council_n at_o barcelona_n decree_v that_o priest_n must_v cut_v their_o beard_n but_o not_o shave_v they_o lxxvii_o by_o the_o cheat_n of_o a_o eutychian_a bishop_n justinian_n be_v persuade_v that_o the_o condemn_v of_o some_o write_n of_o theodoré_n mopsue_v theodorite_n and_o ibas_n will_v reconcile_v the_o bishop_n he_o call_v a_o general_n council_n at_o c._n p._n to_o that_o end_n usual_o call_v the_o 5_o his_o letter_n be_v read_v open_v the_o doleful_a division_n that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o one_o another_o etc._n etc._n the_o three_o bishop_n write_n be_v read_v theodorite_n charge_v by_o this_o general_a council_n with_o that_o salt_n epistle_n against_o dead_a cyril_n and_o a_o like_a speech_n at_o antioch_n and_o none_o vindicate_v he_o binius_fw-la and_o mr._n morice_n and_o other_o say_v the_o letter_n be_v forge_v i_o know_v not_o but_o the_o tria_fw-la capitula_fw-la be_v condemn_v and_o now_o this_o general_a council_n have_v make_v a_o new_a divide_v snare_n many_o that_o be_v for_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n fear_v this_o be_v a_o condemn_v of_o what_o they_o do_v in_o receive_v theodorite_n etc._n etc._n the_o adversary_n be_v never_o the_o more_o satisfy_v but_o say_v binius_fw-la himself_o the_o end_n be_v not_o obtain_v but_o a_o most_o grievous_a mischief_n add_v to_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n be_v tear_v by_o schism_n and_o worse_o the_o emperor_n stir'dup_fw-fr persecution_n depose_v or_o banish_v p._n vigilius_n but_o lest_o the_o east_n shall_v all_o forsake_v the_o west_n he_o recant_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o council_n do_v either_o the_o work_n or_o the_o effect_n commend_v this_o general_a council_n lxxviii_o a_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n save_o one_o bishop_n present_o receive_v this_o decree_n lxxix_o a_o western_a council_n at_o aquileia_n condemn_v this_o 5_o general_n council_n at_o c._n p._n and_o say_v binius_fw-la separate_v from_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n even_o from_o rome_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n till_o sergius_n reconcile_v they_o q._n be_v the_o western_a bishop_n or_o the_o pope_n than_o the_o western_a church_n so_o many_o separate_v that_o vigilius_n be_v dead_a there_o can_v but_o two_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n be_v get_v to_o ordain_v pelagius_n his_o successor_n but_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o pope_n persecute_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o schism_n seem_v desperate_a lxxx_o another_o council_n at_o c._n p._n an._n 587._o decree_n that_o john_n bishop_n of_o c._n p._n be_v call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n which_o great_o increase_v the_o church_n division_n lxxxi_o king_n gunthram_n call_v a_o council_n at_o mascon_n an._n 589._o find_v all_o thing_n grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o &_o all_o long_a of_o the_o bishop_n only_o say_v binius_fw-la lxxxii_o even_o great_a gregory_n call_v a_o synod_n against_o the_o dissent_v bishop_n and_o they_o not_o obey_v his_o summons_n the_o bishop_n of_o aquileia_n be_v ruin_v the_o western_a head_n sabinian_n that_o succeed_v gregory_n will_v have_v have_v his_o book_n burn_v boniface_n the_o three_o get_v phocas_n the_o murderer_n to_o declare_v rome_n the_o chief_a bishop_n seat_n he_o to_o who_o gregory_n have_v sing_v laetentur_fw-la coeli_fw-la &_o exult_v et_fw-fr terra_fw-la etc._n etc._n lxxxiii_o next_o rise_v up_o the_o monothelite_n controversy_n cyrus_n bishop_n of_o alexand._n to_o end_v the_o controversy_n aforemention_v be_v tell_v that_o to_o use_v the_o word_n dei_fw-la virilis_fw-la operatio_fw-la &_o voluntas_fw-la will_v unite_v they_o all_o which_o pass_v as_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o council_n at_o alexand_n p._n honorius_n persuade_v they_o to_o silence_n one_a and_o two_n but_o this_o counsel_n be_v reject_v and_o now_o whether_o christ_n have_v one_o or_o two_o will_n and_o operation_n become_v as_o de_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o new_a war_n of_o the_o bishop_n through_o the_o world_n some_o be_v for_o one_a and_o some_o for_o two_o as_o if_o will_n and_o operation_n and_o one_o or_o two_o be_v word_n that_o have_v but_o one_o signification_n when_o every_o novice_n in_o philosophy_n must_v grant_v that_o christ_n will_n and_o operation_n in_o some_o sense_n be_v but_o one_o and_o in_o other_o sense_n two_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v but_o sergius_n bishop_n of_o const_n set_v it_o on_o foot_n heraclius_n be_v for_o it_o and_o pyrrhus_n his_o successor_n follow_v it_o on_o and_o sergius_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n at_o c._n p._n decree_v for_o one_o will._n the_o opinion_n and_o the_o emperor_n constans_n his_o silence_v both_o be_v condemn_v at_o rome_n the_o pope_n emperor_n and_o bishop_n be_v all_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v each_o other_o about_o it_o lxxxiv_o const_n pogonat_fw-la call_v a_o general_n council_n at_o c._n p._n call_v the_o 6_o which_o condemn_v macarius_n bishop_n of_o ant._n and_o the_o pacificatory_a epistle_n of_o p._n honorius_n and_o sergius_n as_o heretical_a and_o all_o that_o be_v for_o one_o will_n and_o one_o operation_n of_o christ_n 1._o as_o denominate_v a_o naturis_fw-la &_o earum_fw-la principiis_fw-la seu_fw-la facultatibus_fw-la the_o divine_a and_o humane_a will_n and_o operation_n be_v and_o be_v two_o 2._o as_o denominate_v ab_fw-la unitate_fw-la persona_fw-la they_o be_v the_o will_n and_o operation_n of_o one_o person_n and_o so_o far_o may_v be_v call_v one_o 3._o as_o denominate_v ab_fw-la unitate_fw-la objectiva_fw-la they_o be_v one_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n will_v the_o same_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o the_o humane_a will_v and_o do_v so_o far_o the_o same_o work_n but_o if_o any_o will_v make_v a_o new_a heresy_n by_o dispute_v whether_o the_o divine_a nature_n alone_o do_v not_o will_v and_o act_v somewhat_o without_o the_o volition_n and_o action_n of_o the_o humane_a since_o the_o incarnation_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o company_n of_o i_o in_o it_o 4._o in_o the_o sense_n as_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o principal_a and_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v one_o produce_v one_o effect_n so_o christ_n divine_a and_o humane_a operation_n be_v one_o 5._o as_o consent_n denominate_v unity_n and_o the_o old_a christian_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o soul_n one_o mind_n and_o mouth_n and_o christ_n pray_v that_o we_o may_v be_v one_o in_o he_o so_o his_o will_n and_o operation_n be_v one_o 6._o yea_o if_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o union_n between_o christ_n &_o his_o member_n and_o between_o the_o bless_a in_o heaven_n which_o be_v quite_o beyond_o our_o present_a comprehension_n it_o be_v much_o much_o more_o so_o between_o christ_n divine_a and_o humane_a will_n and_o operation_n and_o now_o reader_n whether_o it_o be_v well_o do_v to_o pass_v over_o these_o and_o many_o other_o needful_a distinction_n and_o to_o put_v man_n bare_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n will_n and_o operation_n be_v not_o one_o but_o two_o when_o real_o they_o be_v both_o one_o and_o two_o and_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n himself_o a_o heretic_n for_o one_o of_o the_o wise_a epistle_n that_o ever_o pope_n write_v i_o be_o no_o such_o enemy_n to_o a_o pope_n as_o to_o be_v partial_a and_o to_o divide_v the_o very_a western_a church_n from_o rome_n and_o make_v aquileia_n its_o head_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o to_o set_v all_o the_o roman_a empire_n in_o a_o flame_n anathematise_v and_o separate_n from_o one_o another_o because_o they_o have_v not_o skill_n or_o sobriety_n enough_o to_o ask_v each_o other_o by_o such_o distinction_n what_o they_o mean_v i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v wise_o and_o well_o do_v and_o be_v a_o praise_n to_o prelacy_n and_o i_o be_v to_o blame_v for_o blame_v it_o then_o good_a and_o evil_n be_v but_o what_o every_o disease_a soul_n will_v make_v it_o mr._n morris_n and_o his_o master_n that_o honour_n their_o leviathan_n for_o such_o work_n as_o these_o do_v tell_v we_o that_o they_o will_v do_v it_o themselves_o be_v it_o to_o be_v do_v again_o and_o let_v it_o be_v their_o work_n and_o the_o reward_n be_v they_o for_o my_o part_n i_o abhor_v and_o renounce_v it_o lxxxv_o faith_n and_o salvation_n now_o depend_v so_o much_o on_o arithmetic_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n raise_v another_o arithmetical_a controversy_n assert_v three_o substance_n in_o christ_n his_o divinity_n his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n and_o say_v a_fw-la will_n beget_v a_o will_n that_o be_v the_o divine_a the_o humane_a these_o thing_n be_v true_a but_o the_o wise_a pope_n be_v so_o affright_v with_o arithmetical_a controversy_n by_o experience_n of_o the_o mischievous_a effect_n that_o he_o caution_v they_o much_o about_o it_o and_o for_o that_o some_o judge_v he_o
for_o knowledge_n and_o life_n can_v they_o bear_v with_o in_o their_o communion_n who_o can_v bear_v with_o such_o as_o they_o silence_n and_o ruin_n in_o this_o land_n and_o the_o papist_n can_v receive_v even_o those_o that_o know_v not_o christ_n if_o they_o do_v but_o profess_v obedience_n to_o the_o clergy-church_n luther_n word_n be_v harsh_a but_o i_o will_v recite_v they_o the_o concil●●s_v p●●t_v 3._o pag_n 291._o si_fw-mi monstrau●rint_fw-la mihi_fw-la unum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ex_fw-la tota_fw-la illa_fw-la multitudine_fw-la qui_fw-la possit_fw-la aequare_fw-la unum_fw-la alphabetarium_fw-la in_o aliqua_fw-la erudita_fw-la schola_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la christianae_n vel_fw-la in_o scriptura_fw-la sacra_fw-la tantum_fw-la profecerint_fw-la quantum_fw-la u●a_fw-la aliqua_fw-la pvella_fw-la septem_fw-la a●norum_fw-la tunc_fw-la illis_fw-la concedam_fw-la palam_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la plus_fw-la callent_fw-la traditionum_fw-la humanarum_fw-la &_o sycophantiarum_fw-la quod_fw-la valde_fw-la credo_fw-la &_o firmius_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la cred●_n come_v i_o convinc●nt_fw-la facto_fw-la ipso_fw-la ut_fw-la credam_fw-la to_o this_o pass_n do_v the_o clergy_n aspire_v then_o bring_v the_o church_n when_o worthy_a man_n be_v silence_v and_o persecute_v and_o we_o be_v unwilling_a of_o any_o thing_n that_o look_v towards_o a_o difference_v man_n so_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n will_v make_v at_o last_o chap._n ii_o whether_o we_o have_v any_o reason_n to_o report_v the_o fault_n of_o some_o bishop_n and_o council_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o depravation_n till_o the_o last_o §_o 1._o that_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o i_o think_v what_o be_v before_o say_v will_v evince_v when_o we_o see_v man_n destroy_v christian_n love_n themselves_o and_o we_o and_o the_o land_n can_v they_o prevail_v by_o their_o erroneous_a endeavour_n to_o grant_v no_o concord_n communion_n nor_o peace_n to_o no_o christian_n how_o conscionable_a otherwise_o soever_o who_o can_v unite_v in_o a_o species_n of_o prelacy_n which_o they_o believe_v by_o such_o evidence_n as_o i_o have_v give_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o save_a man_n from_o heresy_n and_o schism_n now_o our_o opposer_n and_o we_o do_v judge_v it_o useful_a to_o know_v how_o heretic_n and_o divider_n miscarry_v heretofore_o that_o other_o may_v beware_v and_o be_v it_o not_o as_o true_a if_o bishop_n be_v the_o divider_n and_o also_o when_o the_o clergy_n ambition_n and_o usurpation_n have_v bring_v that_o upon_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o it_o languish_v and_o groan_v under_o in_o east_n and_o west_n be_v it_o not_o needful_a to_o open_v the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o disease_n by_o such_o as_o have_v rather_o it_o be_v cure_v than_o the_o church_n destroy_v by_o it_o §_o 2._o among_o the_o multitude_n of_o protestant_a church_n historian_n and_o chronologer_n how_o few_o be_v there_o that_o do_v not_o do_v the_o same_o though_o in_o various_a degree_n he_o that_o will_v read_v the_o magdeburgense●_n or_o lucas_n osiander_n illyrici_n test_n verit._n melancthon_n himself_o and_o carrion_n func●ius_n yea_o peaceable_a holy_a bucholtzer_n micrelius_fw-la meander_n phil._n pareus_n hen._n gut●erleth_n etc._n etc._n yea_o or_o julius_n or_o jos_n scaliger_n salmasius_n h●ttoman_n hottinger_n morney_n shall_v see_v the_o fault_n of_o bishop_n open_v before_o this_o day_n §_o 3._o the_o pious_a and_o moderate_a papist_n themselves_o report_n and_o lament_v they_o such_o as_o clemangis_n pelagius_n alvarus_n mirandula_n fer●●_n jos_n acosta_n lud._n vives_n gerson_n erasmus_n and_o many_o other_o such_o §_o 4._o the_o ancient_a godly_a bishop_n be_v they_o who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v be_v free_a in_o reprehend_v the_o vice_n of_o the_o rest_n especial_o greg._n nazianzen_n and_o chrysostom_n and_o many_o ancient_a godly_a presbyter_n have_v be_v as_o free_v as_o gildas_n isidore_n pelusiota_n salvian_n sulp._n severus_n bernard_n §_o 5._o and_o if_o i_o have_v wrong_v the_o bishop_n or_o pope_n in_o this_o abridgement_n their_o own_o historian_n yea_o their_o chief_a flatterer_n have_v wrong_v they_o one_o pope_n anger_v platina_n by_o imprison_v he_o yet_o if_o he_o be_v partial_a it_o be_v for_o the_o clergy_n and_o not_o against_o they_o but_o who_o will_v believe_v that_o binnius_n baronius_n crab_n genebrard_n bellarmine_n petavius_n and_o such_o other_o have_v speak_v too_o hardly_o of_o they_o there_o be_v no_o one_o man_n that_o i_o take_v so_o much_o from_o as_o binnius_n and_o what_o shall_v move_v he_o to_o name_n so_o many_o of_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o the_o council_n but_o the_o necessity_n of_o recite_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n historical_o as_o he_o find_v they_o §_o 6._o the_o sacred_a scripture_n record_v the_o crime_n of_o the_o best_a man_n in_o all_o the_o age_n of_o which_o they_o write_v even_o adam_n noes_n lot_n aaron_n david_n solomon_n hezekiah_n josiahs_n peter_n all_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v not_o do_v out_o of_o spite_n or_o malice_n but_o as_o a_o necessary_a warning_n to_o we_o all_o §_o 7._o the_o falsehood_n of_o history_n be_v a_o intolerable_a abuse_n of_o mankind_n to_o know_v nothing_o do_v before_o our_o time_n be_v to_o shut_v up_o mankind_n in_o a_o dungeon_n and_o false_a history_n be_v worse_a than_o none_o and_o it_o may_v be_v false_a and_o deceitful_a in_o defect_n as_o well_o as_o excess_n he_o that_o shall_v record_v all_o that_o be_v good_a in_o the_o pope_n and_o omit_v all_o the_o rest_n will_v be_v a_o dangerous_a deceiver_n of_o the_o world_n and_o do_v more_o than_o have_v be_v do_v to_o make_v all_o christian_n papist_n you_o tell_v we_o yourselves_o that_o he_o that_o shall_v write_v the_o history_n of_o cromwell_n c._n g._n or_o of_o any_o sect_n that_o you_o be_v against_o and_o shall_v leave_v out_o all_o their_o fault_n will_v be_v take_v for_o a_o false_a historian_n §_o 8._o they_o that_o write_v the_o history_n of_o man_n life_n do_v use_n to_o record_v their_o parentage_n birth_n and_o education_n and_o so_o must_v he_o that_o will_v true_o write_v the_o history_n of_o church-tyranny_n persecution_n and_o schism_n the_o end_n be_v not_o well_o understand_v without_o the_o beginning_n who_o be_v it_o that_o hear_v how_o many_o age_n the_o christian_a world_n have_v be_v divide_v into_o papist_n greek_n jacobite_n nestorian_n melchites_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o see_v what_o work_n the_o papacy_n have_v make_v but_o will_v ask_v how_o all_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v do_v the_o man_n that_o die_v of_o gluttony_n swallow_v all_o at_o one_o morsel_n or_o rather_o one_o bite_v after_o another_o and_o when_o the_o clergy_n have_v venture_v on_o one_o merry_a cup_n or_o one_o pleasant_a morsel_n in_o excesa_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o one_o and_o one_o and_o one_o cup_n more_o one_o and_o one_o and_o one_o bit_n more_o be_v no_o more_o unlawful_a than_o the_o first_o princip●is_fw-la obsta_fw-la be_v the_o rule_n of_o safety_n if_o papist_n intend_v the_o recovery_n of_o england_n to_o the_o pope_n shall_v say_v let_v we_o but_o first_o get_v they_o under_o the_o oath_n covenant_n and_o practice_n which_o we_o will_v call_v conformity_n and_o so_o cast_v out_o most_o that_o dare_v not_o sin_n and_o by_o this_o engage_v they_o as_o two_o army_n in_o contrary_a interest_n to_o fight_v against_o each_o other_o and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o bring_v the_o swallow_a party_n to_o go_v further_o by_o degree_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o as_o a_o parish_n church_n must_v not_o be_v independent_a as_o to_o the_o diocesan_n nor_o the_o diocesan_n to_o the_o metropolitical_a or_o national_a so_o neither_o must_v a_o national_a be_v independent_a as_o to_o the_o universal_a and_o that_o the_o universal_a therefore_o must_v have_v it_o be_v know_v state_v government_n as_o well_o as_o the_o national_a be_v it_o not_o necessary_a here_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v the_o land_n from_o popery_n to_o sh●w_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o first_o degree_n the_o usual_a method_n be_v not_o to_o use_v boccalines_n roman_a engine_n which_o will_v help_v a_o man_n to_o swallow_v a_o pompion_n that_o he_o may_v get_v down_o a_o pill_n but_o to_o swallow_v a_o lesser_a pill_n first_o and_o a_o big_a next_o till_o the_o pompion_n will_v go_v down_o infancy_n be_v before_o manhood_n §_o 9_o but_o the_o great_a necessity_n be_v as_o aforesaid_a from_o the_o revive_a or_o rather_o continue_a attempt_n of_o imitate_v the_o fatal_a ambitious_a and_o contentious_a malady_n if_o priscillians_n or_o gnostic_n shall_v rise_v now_o among_o we_o be_v it_o not_o our_o duty_n to_o set_v before_o they_o the_o history_n of_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o when_o man_n be_v so_o much_o set_v on_o restore_v a_o universal_a supremacy_n be_v it_o not_o meet_v to_o show_v
name_n that_o i_o most_o forget_v why_o i_o give_v not_o the_o christian_a name_n of_o reuberus_n and_o pistorius_n whether_o because_o i_o forget_v they_o or_o because_o i_o mind_v not_o so_o small_a a_o thing_n not_o dream_v what_o will_v be_v infer_v from_o it_o i_o remember_v not_o but_o when_o i_o write_v that_o abridgement_n i_o make_v use_v of_o none_o that_o i_o think_v the_o papist_n will_v except_v against_o for_o the_o first_o age_n i_o gather_v what_o i_o remember_v out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o out_o of_o eusebius_n socrates_n sozomen_n evagrius_n theodoret_n the_o tripartite_a nicephorus_n liberatus_n brev._n victor_n utic_a beda_n and_o such_o other_o as_o be_v by_o they_o receive_v beside_o which_o i_o principal_o follow_v and_o epitomise_v binnius_n and_o crab_n and_o partly_o baronius_n with_o platina_n onuphrius_n panunius_n stella_n petavius_n and_o other_o of_o their_o own_o and_o i_o resolve_v i_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o open_a goldastus_n or_o any_o protestant_a collector_n that_o they_o may_v not_o except_v against_o their_o credit_n and_o reject_v they_o as_o malicious_a curse_a heretic_n as_o labbe_n do_v melchior_n goldastus_n and_o almost_o all_o such_o other_o as_o he_o mention_n and_o as_o gretser_n sanders_n and_o other_o papist_n common_o do_v therefore_o even_o those_o history_n which_o be_v in_o goldastus_n i_o will_v not_o take_v as_o out_o of_o he_o but_o some_o of_o they_o from_o the_o book_n publish_v by_o other_o and_o some_o as_o cite_v by_o binnius_n petavius_n or_o other_o such_o and_o this_o be_v now_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o vanity_n §_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n if_o he_o think_v that_o i_o intend_v as_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v a_o compiler_n of_o general_n church_n history_n when_o i_o profess_v but_o to_o acquaint_v the_o english_a reader_n with_o the_o true_a matter_n of_o fact_n out_o of_o the_o papist_n themselves_z what_o the_o ambitious_a part_n of_o bishop_n and_o council_n have_v do_v and_o by_o what_o degree_n the_o papacy_n spring_v up_o and_o whether_o subjection_n to_o the_o ascendent_a exort_n prelacy_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o concord_n and_o salvation_n §_o 3._o as_o to_o his_o say_n i_o be_o the_o first_o that_o ever_o reckon_v nazianzen_n among_o historian_n i_o take_v the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n especial_o justin_n clemens_n alex._n tertullian_n cyprian_n eusebius_n basil_n nazianzen_n hierom_n chrysostom_n augustin_n to_o be_v the_o best_a part_n of_o church_n history_n especial_o their_o epistle_n and_o of_o this_o opinion_n i_o be_o not_o the_o first_o chap._n v._o of_o his_o accusation_n of_o my_o cite_n hanmer_n and_o other_o translator_n and_o be_v deceive_v by_o binnius_n and_o such_o other_o §_o 1._o 1._o he_o accuse_v i_o for_o not_o use_v valesius_fw-la his_o edition_n of_o eusebius_n and_o those_o edition_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o account_v the_o best_a to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o i_o be_o not_o rich_a enough_o to_o buy_v they_o nor_o can_v keep_v they_o if_o i_o have_v they_o must_v none_o write_v but_o rich_a man_n the_o french_a council_n will_v cost_v more_o than_o many_o of_o we_o be_v worth_n we_o have_v have_v no_o ecclesiastical_a maintenance_n these_o 19_o year_n and_o we_o can_v keep_v the_o book_n we_o have_v luther_n write_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr conciliis_fw-la when_o it_o seem_v he_o have_v never_o read_v many_o of_o the_o council_n act_n but_o as_o relate_v by_o eusebius_n socrates_n sozomen_n and_o the_o tripartite_a history_n 2._o dr._n james_n have_v long_o ago_o warn_v all_o scholar_n to_o make_v much_o of_o crab_n and_o other_o old_a one_o and_o the_o father_n as_o print_v at_o basil_n by_o erasmus_n amerbachius_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o to_o trust_v much_o to_o new_a edition_n as_o come_v through_o untrusty_a hand_n 3._o be_v valesius_fw-la a_o man_n of_o so_o much_o credit_n with_o you_o do_v you_o believe_v what_o he_o say_v of_o grotius_n as_o be_v in_o judgement_n for_o the_o papal_a church_n and_o only_o in_o prudence_n delay_v his_o visible_a communion_n with_o they_o that_o he_o may_v draw_v in_o many_o with_o he_o vale_n in_o orat._n de_fw-fr petavio_n if_o he_o lie_v in_o this_o and_o the_o success_n of_o petavius_n on_o grotius_n why_o shall_v he_o be_v more_o trust_v than_o other_o if_o not_o i_o need_v not_o tell_v you_o what_o to_o think_v of_o those_o bishop_n and_o drs._n who_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o church_n as_o grotius_n nor_o again_o to_o tell_v you_o who_o they_o be_v 4._o my_o design_n lead_v i_o not_o to_o make_v use_n of_o critic_n but_o only_o to_o tell_v the_o world_n what_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v such_o as_o i_o have_v throughout_o cite_v §_o 2._o as_o for_o my_o use_v hanmers_n translation_n of_o eusebius_n and_o socrates_n my_o case_n be_v ●s_a before_o describe_v valesius_fw-la i_o have_v not_o grineus_n i_o make_v use_v of_o heretofore_o but_o since_o i_o be_v by_o constraint_n deprive_v both_o of_o my_o book_n and_o money_n to_o buy_v more_o when_o i_o write_v that_o abridgement_n i_o have_v only_o hanmers_n translation_n leave_v i_o and_o if_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o force_v i_o to_o give_v away_o my_o book_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o be_v distrein_v on_o will_v make_v use_n of_o this_o to_o prove_v i_o ignorant_a of_o they_o the_o matter_n be_v very_o small_a to_o i_o if_o you_o say_v i_o shall_v not_o then_o have_v write_v i_o answer_v can_v they_o so_o have_v silence_v we_o in_o the_o pulpit_n they_o have_v more_o answer_v their_o own_o judgement_n than_o i_o i_o have_v no_o use_n for_o critic_n nor_o for_o any_o thing_n in_o eusebius_n and_o socrates_n that_o depend_v on_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o translator_n §_o 3._o as_o to_o his_o oft_o note_v that_o in_o translation_n and_o sometime_o in_o chronology_n i_o err_v by_o follow_v binnius_n i_o answer_v have_v i_o write_v a_o full_a church_n history_n i_o shall_v better_o have_v examine_v he_o and_o other_o but_o i_o lay_v no_o stress_n of_o my_o cause_n of_o any_o of_o binnius_n his_o translation_n nor_o will_v i_o undertake_v for_o any_o historian_n that_o i_o cite_v my_o business_n be_v but_o to_o tell_v those_o that_o believe_v binnius_n and_o baronius_n and_o such_o other_o what_o they_o say_v nor_o do_v i_o yet_o intend_v to_o bestow_v any_o time_n in_o examine_v whether_o he_o wrong_v binnius_n or_o not_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o my_o cause_n nor_o i_o whether_o he_o mistake_v a_o year_n or_o the_o meaning_n of_o a_o word_n of_o the_o author_n who_o he_o cit_v §_o 4._o he_o say_v i_o use_v a_o old_a uncorrect_a edition_n of_o binnius_n 1606._o ans_fw-fr it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o most_o common_a use_n entitle_v recognita_fw-la aucta_fw-la notis_fw-la illustrata_fw-la dedicate_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o c._n baronius_n ejus_fw-la monitu_fw-la scripta_fw-la qui_fw-la veterem_fw-la illam_fw-la mendosam_fw-la mutilam_fw-la &_o confusam_fw-la compilationem_fw-la mille_fw-la locis_fw-la illustravit_fw-la etc._n etc._n common_o prefer_v before_o crab_n surius_n nicolinus_n etc._n etc._n but_o any_o quarrel_n serve_v some_o man_n chap._n vi_o of_o his_o accusation_n of_o my_o own_o mistranslation_n and_o mistake_v §_o 1._o of_o these_o be_v two_o real_a oversight_n which_o he_o name_v commit_v by_o too_o much_o haste_n and_o heedlessness_n the_o one_o be_v that_o i_o misplace_v vere_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o a_o speech_n of_o theodoret_n a_o gross_a oversight_n i_o confess_v the_o other_o that_o i_o put_v episcopi_fw-la as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o 〈…〉_z tive_n case_n when_o it_o be_v the_o nominative_a plural_a which_o also_o be_v a_o heedless_a oversight_n and_o about_o the_o death_n of_o stephanus_n he_o note_v my_o mistranslate_n calami_fw-la and_o i_o imagine_v yet_o he_o be_v scarce_o certain_a what_o it_o signify_v himself_o as_o for_o his_o note_n of_o my_o use_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o ephesine_n council_n i_o purposely_o keep_v to_o the_o literal_a translation_n that_o none_o may_v say_v i_o do_v mistranslate_v it_o but_o i_o never_o say_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n be_v mean_v the_o bible_n §_o 2._o this_o accuser_n put_v too_o great_a a_o honour_n on_o such_o a_o history_n as_o i_o which_o go_v through_o so_o many_o age_n and_o act_n in_o note_v so_o few_o and_o such_o little_a thing_n i_o never_o pretend_v to_o be_v as_o good_a a_o historian_n as_o he_o be_v yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v any_o thing_n but_o a_o slip_n of_o memory_n that_o make_v he_o put_v eustathius_n instead_o of_o flavian_n as_o kick_v to_o death_n at_o ephesus_n and_o i_o think_v he_o that_o thus_o begin_v his_o errata_fw-la of_o his_o own_o book_n the_o fault_n that_o have_v escape_v be_v almost_o infinite_a shall_v not_o for_o one_o false_a comma_n of_o the_o
or_o absent_v much_o less_o that_o class_n and_o other_o assembly_n be_v the_o state_v church-government_n which_o all_o must_v obey_v and_o be_v the_o presbyterian_o of_o any_o of_o the_o three_o forementioned_a opinion_n §_o 5._o i_o ever_o hold_v a_o necessity_n of_o manifold_a dependence_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o church_n as_o all_o depend_v on_o christ_n as_o their_o head_n so_o do_v all_o the_o people_n on_o the_o pastor_n as_o their_o authorize_v guide_n who_o they_o must_v not_o rule_v but_o be_v rule_v by_o 1_o thes_n 5._o 12_o 13._o heb._n 13._o 17_o 24._o and_o all_o these_o church_n depend_v on_o each_o other_o for_o communion_n and_o mutual_a help_n as_o many_o corporation_n in_o one_o kingdom_n and_o frequent_a synod_n well_o use_v be_v great_o helpful_a to_o these_o end_n and_o the_o command_n of_o do_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v in_o love_n and_o concord_n do_v bind_v all_o the_o particular_a person_n to_o concur_v with_o the_o synod_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n or_o be_v not_o against_o it_o and_o more_o than_o so_o if_o the_o general_a visitor_n or_o bishop_n that_o take_v care_n of_o many_o church_n do_v by_o god_n word_n direct_v instruct_v reprove_v admonish_v the_o particular_a bishop_n and_o church_n they_o ought_v with_o reverence_n to_o hear_v they_o and_o obey_v they_o and_o if_o independent_o real_o be_v for_o all_o this_o why_o do_v these_o accuser_n represent_v they_o odious_o as_o if_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o they_o be_v mere_o for_o church-democracy_n either_o you_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o what_o you_o say_v of_o they_o or_o of_o i_o §_o 6._o i_o know_v we_o have_v man_n that_o say_v that_o on_o pretence_n of_o acknowledge_v all_o this_o episcopacy_n i_o put_v down_o all_o because_o i_o take_v from_o they_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o leave_n all_o to_o despise_v they_o if_o they_o please_v ans_fw-fr this_o indeed_o be_v the_o power_n that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o episcopacy_n now_o too_o many_o mean_v bishop_n bilson_n know_v no_o power_n but_o magistrate_n by_o the_o sword_n and_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n but_o why_o name_n i_o one_o man_n it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n and_o most_o sober_a papist_n that_o bishop_n as_o such_o have_v no_o power_n of_o force_n on_o body_n or_o purse_n but_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o force_a power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n 3._o but_o we_o hearty_o wish_v that_o they_o will_v keep_v it_o in_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o never_o use_v it_o to_o force_v unwilling_a man_n into_o the_o church_n or_o to_o church-communion_n high_a privilege_n which_o no_o unwilling_a person_n have_v any_o right_n to_o this_o be_v my_o independency_n chap._n x._o of_o his_o accusation_n that_o i_o make_v the_o bishop_n the_o author_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o schism_n as_o distinct_a from_o presbyter_n monk_n and_o people_n §_o 1._o this_o also_o run_v throughout_o his_o book_n and_o must_v such_o book_n be_v answer_v or_o believe_v i_o never_o deny_v the_o guilt_n and_o concurrence_n of_o other_o with_o they_o i_o only_o say_v that_o as_o bishop_n be_v the_o chief_a so_o they_o have_v the_o chief_a hand_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v yet_o learn_v in_o heresy_n and_o schism_n since_o they_o come_v to_o their_o height_n of_o power_n and_o special_o in_o those_o grand_a heresy_n and_o schism_n which_o have_v break_v and_o keep_v the_o church_n in_o those_o great_a sect_n and_o party_n which_o in_o east_n and_o west_n it_o consist_v of_o to_o this_o day_n i_o never_o doubt_v or_o deny_v but_o that_o 1._o the_o heresy_n that_o be_v raise_v before_o the_o church_n have_v any_o patriarch_n or_o the_o turgent_fw-la sort_n of_o bishop_n be_v certain_o raise_v without_o they_o 2._o and_o afterward_o sometime_o a_o presbyter_n begin_v a_o heresy_n 3._o and_o the_o bishop_n be_v but_o as_o the_o general_n of_o the_o army_n in_o all_o the_o church_n civil_a war_n but_o i_o never_o deny_v but_o the_o prelatical_a priest_n monk_n and_o multitude_n be_v their_o obsequious_a army_n §_o 2._o mr._n m._n say_v that_o those_o bishop_n that_o be_v heretic_n be_v most_o such_o or_o incline_v to_o it_o before_o answ_n 1._o be_v there_o then_o a_o good_a succession_n of_o ordination_n when_o the_o world_n groan_v to_o find_v itself_o arian_n be_v all_o these_o arian_n before_o their_o consecration_n answ_n 2._o be_v they_o not_o all_o prelatical_a presbyter_n that_o aspire_v to_o be_v bishop_n and_o so_o as_o they_o say_v have_v a_o pope_n or_o bishop_n in_o their_o belly_n i_o never_o think_v that_o prelatical_a priest_n that_o study_a preferment_n and_o long_v to_o be_v bishop_n have_v no_o hand_n in_o heresy_n nor_o schism_n no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o roman_a clergy_n be_v innocent_a herein_o and_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n alone_o what_o a_o deal_n then_o of_o this_o man_n book_n be_v lose_v and_o worse_o on_o such_o supposition_n chap._n xi_o of_o his_o confident_a accusation_n that_o i_o mention_v all_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o none_o of_o their_o goodness_n or_o good_a deed_n §_o 1._o this_o also_o be_v a_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o warp_n or_o stamen_fw-la of_o his_o book_n in_o his_o preface_n he_o say_v this_o history_n of_o bishop_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o account_n of_o all_o the_o fault_n that_o bishop_n have_v commit_v in_o the_o several_a age_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o their_o good_a action_n of_o their_o piety_n and_o severity_n of_o their_o life_n of_o their_o zeal_n for_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n answ_n 1._o whether_o this_o fundamental_a accusation_n be_v true_a or_o false_a let_v the_o reader_n who_o love_v truth_n see_v 1._o in_o the_o very_a first_o chapt._n from_o §_o 41._o to_o the_o end_n 2._o through_o all_o the_o book_n where_o i_o oft_o praise_v good_a bishop_n good_a counsel_n and_o good_a canon_n and_o good_a book_n and_o deed_n 3._o in_o the_o two_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n write_v purposely_o to_o hinder_v a_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o bishop_n fault_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n very_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v humble_a hol●_n faithful_a man_n that_o grieve_v for_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o the_o rest_n though_o such_o excellent_a person_n as_o gregory_n of_o neocaesarea_n greg._n nazianz._n greg._n nyssen_n basil_n chrysostom_n augustine_n hillary_n prosper_n fulgentius_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o very_o common_a no_o doubt_n but_o there_o be_v many_o that_o write_v not_o book_n nor_o come_v so_o much_o into_o the_o notice_n of_o the_o world_n but_o avoid_v contention_n and_o factious_a stir_n that_o quiet_o and_o honest_o conduct_v the_o flock_n in_o the_o way_n of_o piety_n love_n and_o justice_z and_o some_o of_o they_o as_o st._n martin_n separate_v from_o the_o council_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o prevail_a turbulent_a sort_n of_o the_o prelate_n to_o signify_v the_o disow_n of_o their_o sin_n of_o the_o ancient_n before_o the_o world_n crowd_v into_o the_o church_n i_o never_o make_v question_n such_o as_o clemens_n polycarp_n ignatius_n irenaeus_n and_o the_o rest_n how_o oft_o i_o have_v praise_v holy_a cyprian_a and_o the_o african_a bishop_n and_o council_n he_o sometime_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v of_o atticus_n proclus_n and_o other_o peaceable_a bishop_n you_o may_v see_v p._n 17._o and_o very_o oft_o yea_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o many_o sect_n much_o of_o the_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n p._n 17_o 18._o yea_o of_o the_o good_a that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o very_a worldly_a sort_n p._n 18_o 19_o 20._o yea_o of_o the_o papist_n bishop_n that_o be_v pious_a p._n 20._o §_o 46._o and_o §_o 47._o i_o vindicate_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o sacred_a office_n and_o §_o 53_o 58_o 59_o 60._o i_o plead_v for_o episcopacy_n itself_o in_o the_o justifiable_a species_n of_o it_o §_o 2._o but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o at_o least_o i_o say_v more_o of_o their_o fault_n than_o their_o 〈◊〉_d i_o answer_v of_o such_o good_a bishop_n as_o cyprian_a basil_n greg._n nazianzen_n chrysostom_n augustin_n hillary_n martin_n etc._n etc._n i_o speak_v of_o their_o virtue_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o that_o i_o remember_v of_o their_o fault_n of_o such_o as_o theophilus_n and_o cyril_n alexandri_n and_o epiphanius_n etc._n etc._n i_o speak_v of_o their_o virtue_n and_o some_o of_o their_o fault_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v of_o many_o good_a man_n of_o the_o more_o ambitious_a turbulent_a sort_n i_o speak_v only_o or_o most_o of_o their_o fault_n for_o i_o profess_v not_o to_o write_v a_o history_n of_o their_o life_n but_o to_o inform_v the_o ignorant_a what_o spirit_n it_o be_v that_o bring_v in_o church_n tyranny_n and_o division_n i_o deny_v
fact_n yea_o the_o most_o public_a of_o the_o person_n place_n and_o time_n which_o our_o sense_n have_v give_v we_o notice_n of_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o with_o as_o great_a difficulty_n as_o we_o must_v believe_v transubstantiation_n even_o in_o opposition_n to_o all_o our_o sense_n and_o experience_n and_o whether_o those_o man_n be_v fit_a vindicaters_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o council_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o which_o be_v blame_v by_o the_o historian_n of_o their_o own_o age_n and_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o by_o their_o most_o servant_n defender_n who_o notorious_o misreport_v the_o person_n and_o action_n of_o their_o own_o place_n and_o age_n i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o judge_v i_o will_v instance_n in_o twenty_o particular_n of_o public_a notice_n for_o those_o against_o particular_a person_n even_o myself_o be_v not_o to_o be_v number_v i._o it_o be_v now_o common_o take_v for_o true_a that_o the_o present_a nonconformist_n who_o give_v in_o their_o desire_n for_o concord_n 1660._o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n as_o those_o call_v nonconformist_n heretofore_o and_o whatever_o can_v be_v rake_v up_o out_o of_o christ_n goodman_n knox_n kilby_n or_o be_v report_v by_o bancroft_n be_v partly_o chargeable_a on_o they_o when_o as_o their_o propose_a desire_n yet_o show_v the_o world_n that_o they_o never_o make_v any_o motion_n against_o many_o thing_n by_o those_o aforesaid_a scruple_v in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o ceremony_n and_o it_o be_v common_o suppose_v by_o they_o that_o the_o present_a conformity_n be_v but_o the_o same_o as_o the_o old_a and_o the_o case_n no_o hard_o to_o we_o and_o this_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o still_o visible_a act_n and_o alteration_n and_o addition_n which_o attest_v the_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o world_n ii_o in_o most_o of_o their_o invective_n the_o present_a nonconformist_n be_v argue_v against_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o the_o civil_a war_n against_o the_o king_n or_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o it_o more_o than_o the_o conformist_n and_o that_o war_n be_v make_v a_o reason_n of_o their_o silence_v whereas_o so_o few_o of_o they_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o it_o that_o i_o have_v many_o time_n tell_v they_o that_o if_o they_o will_v silence_n none_o but_o those_o that_o they_o can_v prove_v guilty_a of_o any_o war_n or_o rebellion_n or_o sedition_n the_o rest_n of_o we_o will_v give_v they_o a_o thousand_o thanks_o though_o we_o suffer_v ourselves_o few_o of_o the_o present_a nonconformist_n be_v then_o in_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o those_o few_o that_o be_v few_o now_o live_v meddle_v with_o war._n iii_o they_o be_v so_o confident_a that_o the_o parliament_n and_o army_n that_o begin_v the_o war_n in_o england_n be_v nonconformist_n yea_o presbyterian_o and_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o mr._n hinkley_n &_o here_o mr._n morrice_n make_v a_o renounce_n of_o their_o sense_n or_o understanding_n necessary_a to_o the_o believe_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o they_o may_v as_o well_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v all_o turk_n or_o papist_n be_v not_o a_o parliament_n and_o a_o army_n thing_n public_a enough_o to_o be_v know_v in_o the_o same_o age_n when_o we_o name_n to_o they_o the_o chief_a lord_n and_o commons_o and_o chief_a commander_n yet_o and_o late_o live_v who_o be_v know_v still_o to_o live_v in_o their_o own_o communion_n and_o when_o we_o challenge_v they_o to_o name_v three_o presbyterian_o that_o be_v then_o in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n or_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o or_o many_o that_o be_v at_o first_o commander_n in_o the_o army_n and_o we_o name_v they_o the_o man_n that_o then_o command_v who_o be_v common_o know_v to_o be_v conformist_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v their_o present_a practice_n and_o profession_n they_o may_v yet_o go_v to_o they_o and_o be_v satisfy_v from_o their_o own_o mouth_n what_o be_v their_o former_a principle_n i_o have_v tell_v they_o of_o a_o most_o credible_a member_n of_o that_o parliament_n yet_o live_v who_o have_v oft_o profess_v to_o i_o that_o he_o know_v but_o one_o presbyterian_a in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o when_o the_o war_n begin_v and_o i_o have_v name_v that_o one_o man_n to_o they_o to_o try_v if_o they_o can_v name_v another_o i_o expect_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v believe_v i_o or_o such_o other_o concern_v those_o who_o we_o know_v but_o they_o may_v believe_v the_o man_n themselves_o yet_o live_v &_o their_o most_o familiar_a friend_n yea_o the_o record_n of_o many_o forego_v parliament_n with_o laua_n life_n write_v by_o dr._n heylin_n full_o show_v they_o that_o the_o difference_n arise_v 1._o about_o the_o fear_n of_o popery_n and_o arminianism_n as_o they_o think_v tend_v towards_o it_o 2._o about_o property_n loan-mony_n knight-mony_n and_o after_o shipmoney_n etc._n etc._n 3._o about_o imprisonment_n of_o member_n and_o other_o gentleman_n and_o these_o be_v still_o the_o quarrel_n but_o say_v mr._n m._n how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v our_o sense_n ans_fw-fr see_v reader_n whether_o his_o most_o confident_a error_n about_o past_a thing_n be_v any_o wonder_n he_o be_v not_o so_o sure_a of_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o old_a prelate_n or_o the_o nestorian_n eutychian_o etc._n etc._n as_o he_o be_v that_o he_o must_v believe_v his_o sense_n and_o his_o very_a sense_n tell_v he_o that_o a_o parliament_n even_o lord_n commons_z and_o a_o army_n many_o of_o who_o be_v yet_o live_v be_v of_o another_o opinion_n in_o religion_n than_o ever_o they_o be_v then_o acquaint_v with_o and_o which_o be_v know_v to_o very_a few_o in_o england_n till_o afterward_o and_o this_o contrary_a to_o their_o profession_n and_o practice_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o acquaintance_n lord_n be_v person_n of_o so_o public_a notice_n that_o they_o may_v easy_o yet_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o army_n the_o chief_a commander_n be_v the_o e._n of_o essex_n the_o e._n of_o bedford_n yet_o live_a sir_n john_n merrick_n the_o e._n of_o peterborough_n dolbiere_n the_o e._n of_o stamford_n the_o lord_n hastings_n e._n of_o huntingdon_n the_o lord_n rochfort_n e._n of_o dover_n the_o lord_n fielding_n e._n of_o denbigh_n the_o lord_n mandevile_n e._n of_o manchester_n the_o lord_n roberts_n now_o earl_n of_o radnor_n and_o precedent_n of_o his_o majesty_n council_n the_o lord_n st._n john_n kill_v at_o keim●n_a fight_n only_o the_o lord_n say_v and_o lord_n brook_n be_v know_v independent_o and_o whether_o the_o lord_n wharton_n yet_o live_a be_v then_o for_o bishop_n or_o against_o they_o i_o know_v not_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o be_v the_o other_o colonel_n sir_n henry_n cholmley_n the_o late_a lord_n hollis_n col._n will._n bampfield_n col._n tho._n grantham_n col._n tho._n ballard_n c._n sir_n william_n fair_a fax_fw-la col._n charles_n essex_n col._n lord_n willoughby_n of_o parham_n col._n sir_n will._n waller_n col._n edwin_n sandys_n cap._n lord_n grey_n of_o grooby_n and_o i_o think_v then_o sir_n will._n constable_n and_o col._n hampden_n what_o mind_n sir_n will._n balfoore_a be_v of_o i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o know_v his_o country_n man_n col._n brown_n be_v too_o far_o from_o a_o puritan_n but_o say_v mr._n m._n 1._o it_o be_v well_o the_o bishop_n have_v no_o share_n in_o it_o ans_fw-fr let_v heylin_n tell_v you_o what_o hand_n the_o difference_n between_o a._n bishop_n abbat_v church_n of_o england_n and_o laud'_v then_o little_a party_n have_v in_o the_o preparation_n 2._o and_o be_v the_o a._n bishop_n of_o york_n no_o bishop_n who_o afterward_o be_v a_o commander_n for_o the_o parliament_n but_o say_v he_o i_o pray_v where_o be_v the_o presbyterian_o when_o the_o parliament_n take_v up_o arm_n be_v they_o not_o then_o in_o be_v ans_fw-fr a_o excellent_a historian_n that_o maintain_v parliament_n and_o army_n be_v such_o as_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o be_v then_o in_o be_v yes_o sir_n they_o be_v in_o holland_n and_o france_n and_o geneva_n and_o scotland_n and_o in_o england_n there_o be_v one_o john_n ball_n and_o one_o mr._n langley_n and_o a_o few_o more_o such_o old_a nonconformist_n that_o never_o be_v in_o arm_n and_o old_a john_n dod_n and_o one_o mr._n geree_n that_o be_v against_o the_o war_n and_o die_v for_o grief_n of_o the_o king_n death_n but_o among_o those_o call_v puritan_n few_o know_v what_o presbytery_n be_v till_o the_o scot_n afterward_o bring_v it_o in_o much_o less_o do_v lord_n commons_z and_o army_n know_v it_o in_o your_o sense_n sir_n they_o be_v not_o then_o in_o be_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o fight_v it_o appear_v by_o bancroft_n and_o other_o that_o there_o have_v be_v once_o
presbyterian_o in_o england_n but_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o few_o even_o of_o the_o few_o nonconform_a minister_n succeed_v they_o in_o the_o study_n of_o that_o point_n but_o say_v he_o be_v they_o none_o of_o they_o in_o the_o house_n ans_fw-fr yes_o one_o or_o do_v they_o protest_v against_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o episcopal_a and_o erastians_n ans_fw-fr that_o one_o go_v with_o they_o and_o non_fw-la entis_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la accidentia_fw-la but_o say_v he_o can_v mr._n b._n believe_v or_o think_v any_o one_o else_o so_o weak_a as_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o notorious_a that_o it_o be_v a_o parliament_n of_o episcopal_o and_o erastians_n and_o not_o presbyterian_o that_o begin_v the_o war_n ans_fw-fr thus_o youngman_n that_o know_v not_o who_o they_o talk_v of_o can_v control_v the_o most_o public_a matter_n of_o fact_n by_o their_o conjecture_n go_v ask_v the_o worthy_a master_n of_o the_o roll_n sir_n harbottle_n grimston_n who_o speech_n be_v then_o print_v ask_v sir_n joh._n maynard_n his_o majesty_n sergeant_n at_o law_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o of_o they_o yet_o live_v ask_v they_o whether_o they_o know_v themselves_o and_o their_o companion_n better_a than_o you_o who_o it_o seem_v know_v they_o not_o but_o say_v he_o be_v they_o episcopal_v that_o vote_v down_o episcopacy_n root_n and_o branch_n before_o the_o war_n begin_v ans_fw-fr 1._o have_v you_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v so_o 2._o do_v you_o think_v that_o acontradiction_n 1._o they_o have_v get_v a_o belief_n that_o bishop_n laud_n have_v get_v such_o man_n into_o the_o seat_n as_o be_v for_o a_o syncretism_n with_o the_o papist_n describe_v by_o heylin_n and_o against_o the_o subject_n property_n and_o liberty_n and_o it_o be_v the_o man_n and_o not_o the_o office_n that_o offend_v they_o 2._o but_o because_o they_o be_v willing_a of_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o scot_n and_o those_o londoner_n who_o be_v against_o the_o bishop_n they_o please_v they_o by_o vote_v down_o the_o present_a frame_n intend_v to_o set_v up_o a_o moderate_a episcopacy_n in_o its_o stead_n yea_o long_o after_o this_o when_o many_o learned_a divine_n in_o the_o assembly_n declare_v themselves_o for_o episcopacy_n but_o not_o for_o dean_n chancellor_n etc._n etc._n they_o alter_v the_o covenant_n so_o as_o to_o describe_v the_o present_a frame_n only_o and_o when_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n take_v the_o covenant_n mr._n coleman_n a_o erastian_n give_v it_o they_o open_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v not_o mere_a episcopacy_n that_o this_o covenant_n renounce_v but_o only_o the_o english_a describe_v complicate_v form_n and_o can_v they_o have_v have_v such_o bishop_n as_o abbot_n and_o the_o old_a church_n of_o england_n they_o have_v never_o go_v thus_o far_o 3._o and_o they_o think_v not_o episcopacy_n itself_o so_o necessary_a though_o if_o moderate_a the_o best_a sort_n of_o government_n as_o to_o hazard_v all_o for_o it_o which_o they_o think_v have_v be_v in_o danger_n even_o in_o 1640_o july_n 17._o they_o vote_v a_o diocesan_n in_o every_o county_n with_o twelve_o divine_n to_o govern._n but_o say_v he_o be_v they_o episcopal_v that_o petition_v the_o king_n at_o york_n for_o reformation_n in_o discipline_n and_o worship_n then_o i._o e._n for_o abolish_n episcopacy_n and_o common-prayer_n answ_n 1._o reform_v be_v not_o abolish_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o as_o to_o the_o last_o when_o they_o fear_v that_o the_o old_a house_n will_v fall_v on_o their_o head_n they_o be_v for_o pull_v of_o it_o down_o and_o build_v a_o new_a one_o after_o such_o a_o model_n as_o bishop_n usher_v after_o give_v and_o the_o german_n swedish_n and_o danish_a church_n have_v which_o they_o call_v the_o primitive_a episcopacy_n but_o before_o they_o can_v do_v it_o they_o need_v the_o scot_n help_n who_o bring_v in_o the_o covenant_n which_o they_o choose_v rather_o than_o to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o of_o who_o they_o have_v such_o thought_n and_o fear_n as_o i_o need_v not_o now_o describe_v prin_n history_n of_o laud'_v trial_n describe_v they_o i_o will_v ask_v this_o confident_a historian_n who_o sense_n tell_v he_o what_o religion_n man_n be_v of_o contrary_a to_o their_o daily_a practice_n of_o communicate_v in_o the_o parish-church_n conformable_o whether_o the_o long_a parliament_n of_o all_o which_o make_v the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n the_o corporation_n and_o vestry_n act_n the_o two_o act●_n against_o conventicle_n the_o militia_n act_n etc._n etc._n be_v presbyterian_a or_o episcopal_a very_o if_o these_o be_v presbyterian_o i_o be_o none_o nor_o ever_o will_v be_v we_o shall_v then_o have_v a_o strange_a definition_n of_o a_o presbyterian_a such_o as_o will_v take_v in_o bishop_n sheldon_n bishop_n morley_n bishop_n gunning_n and_o such_o other_o if_o not_o do_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o popery_n make_v that_o very_a parliament_n begin_v to_o look_v so_o sour_o on_o the_o clergy_n as_o produce_v that_o which_o i_o need_v not_o tell_v you_o of_o and_o do_v not_o most_o of_o the_o same_o man_n meet_v in_o the_o next_o parliament_n after_o and_o look_v yet_o more_o suspicious_o on_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o next_o yet_o more_o and_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o episcopal_a but_o presbyterian_a but_o some_o man_n be_v confident_a against_o the_o sun-light_n and_o the_o most_o notorious_a public_a evidence_n but_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o such_o have_v shake_v my_o belief_n of_o the_o mere_a moral_a evidence_n of_o most_o history_n and_o leave_v i_o only_o certain_a of_o that_o which_o have_v evidence_n which_o be_v true_o natural_a in_o the_o natural_a impossibility_n of_o conspiracy_n in_o a_o lie_n there_o be_v man_n heretofore_o that_o will_v swear_v that_o man_n be_v a_o puritan_n who_o will_v not_o swear_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o and_o will_v pray_v in_o their_o family_n and_o read_v the_o scripture_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n while_o other_o be_v dance_v and_o the_o word_n puritan_n be_v now_o vulgar_o change_v into_o presbyterian_a by_o the_o clergy_n conduct_v and_o there_o be_v some_o clergyman_n that_o will_v say_v a_o man_n be_v a_o presbyterian_a who_o reprove_v they_o for_o drunkenness_n and_o swear_v and_o other_o crime_n special_o if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v nonconformist_n ruin_v and_o lay_v in_o gaol_n with_o rogue_n in_o this_o sense_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o lord_n commons_o and_o army_n have_v many_o puritan_n or_o presbyterian_o among_o they_o who_o yet_o never_o know_v what_o presbytery_n be_v but_o say_v mr._n m._n be_v they_o episcopal_a who_o pray_v the_o king_n at_o oxford_n to_o abolish_v a._n bishop_n and_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n that_o enter_v into_o a_o solemn_a league_n and_o covenant_n against_o episcopacy_n and_o for_o reform_v the_o church_n after_o the_o presbyterian_a platform_n and_o set_v up_o presbytery_n by_o so_o many_o ordinance_n answ_n distingue_n tempora_fw-la be_v none_o of_o this_o historian_n principle_n how_o long_o after_o the_o war_n begin_v be_v this_o petition_n at_o oxford_n this_o covenant_n and_o these_o ordinance_n he_o prove_v they_o presbyterian_o at_o first_o when_o they_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v for_o presbytery_n a_o year_n or_o two_o after_o negatur_fw-la sequela_fw-la the_o scot_n teach_v afterward_o the_o assembly_n and_o they_o that_o which_o they_o never_o know_v before_o 2._o and_o all_o these_o petition_n &_o ordinance_n show_v not_o what_o they_o prefer_v as_o best_a but_o what_o they_o prefer_v before_o expect_v ruin_n the_o issue_n prove_v this_o and_o heylin_n confess_v it_o and_o say_v they_o never_o set_v up_o presbytery_n in_o any_o one_o place_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o true_a though_o they_o do_v not_o force_v it_o 3._o do_v you_o not_o know_v now_o live_v those_o episcopal_a conformist_n who_o refuse_v no_o part_n of_o your_o conformity_n and_o be_v much_o against_o presbytery_n who_o since_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o papist_n plot_n be_v so_o much_o afraid_a of_o popery_n and_o so_o confident_a that_o too_o many_o of_o the_o clergy_n be_v prepare_v for_o it_o that_o a_o little_a more_o will_v turn_v they_o from_o you_o though_o they_o love_v presbytery_n as_o little_a as_o they_o love_v yourselves_o in_o a_o word_n the_o old_a clergy_n and_o the_o parliament_n man_n agree_v the_o new_a clergy_n in_o bishop_n laud'_v time_n distaste_v they_o &_o the_o scots_a presbyterian_o help_a they_o in_o their_o strait_n partly_o turn_v some_o of_o they_o and_o partly_o impose_v on_o they_o unpleasing_a condition_n but_o say_v he_o the_o erastians_n and_o independent_o be_v at_o first_o inconsiderable_a and_o act_v joint_o with_o the_o presbyterian_o etc._n etc._n answ_n thus_o be_v history_n deliver_v to_o the_o delude_a world_n neither_o independency_n nor_o presbytery_n be_v understand_v by_o many_o till_o the_o war_n be_v
begin_v the_o scots_a commissioner_n by_o degree_n acquaint_v they_o with_o presbytery_n and_o mr._n burton_n protestation_n protest_v and_o the_o five_o dissenter_n with_o independency_n two_o or_o three_o independent_o be_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o some_o few_o in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o it_o be_v episcopal-man_n that_o make_v up_o the_o main_a body_n these_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o sort_n think_v episcopacy_n of_o divine_a institution_n but_o not_o chancellor_n dean_n and_o chapter_n arch-deacon_n official_o etc._n etc._n the_o other_o sort_n think_v that_o episcopacy_n not_o rampant_a be_v the_o best_a government_n jure_fw-la humano_fw-la but_o that_o the_o magistrate_n be_v chief_a may_v set_v it_o up_o or_o take_v it_o down_o as_o he_o see_v most_o for_o the_o common_a good_a these_o be_v call_v by_o some_o erastians_n and_o that_o these_o at_o first_o be_v inconsiderable_a be_v history_n write_v in_o despite_n of_o evidence_n let_v any_o man_n 1_o read_v what_o parliament_n former_o say_v 2._o and_o what_o many_o english_a divine_n write_v for_o the_o jus_fw-la humanum_fw-la against_o the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la and_o what_o testimony_n prin_fw-mi have_v give_v of_o it_o 3._o and_o what_o dr._n stillingfleet_n have_v produce_v for_o it_o in_o his_o irenicon_n 4._o and_o how_o common_o it_o be_v own_v by_o conformist_n then_o in_o conserence_n 5._o and_o how_o common_o the_o lawyer_n be_v for_o the_o humane_a right_n 6._o yea_o and_o the_o civilian_n themselves_o and_o then_o let_v he_o take_v this_o historian_n word_n if_o he_o tell_v posterity_n that_o the_o parliament_n and_o army_n be_v not_o english_a man_n iv._o these_o historian_n candid_o tell_v the_o world_n that_o the_o nonconformist_n who_o offer_v their_o desire_n for_o concord_n 1660._o be_v presbyterian_o and_o so_o be_v most_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n now_o whereas_o they_o never_o make_v one_o motion_n for_o presbytery_n for_o lay-elder_n for_o rule_v class_n or_o assembly_n nor_o against_o episcopacy_n but_o only_o offer_v the_o paper_n call_v a._n bishop_n usher_n reduction_n of_o episcopacy_n to_o the_o primitive_a form_n wherein_o neither_o a._n bishop_n nor_o bishop_n nor_o dean_n and_o chapter_n archdeacon_n be_v take_v down_o or_o any_o of_o their_o revenue_n lordship_n or_o parliament-power_n this_o be_v presbytery_n with_o these_o historian_n v._o they_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o conformist_n be_v such_o as_o suffer_v for_o the_o king_n or_o comply_v not_o with_o the_o directory_n and_o time_n of_o usurpation_n whereas_o it_o be_v public_o notorious_a that_o there_o be_v about_o 9000_o parish-church_n in_o england_n beside_o many_o hundred_o chapel_n &_o many_o church_n that_o have_v more_o than_o one_o minister_n and_o almost_o all_o these_o comply_v with_o the_o time_n or_o directory_n as_o the_o nonconformist_n do_v and_o of_o all_o these_o it_o be_v but_o about_o 2000_o that_o conform_a not_o so_o that_o 7000_o or_o 8000_o of_o they_o that_o have_v keep_v in_o do_v on_o a_o sudden_a turn_n conformist_n and_o divers_a that_o have_v be_v in_o arm_n for_o the_o parliament_n yea_o some_o that_o have_v write_v for_o the_o engagement_n when_o i_o write_v against_o it_o yea_o some_o that_o have_v speak_v or_o write_v tantum_fw-la non_fw-la a_o justification_n of_o the_o kill_v of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o those_o that_o join_v with_o we_o in_o our_o proposal_n for_o concord_n dr._n worth_a and_o dr._n reignolds_n be_v make_v bishop_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v conform_v vi_o these_o historian_n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o present_a church_n and_o such_o as_o they_o do_v more_o than_o the_o parliamentarian_o and_o presbyterian_o and_o nonconformist_n to_o restore_v the_o king_n when_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v how_o oft_o their_o attempt_n be_v defeat_v and_o what_o the_o scot_n army_n under_o hamilton_n undergo_v to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o next_o and_o of_o the_o lord_n delamore_n attempt_n and_o what_o the_o restore_v parliament_n do_v but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o the_o old_a parliament_n soldier_n and_o presbyterian_a commander_n and_o soldier_n in_o general_n monk_n army_n with_o those_o in_o england_n and_o ireland_n that_o join_v with_o he_o and_o sir_n thomas_n allen_n lord_n mayor_n with_o the_o londoner_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a minister_n draw_v general_a monk_n to_o join_v with_o they_o do_v the_o main_a work_n which_o the_o council_n and_o parliament_n after_o finish_v when_o most_o of_o these_o man_n that_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o oblivion_n of_o discord_n nor_o the_o reconcile_n and_o union_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n do_v but_o start_v up_o to_o revile_v other_o and_o blow_v the_o coal_n again_o and_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o other_o man_n labour_n that_o desire_v but_o to_o live_v in_o peace_n vii_o that_o there_o be_v able_a worthy_a man_n that_o conform_v we_o be_v far_o from_o deny_v and_o we_o earnest_o desire_v their_o concord_n and_o the_o success_n of_o their_o labour_n and_o i_o hope_v love_v they_o as_o ourselves_o but_o whereas_o the_o history_n of_o this_o party_n do_v proclaim_v how_o much_o better_o and_o able_a minister_n than_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v general_o put_v into_o their_o place_n that_o be_v no_o novice_n or_o ignorant_a youth_n no_o drunkard_n nor_o scandalous_a but_o more_o laborious_a skilful_a labourer_n i_o will_v say_v nothing_o but_o let_v the_o country_n judge_n viii_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n ministry_n but_o the_o church_n be_v sufficient_o supply_v without_o they_o both_z as_o to_o the_o number_n and_o quality_n of_o their_o teacher_n i_o have_v in_o my_o apology_n inquire_v and_o with_o godly_a man_n it_o be_v easy_o judge_v ix_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v only_o for_o the_o king_n or_o bishop_n cause_n that_o the_o parliament_n put_v out_o all_o or_o most_o of_o they_o that_o be_v heretofore_o remove_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o witness_n and_o article_n against_o they_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o and_o my_o neighbour_n minister_n petition_v that_o none_o that_o be_v tolerable_a pious_a minister_n may_v be_v put_v out_o for_o be_v for_o the_o king_n or_o bishop_n x._o it_o be_v common_o now_o record_v and_o report_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o those_o that_o now_o conform_v not_o put_v down_o catechise_v and_o turn_v the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n out_o of_o the_o church_n service_n whereas_o if_o some_o few_o independent_o do_v any_o of_o this_o it_o be_v more_o than_o i_o know_v but_o in_o all_o our_o country_n and_o where_o i_o come_v i_o remember_v no_o church_n that_o do_v not_o use_v the_o creed_n open_o at_o their_o baptise_v any_o and_o the_o decalogue_n frequent_o read_v out_o of_o exod._n 20._o or_o deut._n 5._o and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n frequent_o as_o we_o do_v constant_o but_o some_o thought_n that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o use_v it_o every_o time_n they_o pray_v and_o the_o directory_n commend_v all_o these_o to_o they_o and_o all_o our_o country_n agree_v not_o only_o to_o catechise_v public_o but_o to_o take_v large_a time_n on_o the_o week_n day_n to_o catechise_v every_o family_n xi_o these_o historian_n say_v that_o i_o and_o such_o other_o take_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o conform_v not_o to_o to_o be_v but_o inconvenience_n and_o not_o sin_n and_o that_o we_o keep_v the_o nation_n in_o schism_n while_o we_o confess_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v but_o indifferent_a and_o our_o write_n be_v visible_a in_o which_o we_o profess_v the_o contrary_a and_o labour_v by_o many_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o and_o protest_v that_o we_o will_v conform_v if_o we_o take_v they_o not_o to_o be_v sin_n and_o we_o give_v in_o a_o catalogue_n of_o what_o we_o judge_v to_o be_v sin_n and_o this_o before_o the_o new_a conformity_n be_v impose_v and_o since_o the_o fierce_a displeasure_n be_v against_o we_o for_o tell_v they_o what_o we_o account_v sin_n and_o how_o great_a when_o many_o year_n together_o our_o ruler_n and_o the_o people_n be_v tell_v that_o we_o confess_v they_o indifferent_a and_o refuse_v they_o but_o to_o avoid_v offend_v our_o follower_n xii_o we_o frequent_o hear_v from_o they_o that_o we_o oppose_v episcopacy_n because_o we_o can_v be_v bishop_n ourselves_o when_o it_o be_v know_v that_o nothing_o can_v more_o put_v man_n out_o of_o all_o such_o hope_n than_o the_o presbyterian_o endeavour_n that_o both_o their_o power_n and_o wealth_n shall_v be_v take_v down_o and_o he_o that_o have_v any_o desire_n of_o a_o bishopric_n shall_v sure_o be_v for_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o up_o and_o the_o same_o man_n reprove_v we_o for_o refuse_v bishopric_n and_o deanery_n and_o say_v we_o do_v it_o to_o please_v the_o people_n fourteen_o the_o
new_a historian_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n before_o bishop_n laud_n time_n be_v of_o their_o mind_n that_o now_o call_v themselves_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o hold_v as_o they_o do_v that_o there_o be_v a_o universal_a humane_a sovereignty_n with_o legislative_a and_o judicial_a power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o this_o be_v in_o council_n or_o a_o universal_a college_n of_o bishop_n of_o which_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o be_v precedent_n and_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o must_v be_v obey_v as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o so_o we_o must_v be_v under_o a_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n whereas_o it_o be_v notoriousy_n know_v that_o before_o bishop_n laud_n time_n the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o church_n be_v quite_o contrary_a as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o the_o apology_n the_o article_n of_o religion_n the_o write_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n yea_o they_o write_v copious_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o put_v it_o into_o their_o liturgy_n and_o dr._n heylin_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o bishop_n laud_v get_v it_o out_o be_v that_o it_o may_v not_o offend_v the_o papist_n and_o hinder_v our_o reconciliation_n with_o they_o and_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n swear_v we_o against_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n xv._n the_o same_o historian_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o these_o man_n doctrine_n be_v now_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o agreeable_a to_o it_o whereas_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v still_o in_o force_n and_o so_o be_v the_o homily_n and_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o law_n and_o canon_n for_o the_o king_n supremacy_n against_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n and_o there_o be_v no_o change_n make_v which_o allow_v of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o the_o church_n doctrine_n must_v be_v know_v by_o its_o public_a write_n and_o not_o by_o the_o opinion_n of_o new_a rise_v man_n xvi_o the_o new_a historian_n make_v the_o nonconform_a minister_n to_o be_v man_n gross_o ignorant_a preachingfalse_a doctrine_n of_o wicked_a principle_n and_o life_n and_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v suffer_v out_o of_o gaol_n and_o yet_o these_o 19_o or_o 20._o year_n how_o few_o of_o they_o have_v be_v convict_v of_o any_o false_a doctrine_n and_o i_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o four_o in_o england_n that_o have_v ever_o be_v convict_v since_o they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o be_v once_o drink_v or_o fornicate_v cheat_a swear_v or_o any_o immorality_n unless_o preach_v and_o not_o swear_v subscribe_v etc._n etc._n be_v such_o nor_o for_o false_a doctrine_n xvii_o the_o new_a historian_n have_v make_v thousand_o believe_v that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o opinion_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v for_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v for_o this_o that_o they_o refuse_v to_o renounce_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o to_o all_o man_n beside_o themselves_o and_o that_o they_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a on_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o to_o take_v arm_n against_o any_o commissioned_n by_o the_o king_n whereas_o we_o have_v at_o large_a in_o a_o second_o plea_n for_o peace_n open_v our_o judgement_n about_o loyalty_n and_o obedience_n and_o none_o of_o they_o will_v tell_v we_o what_o they_o will_v have_v more_o nor_o where_o our_o profession_n be_v too_o short_a or_o faulty_a nor_o have_v they_o convict_v any_o of_o my_o acquaintance_n of_o preach_v any_o disloyal_a doctrine_n xviii_o yea_o they_o have_v by_o writing_n preach_v and_o talk_v make_v multitude_n believe_v that_o the_o nonconformist_n or_o presbyterian_o have_v be_v long_o hatch_n a_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n and_o have_v a_o plot_n to_o take_v down_o monarchy_n under_o pretence_n of_o oppose_a poperty_n and_o how_o far_o these_o historian_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v true_a protestant_n by_o this_o time_n partly_o understand_v xix_o yea_o these_o historian_n have_v make_v multitude_n believe_v that_o the_o parliament_n that_o have_v be_v dissolve_v here_o of_o late_a year_n have_v be_v design_v to_o change_v the_o government_n of_o church_n and_o state_n under_o pretence_n of_o oppose_a popery_n as_o if_o that_o parliament_n that_o do_v that_o for_o they_o and_o against_o we_o which_o be_v do_v and_o make_v all_o the_o act_n which_o be_v for_o the_o renunciation_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o for_o all_o the_o declaration_n subscription_n and_o practice_n impose_v and_o for_o fine_v we_o 20_o l._n and_o 40_o l._n a_o sermon_n and_o lay_v we_o in_o gaol_n have_v be_v for_o nonconformist_n and_o against_o episcopacy_n and_o they_o that_o make_v the_o militia_n act_n and_o such_o other_o have_v be_v against_o the_o king_n or_o his_o prerogative_n or_o the_o other_o follow_v have_v not_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n xx._n but_o the_o bold_a part_n of_o their_o history_n be_v their_o description_n of_o the_o two_o sort_n of_o the_o people_n in_o england_n those_o that_o be_v for_o the_o present_a nonconformist_n and_o those_o that_o be_v against_o they_o those_o that_o be_v against_o they_o they_o account_v the_o most_o religious_a temperate_a chaste_a loyal_a credible_a and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o best_a people_n through_o the_o land_n for_o of_o our_o ruler_n i_o be_o not_o speak_v and_o those_o that_o be_v for_o the_o nonconform_a minister_n they_o defame_v as_o the_o most_o proud_a hypocritical_a treacherous_a disloyal_a covetous_a false_a and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o worst_a people_n in_o the_o land_n or_o as_o fowlis_n say_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o mankind_n and_o unfit_a to_o live_v in_o humane_a society_n how_o long_o will_v it_o be_v ere_o the_o sober_a people_n of_o this_o land_n believe_v this_o character_n one_o will_v think_v that_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o common_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o controversy_n or_o unknown_a thing_n all_o that_o i_o will_v say_v to_o this_o history_n be_v to_o tell_v the_o reader_n the_o utmost_a of_o my_o observation_n and_o experience_n from_o my_o youth_n up_o concern_v these_o two_o sort_n of_o man_n where_o i_o be_v breed_v before_o 1640._o which_o be_v in_o divers_a place_n i_o know_v not_o one_o presbyterian_a clergy_n man_n nor_o lay_v and_o but_o three_o or_o four_o nonconform_a minister_n nay_o till_o mr._n ball_n write_v for_o the_o liturgy_n and_o against_o can_v and_o allen_n etc._n etc._n and_o till_o mr._n burton_n publish_v his_o protestation_n protest_v i_o never_o think_v what_o presbytery_n or_o independency_n be_v nor_o ever_o speak_v with_o a_o man_n that_o seem_v to_o know_v it_o and_o that_o be_v in_o 1641._o when_o the_o war_n be_v brew_v in_o the_o place_n where_o i_o first_o live_v and_o the_o country_n about_o the_o people_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o generality_n seem_v to_o mind_n nothing_o serious_o but_o the_o body_n and_o the_o world_n they_o go_v to_o church_n and_o will_v answer_v the_o parson_n in_o respond_v and_o thence_o go_v to_o dinner_n and_o then_o to_o play_v they_o never_o pray_v in_o their_o family_n but_o some_o of_o they_o go_v to_o bed_n will_v say_v over_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n &_o some_o of_o they_o the_o hail_v mary_n all_o the_o year_n long_o not_o a_o serious_a word_n of_o holy_a thing_n or_o the_o life_n to_o come_v that_o i_o can_v hear_v of_o proceed_v from_o they_o they_o read_v not_o the_o scripture_n nor_o any_o good_a book_n or_o catechism_n few_o of_o they_o can_v read_v or_o have_v a_o bible_n they_o be_v of_o two_o rank_n the_o great_a part_n be_v good_a husband_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o savour_v of_o nothing_o but_o their_o business_n or_o interest_n in_o the_o world_n the_o rest_n be_v drunkard_n most_o be_v swearer_n but_o not_o equal_o both_o sort_n seem_v utter_a stranger_n to_o any_o more_o of_o religion_n than_o i_o have_v name_v and_o love_v not_o to_o hear_v any_o serious_a talk_n of_o god_n or_o duty_n or_o sin_n or_o the_o gospel_n or_o judgement_n or_o the_o life_n to_o come_v but_o some_o more_o hate_v it_o than_o other_o the_o other_o sort_n be_v such_o as_o have_v their_o conscience_n awaken_v to_o some_o regard_n of_o god_n and_o their_o everlasting_a state_n and_o according_a to_o the_o various_a measure_n of_o their_o understanding_n do_v speak_v and_o live_v as_o serious_a in_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o will_v much_o inquire_v what_o be_v duty_n and_o what_o be_v sin_n and_o how_o to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o make_v sure_a of_o salvation_n and_o make_v this_o their_o business_n and_o interest_n as_o the_o rest_n do_v the_o world_n they_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o such_o book_n as_o the_o practice_n of_o piety_n and_o deut_n
their_o officer_n and_o curate_n against_o the_o aforesaid_a exercise_n of_o religion_n occasion_v this_o sad_a division_n so_o do_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o call_v puritan_n continue_v too_o long_o many_o a_o time_n have_v i_o see_v abundance_n in_o great_a perplexity_n say_v we_o believe_v they_o that_o profess_v that_o they_o take_v not_o arm_n against_o the_o king_n but_o to_o execute_v the_o law_n on_o delinquent_n and_o defend_v themselves_o and_o the_o kingdom_n from_o they_o we_o abhor_v the_o regicide_n and_o usurper_n we_o will_v restore_v the_o king_n if_o we_o be_v strong_a than_o the_o army_n and_o yet_o we_o be_v in_o doubt_n how_o far_o we_o shall_v active_o contribute_v to_o our_o own_o calamity_n for_o though_o the_o king_n deserve_v more_o than_o we_o can_v do_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o bishop_n will_v increase_v our_o burden_n and_o make_v great_a havoc_n in_o the_o church_n than_o heretofore_o and_o many_o sit_v still_o on_o this_o account_n and_o as_o far_o as_o ever_o i_o can_v discern_v next_o the_o power_n of_o the_o army_n the_o fear_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o chief_a delay_n of_o the_o king_n return_n i_o know_v not_o all_o england_n but_o according_a to_o the_o extent_n of_o my_o acquaintance_n i_o have_v true_o tell_v you_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o then_o call_v puritan_n and_o of_o their_o common_a adversary_n and_o on_o which_o side_n now_o proportionable_o be_v most_o of_o the_o most_o understanding_n sober_a charitable_a conscionable_a and_o serious_o religious_a person_n and_o on_o which_o most_o of_o the_o contrary_n not_o speak_v of_o any_o magistrate_n i_o think_v it_o neither_o my_o work_n nor_o our_o new_a historian_n to_o tell_v for_o people_n that_o live_v among_o their_o neighbour_n will_v believe_v their_o sense_n and_o experience_n what_o ever_o either_o he_o or_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v that_o this_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v be_v not_o find_v we_o can_v believe_v that_o god_n will_v suffer_v the_o generality_n of_o the_o religious_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o so_o great_a a_o case_n and_o the_o most_o of_o the_o debauch_a ignorant_a hater_n of_o serious_a godliness_n to_o be_v in_o the_o right_n do_v prevail_v with_o very_a many_o that_o can_v not_o try_v the_o cause_n by_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n §_o 2._o if_o i_o shall_v recite_v the_o particular_a unjust_a report_n of_o multitude_n of_o these_o writer_n it_o will_v be_v tiresome_a and_o loathsome_a yea_o all_o the_o mistake_v of_o this_o eminent_a historian_n be_v too_o many_o to_o be_v name_v but_o i_o will_v here_o name_v one_o which_o seem_v at_o once_o to_o smite_v and_o smile_v pag._n 2●7_n there_o be_v a_o temper_n which_o mr._n b._n be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v prevail_v on_o either_o by_o threat_n or_o promise_n from_o the_o magistrate_n and_o seem_v to_o hate_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o compliance_n with_o superior_n there_o be_v some_o that_o scorn_v to_o preach_v by_o the_o licence_n of_o the_o government_n and_o place_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n pure_o in_o opposition_n to_o law_n and_o magistrate_n answ._n note_v the_o credibility_n of_o this_o historian_n 1._o do_v their_o accusation_n of_o my_o flatter_a the_o usurper_n who_o i_o more_o open_o disow_v than_o most_o of_o his_o fraternity_n agree_v with_o this_o 2._o do_v my_o long_a and_o earnest_a petition_v to_o be_v accept_v but_o in_o a_o poor_a curate_n place_n though_o i_o preach_v for_o nothing_o yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o in_o some_o ignorant_a obscure_a village_n and_o only_o to_o preach_v over_o the_o catechism_n agree_v with_o this_o 3._o do_v my_o large_a profession_n of_o subjection_n in_o my_o second_o plea_n for_o peace_n not_o yet_o blame_v by_o they_o herein_o agree_v with_o this_o 4._o i_o willing_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o a_o oath_n to_o be_v true_a to_o the_o king_n as_o his_o chaplain_n in_o ordinary_a and_o have_v this_o any_o such_o signification_n 5._o do_v my_o beg_n in_o vain_a a_o licence_n from_o bishop_n morley_n and_o crave_v and_o obtain_v one_o of_o bishop_n sheldon_n signify_v this_o 6._o but_o the_o smile_n be_v that_o one_o will_v think_v by_o these_o word_n i_o may_v have_v preach_v by_o the_o governors_n licence_n and_o will_v not_o and_o be_v that_o true_a do_v i_o not_o preach_v by_o the_o king_n licence_n and_o the_o clergy_n blame_v i_o for_o it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n licence_n i_o do_v profess_v that_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o force_n and_o i_o do_v preach_v by_o it_o if_o i_o mistake_v it_o be_v not_o my_o refuse_v it_o if_o he_o intimate_v as_o he_o seem_v that_o by_o the_o bishop_n licence_n i_o may_v have_v have_v leave_n to_o preach_v in_o the_o parish_n church_n it_o be_v now_o too_o late_o but_o i_o will_v i_o have_v know_v how_o to_o get_v it_o i_o confess_v one_o summer_n in_o the_o country_n about_o 25_o mile_n off_o i_o do_v venture_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o my_o licence_n at_o amersham_n chesham_n rickmersworth_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v too_o please_a work_n to_o i_o to_o be_v continue_v one_o church_n in_o southwark_n i_o be_v once_o let_v into_o but_o no_o more_o in_o or_o near_a london_n i_o once_o crave_v leave_v of_o the_o moderate_a bishop_n that_o now_o be_v that_o without_o put_v down_o the_o meeting_n where_o i_o be_v in_o that_o great_a parish_n of_o st._n martin_n i_o may_v preach_v sometime_o there_o and_o once_o a_o day_n at_o the_o chapel_n which_o i_o build_v which_o the_o parish_n incumbent_a use_v and_o that_o he_o will_v quiet_v the_o justice_n to_o that_o end_n and_o think_v i_o have_v have_v his_o consent_n but_o the_o constable_n and_o other_o officer_n stand_v from_o that_o day_n about_o a_o quarter_n of_o a_o year_n together_o every_o lord_n day_n at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o former_a place_n of_o assembly_n to_o have_v apprehend_v i_o by_o the_o justice_n warrant_v if_o i_o have_v go_v and_o never_o can_v i_o hear_v of_o a_o man_n in_o london_n that_o be_v willing_a i_o shall_v come_v into_o his_o pulpit_n but_o the_o best_a have_v refuse_v it_o nor_o do_v i_o much_o desire_v it_o here_o for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o preach_v to_o they_o that_o have_v no_o need_n that_o be_v my_o request_n but_o to_o such_o as_o can_v come_v into_o the_o parish_n church_n or_o otherwise_o true_o need_v our_o help_n once_o i_o do_v try_v to_o have_v get_v leave_n two_o mile_n out_o of_o the_o city_n to_o have_v preach_v a_o kinswomans_n funeral_n sermon_n on_o the_o right_n of_o my_o licence_n but_o the_o minister_n say_v he_o must_v first_o ask_v the_o bishop_n and_o then_o deny_v i_o reader_n these_o be_v the_o historian_n that_o charge_v i_o with_o misreport_n of_o ancient_a history_n visible_a in_o the_o most_o partial_a author_n on_o the_o other_o side_n judge_v of_o they_o by_o their_o report_n of_o the_o history_n of_o our_o place_n and_o age._n chap._n xv._n mr._n m_n way_n of_o get_v belief_n by_o a_o magisterial_a condemn_v the_o most_o credible_a historian_n and_o authorise_v who_o he_o please_v §_o 1._o if_o we_o have_v not_o eusebius_n socrates_n and_o sozomen_n how_o naked_a shall_v we_o be_v leave_v and_o much_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n beside_o theodoret_n history_n till_o 440._o and_o what_o a_o shake_n be_v give_v to_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o these_o by_o mr._n m._n and_o other_o of_o great_a name_n though_o eusebius_n himself_o be_v by_o petavius_n and_o many_o other_o papist_n account_v a_o arian_n yea_o and_o seem_o prove_v such_o and_o by_o bellarmine_n the_o script_n eccles_n it_o be_v say_v that_o athanasius_n so_o call_v he_o and_o jerom_n call_v he_o the_o arian_n signifer_fw-la and_o prince_n and_o the_o seven_o general_n council_n so_o judge_v he_o yet_o socrates_n vindicate_v he_o and_o think_v he_o be_v wrong_v and_o indeed_o though_o his_o own_o epistle_n write_v to_o his_o flock_n be_v not_o justifyable_a incautelous_a and_o unjustifyable_a word_n be_v too_o common_a before_o his_o day_n as_o petavius_n have_v too_o full_o prove_v with_o those_o that_o we_o must_v not_o yet_o call_v arian_n but_o while_o bellarmine_n and_o mr._n m._n charge_n socrates_n and_o sozomen_n as_o novatian_o that_o be_v heretic_n themselves_o they_o deprive_v eusebius_n of_o much_o of_o their_o defence_n and_o render_v his_o history_n the_o more_o suspicious_a §_o 2._o and_o though_o i_o know_v mr._n m._n have_v more_o partner_n herein_o i_o never_o see_v yet_o any_o credible_a proof_n that_o either_o of_o they_o be_v novatian_n good_a christian_n be_v not_o ashamed_a nor_o afraid_a to_o make_v profession_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o
they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o profess_v it_o that_o they_o oft_o speak_v of_o the_o novatian_o in_o disow_a word_n but_o they_o praise_v they_o for_o the_o good_a that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o will_v not_o any_o impartial_a historian_n do_v the_o like_a must_v a_o man_n rail_v at_o any_o party_n or_o hide_v their_o virtue_n or_o else_o be_v take_v to_o be_v one_o of_o they_o i_o confess_v that_o such_o as_o mr._n m._n do_v full_o acquit_v themselves_o from_o the_o suspicion_n of_o be_v presbyterian_o or_o nonconformist_n but_o so_o do_v not_o a._n bishop_n grindall_n bishop_n jewel_n a._n bishop_n abbot_n a._n bishop_n usher_n and_o many_o more_o such_o sure_a candour_n and_o impartiality_n be_v laudable_a in_o historian_n and_o thuanus_n be_v most_o honour_a for_o that_o and_o notwithstanding_o mr._n m_n assertion_n of_o the_o contrary_a i_o profess_v myself_o a_o lover_n &_o honourer_n of_o the_o worth_n of_o many_o of_o the_o aspire_a bishop_n that_o corrupt_v the_o church_n and_o of_o many_o pope_n and_o of_o many_o that_o continue_v church_n corruption_n in_o the_o height_n even_o many_o of_o the_o papist_n cardinal_n schoolman_n and_o jesuit_n who_o will_v not_o love_v and_o praise_v the_o excellent_a learning_n of_o such_o as_o suarez_n vasquez_n victoria_n petavius_n and_o abundance_n such_o who_o will_v not_o praise_v the_o piety_n of_o such_o as_o gerson_n borromaeus_n sales_n and_o many_o other_o though_o we_o nevertheless_o disow_v their_o popery_n for_o my_o part_n i_o high_o value_v the_o cleareness_n of_o multitude_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o in_o whole_a load_n of_o their_o volume_n so_o much_o malicious_a rail_n as_o the_o jesuit_n and_o many_o of_o our_o late_a conformist_n have_v in_o a_o few_o sheet_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o i_o be_o a_o papist_n because_o i_o praise_v they_o or_o that_o socrates_n or_o sozomen_n be_v novatian_n because_o they_o speak_v well_o of_o their_o faith_n and_o piety_n there_o be_v abundance_n of_o malignant_n that_o acknowledge_v the_o good_a life_n of_o those_o they_o call_v puritan_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v the_o late_a war_n between_o king_n and_o parliament_n to_o fill_v all_o mouth_n and_o book_n against_o they_o the_o devil_n by_o this_o time_n may_v have_v be_v at_o a_o loss_n with_o what_o accusation_n to_o reproach_v they_o for_o he_o be_v put_v to_o use_v the_o voice_n no_o name_n of_o roundhead_n whig_n etc._n etc._n when_o their_o reviler_n be_v call_v drunkard_n swearer_n damme's_a etc._n etc._n but_o they_o that_o confess_v the_o good_a reproach_n they_o as_o hypocrite_n that_o do_v but_o counterfeit_v it_o do_v this_o acknowledgement_n prove_v they_o puritan_n i_o suppose_v mr._n m._n know_v that_o no_o small_a number_n of_o historian_n and_o father_n confess_v the_o strictness_n of_o the_o novatian_o life_n and_o yet_o be_v no_o novatian_n and_o constantine_n word_n to_o acesius_n imply_v that_o he_o think_v he_o singular_o strict_a and_o mr._n m._n say_v pref._n the_o novatian_n say_v the_o author_n do_v not_o suffer_v much_o by_o this_o edict_n be_v besriend_v by_o the_o emperor_n who_o have_v a_o esteem_n for_o their_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o may_v not_o a_o orthodox_n man_n confess_v the_o piety_n of_o other_o §_o 3._o but_o mr._n m._n be_v so_o magisterial_a as_o to_o say_v pag._n 322._o the_o story_n of_o theophilus_n and_o the_o monk_n of_o nitria_n no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v believe_v as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n without_o love_v a_o malicious_a lie_n so_o that_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n either_o believe_v not_o themselves_o or_o else_o love●_n a_o malicious_a lie_n and_o page_n 319._o he_o say_v the_o story_n of_o theophilus_n his_o charge_v isidore_n with_o double_a letter_n that_o whoever_o be_v conqueror_n he_o may_v apply_v himself_o to_o he_o in_o his_o name_n be_v of_o the_o same_o piece_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o socrates_n his_o story_n concern_v that_o bishop_n and_o in_o all_o probability_n a_o invention_n of_o one_o of_o the_o monk●_n of_o nitria_n it_o seem_v this_o historian_n believe_v old_a historian_n as_o the_o matter_n seem_v probable_a or_o improbable_a to_o himself_o and_o so_o we_o may_v take_v he_o for_o the_o universal_a expositor_n of_o history_n it_o be_v not_o the_o old_a historian_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v but_o his_o conjecture_n and_o thus_o he_o deal_v with_o divers_a other_o §_o 4._o for_o my_o part_n i_o profess_v that_o before_o i_o have_v any_o engagement_n in_o these_o controversy_n since_o i_o first_o read_v they_o i_o take_v socrates_n and_o sozomen_n to_o be_v two_o of_o the_o most_o credible_a historian_n that_o the_o church_n have_v till_o their_o time_n and_o of_o many_o a_o age_n after_o they_o i_o say_v of_o they_o as_o i_o use_v to_o do_v of_o thuanus_n a_o man_n may_v trace_v the_o footstep_n of_o knowledge_n and_o impartial_a honesty_n and_o so_o of_o veracity_n in_o their_o very_a style_n and_o there_o be_v few_o of_o the_o judicious_a censurer_n of_o historian_n but_o do_v tell_v we_o of_o far_o more_o uncertainty_n in_o eusebius_n and_o after_o in_o nicephorus_n and_o most_o that_o follow_v as_o far_o as_o i_o be_o acquaint_v with_o such_o censurer_n than_o in_o these_o two_o and_o if_o their_o history_n be_v shake_v our_o loss_n will_v not_o be_v small_a and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o anathematise_v and_o condemn_v spirit_n have_v do_v hurt_v which_o have_v make_v eusebius_n a_o undoubted_a arian_n and_o theodoret_n first_o a_o nestorian_a and_o after_o at_o the_o five_o general_n council_n condemn_v some_o of_o his_o write_n and_o impose_v it_o on_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o condemn_v they_o though_o many_o never_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o that_o make_v ruffinus_n and_o chrysostom_n originists_n and_o origen_n a_o heretic_n condemn_v also_o by_o a_o general_n council_n and_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n novatian_o epiphanius_n a_o ignorant_a credulous_a fabler_n sulpitius_n severus_n and_o beda_n two_o pious_a credulous_a reporter_n of_o many_o feign_a miracle_n and_o one_o a_o millenary_a nicephorus_n a_o fabler_n anastasius_n bibl._n full_a of_o falsehood_n philastrius_n a_o ignorant_a erroneous_a hereticator_n cassianus_n a_o semi-pelagian_a cassiodori_n chronic._n est_fw-la farrago_fw-la temulentiae_fw-la inquit_fw-la onuphrius_n pan._n pene_fw-la nunquam_fw-la cum_fw-la eusebio_n convenit_fw-la inquit_fw-la vossius_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o say_v though_o it_o be_v no_o wrong_n to_o the_o church_n to_o take_v they_o for_o fallible_a and_o such_o as_o have_v mistake_n which_o the_o english_a article_n say_v even_o of_o general_n council_n yet_o it_o wrongful_o shake_v all_o our_o belief_n of_o church_n history_n to_o call_v their_o credit_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n into_o question_n for_o their_o error_n or_o opinion_n sake_n without_o good_a evidence_n that_o either_o they_o be_v ignorant_a misinform_v or_o wilful_o lie_v but_o if_o the_o novatian_o be_v more_o strict_a &_o precise_a than_o other_o it_o be_v rather_o like_a that_o they_o be_v more_o and_o not_o less_o credible_a than_o other_o and_o make_v more_o or_o not_o less_o conscience_n of_o a_o lie_n certain_o that_o which_o the_o rest_n name_v be_v charge_v with_o be_v somewhat_o more_o as_o to_o historical_a credit_n than_o to_o be_v novatian_o so_o that_o if_o these_o man_n have_v be_v novatian_n i_o shall_v yet_o say_v by_o the_o complexion_n of_o their_o history_n that_o they_o be_v two_o of_o our_o most_o useful_a and_o credible_a church_n historian_n §_o 5._o but_o when_o it_o serve_v his_o turn_n he_o can_v gather_v out_o of_o sozomen_n that_o even_o in_o constantine_n time_n constantinople_n be_v altogether_o a_o christian_a city_n because_o he_o mention_v the_o great_a enlargement_n of_o it_o and_o great_a increase_n of_o christianity_n when_o as_o no_o man_n that_o live_v can_v be_v a_o sitter_n judge_v of_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n than_o chrysostom_n and_o he_o that_o consider_v that_o there_o and_o every_o where_o constantine_n leave_v all_o the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n uncompelled_a to_o be_v christian_n yea_o and_o use_v they_o common_o in_o place_n of_o dignity_n and_o government_n in_o city_n province_n and_o army_n and_o that_o they_o continue_v in_o such_o power_n under_o many_o emperor_n after_o he_o will_v hardly_o believe_v that_o in_o constantine_n time_n c._n p._n have_v half_a or_o a_o quarter_n so_o many_o christian_n as_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o arcadius_n and_o chrysostom_n and_o yet_o then_o chrysostom_n conjecture_v the_o christian_n to_o be_v a_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o all_o the_o city_n poor_a half_n as_o many_o but_o the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n not_o to_o be_v number_v see_v he_o one_o act_n 4._o hom._n 11._o when_o he_o be_v make_v the_o most_o of_o their_o estate_n and_o
have_v not_o whole_a kingdom_n be_v forbid_v all_o god_n public_a worship_n by_o such_o even_o france_n and_o england_n among_o the_o rest_n be_v it_o rail_v to_o tell_v for_o what_o little_a thing_n they_o not_o only_o silence_v man_n but_o burn_v and_o murder_v many_o thousand_o be_v they_o not_o proud_a ambitious_a prelate_n that_o depose_v and_o abuse_v lud._n pius_n and_o those_o that_o in_o council_n decree_v the_o dig_v all_o the_o dead_a bishop_n out_o of_o their_o grave_n to_o be_v bur●t_v as_o heretic_n who_o be_v for_o the_o emperor_n power_n of_o investiture_n do_v i_o rail_v if_o i_o say_v that_o greg._n 7._o be_v proud_a and_o ambitious_a when_o he_o threaten_v the_o prince_n of_o calaris_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o dominion_n unless_o he_o make_v his_o bishop_n shave_v his_o beard_n do_v not_o jewel_n and_o all_o protestant_a writer_n say_v worse_a than_o this_o of_o papist_n bishop_n be_v there_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o pride_n silence_v burn_a etc._n etc._n if_o yea_o must_v it_o never_o be_v know_v reprove_v repent_v of_o and_o so_o forgive_v to_o the_o penitent_a and_o if_o yea_o than_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v know_v without_o proper_a name_n by_o what_o name_n shall_v i_o have_v call_v silence_v but_o its_o own_o and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n god_n power_n over_o conscience_n be_v marvellous_a that_o sin_n can_v endure_v its_o own_o name_n the_o next_o rail_n be_v the_o word_n hereticate_a and_o how_o can_v i_o have_v know_v if_o he_o have_v not_o tell_v i_o that_o this_o word_n be_v rail_v do_v not_o the_o bishop_n take_v it_o for_o a_o great_a service_n of_o god_n and_o be_v it_o rail_v to_o name_v it_o it_o be_v true_a i_o use_v one_o word_n instead_o of_o a_o sentence_n for_o brevity_n to_o signify_v the_o bishop_n culpable_a over_o do_v in_o proclaim_v man_n heretic_n he_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o do_v not_o well_o nor_o do_v not_o to_o this_o day_n in_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n all_o those_o whole_a country_n of_o christian_n call_v nestorian_n jacobite_n melchite_n and_o the_o monothelite_n and_o many_o such_o i_o can_v save_v he_o from_o himself_o who_o will_v own_o all_o such_o sin_n and_o contract_v the_o guilt_n of_o it_o have_v not_o bishop_n epiphanius_n make_v we_o more_o heretic_n than_o he_o need_v have_v not_o bishop_n philastrius_n make_v many_o more_o than_o the_o devil_n himself_o make_v lest_o this_o pass_n for_o rail_v once_o more_o i_o will_v name_v some_o of_o they_o 1._o his_o 11_o sort_n of_o heretic_n be_v those_o that_o keep_v easter-day_n at_o a_o wrong_a time_n as_o our_o britain_n and_o scot_n do_v 2._o the_o millenaries_n be_v the_o 12_o such_o as_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o our_o mr._n mede_n dr._n twiss_n etc._n etc._n 3._o the_o 27_o offer_v bread_n and_o cheese_n at_o the_o oblation_n 4._o the_o 28_o put_v new_a wine_n in_o new_a vessel_n in_o the_o church_n 5._o the_o 29_o put_v their_o finger_n on_o their_o mouth_n for_o silence_n 6._o the_o 30_o thought_n that_o all_o prophet_n end_v not_o with_o christ_n 7._o the_o 33d_o go_v without_o shoe_n 8._o the_o novatian_o be_v the_o 34th_o 9_o the_o 41th_o think_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v not_o write_v by_o paul_n but_o by_o barnabas_n or_o clemens_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o laodicea_n by_o luke_n 10._o the_o 42th_o be_v the_o orthodox_n miletian_o that_o communicate_v with_o the_o orthodox_n and_o some_o arian_n too_o 11._o the_o 46th_o doubt_v of_o the_o diversity_n of_o heaven_n 12._o the_o 47th_o be_v ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v another_o common_a earth_n invisible_a which_o be_v the_o matrix_fw-la of_o all_o thing_n do_v think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o earth_n but_o this_o one_o 13._o the_o 48th_o think_v that_o water_n be_v the_o common_a matter_n and_o be_v always_o and_o not_o make_v with_o the_o earth_n 14._o the_o 49th_o heresy_n deny_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v before_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n after_o join_v to_o it_o and_o believe_v that_o god_n make_v they_o male_a and_o female_a first_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o bodily_a sex_n whereas_o say_v he_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n that_o be_v make_v male_a and_o female_a and_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v the_o six_o day_n and_o the_o body_n the_o seven_o 15._o the_o 50th_o heresy_n think_v that_o not_o only_a grace_n but_o also_o the_o soul_n itself_o be_v by_o god_n breathe_v into_o man_n 6._o the_o 51st_o be_v origen_n that_o think_v our_o soul_n be_v first_o celestical_a intellect_n before_o incorporate_v as_o mr._n glanvile_n and_o many_o now_o 17._o the_o 52d_o thought_n that_o brute_n have_v some_o reason_n as_o mr._n chambre_n 18._o the_o 54th_o think_v that_o earthquake_n have_v a_o natural_a cause_n 19_o the_o 55th_o heresy_n learn_v of_o trismegistus_n to_o call_v the_o star_n by_o the_o name_n of_o live_a creature_n as_o all_o astronomer_n do_v 20._o the_o 56th_o thought_n that_o there_o be_v not_o many_o language_n before_o the_o confusion_n of_o babel_n 21._o the_o 57th_o heresy_n think_v that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o tongue_n proceed_v first_o of_o the_o jew_n or_o of_o the_o pagan_n 22._o the_o 58th_o heresy_n doubt_v of_o the_o year_n and_o time_n of_o christ_n 23._o the_o 59th_o thought_n as_o many_o father_n that_o angel_n beget_v giant_n of_o woman_n before_o the_o flood_n 24._o the_o 61st_o be_v that_o christian_n be_v after_o jew_n and_o pagan_n 25._o the_o 62d_o heresy_n say_v that_o pagan_n be_v bear_v natural_o but_o not_o christian_n that_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man_n be_v not_o daily_o create_v by_o christ_n but_o by_o nature_n 26._o the_o 63d_o say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o year_n from_o the_o creation_n be_v uncertain_a and_o unknown_a 27._o the_o 64_o thought_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n sunday_n monday_n etc._n etc._n be_v make_v by_o god_n first_o and_o not_o by_o pagan_n and_o be_v name_v from_o the_o planet_n 28._o the_o 66th_o be_v that_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v blind_a till_o god_n open_v their_o eye_n to_o see_v their_o nakedness_n 29._o the_o 67th_o heresy_n impute_v the_o sin_n of_o parent_n to_o their_o child_n 30._o the_o 68_o heresy_n be_v of_o some_o trouble_v about_o the_o book_n call_v deuteronomy_n 31._o the_o 69_o thought_n that_o those_o sanctify_v in_o the_o womb_n wear_v yet_o conceive_v in_o sin_n 32._o the_o 70th_o heresy_n think_v that_o the_o world_n have_v be_v first_o divide_v by_o the_o greek_n egyptian_n and_o persian_n 33._o the_o 71_o thought_n there_o be_v a_o former_a flood_n under_o deucalion_n and_o pyrrha_n 34._o the_o 72_o say_v that_o man_n be_v according_a to_o or_o under_o the_o 12_o sign_n of_o the_o zodiac_n not_o know_v that_o those_o 12_o sign_n be_v divers_a climate_n and_o habitable_a region_n of_o the_o earth_n 35_o the_o 74_o heresy_n be_v that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o offer_v repentance_n there_o to_o sinner_n 36._o the_o 75_o doubt_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n think_v it_o be_v make_v of_o fire_n etc._n etc._n as_o many_o greek_a father_n do_v 37._o the_o 77_o be_v of_o god_n harden_v pharaoh_n &c._n &c._n where_o he_o describe_v the_o dominican_n 38._o the_o 79_o be_v that_o the_o psalm_n be_v not_o all_z make_v by_o david_n and_o it_o deny_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o psalm_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o all_o write_v and_o place_v in_o the_o order_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v 39_o the_o 80_o heresy_n think_v that_o god_n word_n to_o cain_n thou_o shall_v rule_v over_o he_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v understand_v whereas_o the_o meaning_n be_v thou_o shall_v rule_v over_o thy_o own_o evil_a thought_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o own_o free_a will._n 40._o the_o 81_o heresy_n do_v not_o well_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o god_n word_n to_o cain_n give_v he_o life_n 41._o the_o 82_o heresy_n think_v that_o the_o star_n have_v their_o fix_a place_n in_o heaven_n and_o their_o course_n not_o understand_v that_o the_o star_n be_v every_o night_n bring_v out_o of_o some_o secret_a place_n and_o set_v up_o for_o use_n and_o at_o morning_n return_v to_o their_o secret_a place_n again_o angel_n be_v precedent_n and_o disposer_n of_o they_o that_o be_v as_o servant_n bring_v candle_n into_o the_o room_n at_o night_n and_o take_v they_o out_o again_o 42._o the_o 83_o doubt_a as_o some_o episcopal_a commentator_n of_o the_o book_n of_o canticle_n lest_o it_o have_v a_o carnal_a sense_n 43._o the_o 85_o heresy_n think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v natural_o g●ds_o image_n ●efore_o grace_n 44._o the_o 87_o heresy_n think_v that_o real_o four_o living_n creature_n mention_v in_o the_o prophet_n
take_v all_o you_o have_v do_v not_o say_v you_o h●rt_v we_o much_o less_o you_o wrong_v we_o take_v not_o on_o you_o to_o know_v or_o feel_v when_o you_o be_v hurt_v else_o we_o will_v have_v a_o action_n of_o rail_v against_o you_o §_o 8._o that_o w●i●h_n follow_v i_o answer_v before_o but_o after_o he_o find_v a_o notable_a piece_n of_o my_o ignorance_n the_o pope_n invite_v the_o king_n of_o denmark_n to_o conquer_v a_o province_n of_o heretic_n i_o know_v not_o who_o they_o be_v unless_o they_o be_v the_o waldenses_n well_o guest_n say_v mr._n m._n waldo_n be_v in_o 1160_o 80_o year_n after_o ans_fw-fr this_o will_v serve_v for_o man_n willing_a to_o be_v deceive_v it_o be_v the_o person_n and_o religion_n and_o not_o the_o name_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o he_o know_v that_o rainerius_n himself_o say_v that_o those_o person_n call_v albigenses_n waldenses_n and_o other_o such_o name_n profess_v that_o their_o way_n of_o religion_n be_v apostolical_a and_o they_o derive_v it_o down_o from_o silvester_n that_o be_v constantine_n time_n if_o i_o do_v not_o guess_v well_o i_o wrong_v no_o bishop_n by_o i●_n and_o i_o confess_v my_o ignorance_n that_o i_o know_v not_o who_o the_o pope_n mean_v and_o why_o do_v not_o this_o callent_fw-la historian_n tell_v we_o who_o they_o be_v §_o 9_o next_o he_o have_v meet_v with_o my_o ignorance_n for_o say_v vienna_n near_o france_n which_o be_v in_o the_o border_n of_o france_n a●s_fw-la 1._o be_v that_o any_o slander_n of_o bishop_n or_o council_n 2_o true_o i_o have_v many_o a_o time_n read_v in_o council_n that_o vienna_n be_v in_o france_n and_o have_v not_o forget_v it_o if_o ferrarius_fw-la and_o chenu_fw-la have_v not_o also_o tell_v it_o i_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o printer_n or_o of_o my_o hand_n or_o my_o memory_n that_o put_v near_o for_o in_o i_o leave_v it_o free_o to_o his_o judgement_n for_o i_o remember_v it_o not_o and_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o binnius_n name_v it_o make_v i_o call_v ordo_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la in_o gelasius_n a_o book_n it_o be_v no_o wrong_n to_o episcopacy_n chap._n xvii_o his_o censure_n of_o my_o design_n and_o church-principle_n consider_v §_o 1._o as_o to_o this_o his_o first_o chapter_n i_o have_v before_o show_v how_o false_o he_o report_v my_o design_n he_o say_v he_o never_o see_v any_o thing_n which_o more_o reflect_v on_o religion_n lucian_n and_o julian_n have_v leave_v nothing_o ha●f_o so_o scandalous_a in_o all_o their_o libel_n against_o christian_n as_o this_o church-history_n have_v rake_v up_o here_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v in_o his_o book_n but_o the_o avarice_n ignorance_n mistake_v and_o furious_a contention_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n ans_fw-fr how_o false_a that_o be_v the_o reader_n may_v see_v in_o all_o the_o beginning_n the_o two_o chapter_n in_o the_o end_n and_o much_o in_o the_o midst_n which_o be_v write_v contrary_o to_o obviate_v such_o false_a thought_n 2._o be_v the_o ascendent_a sort_n of_o prelate_n that_o be_v grow_v up_o to_o maturity_n till_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n day_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v there_o no_o other_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o be_v write_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o such_o ascendant_n write_v against_o christianity_n do_v christ_n speak_v against_o christianity_n when_o he_o reprove_v they_o for_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a or_o peter_n when_o he_o counsel_v they_o as_o 1_o pet._n 5._o and_o paul_n when_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o man_n like_o mind_a for_o they_o all_o seek_v their_o own_o thing_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n or_o when_o he_o say_v demas_n have_v forsake_v i_o &_o c_o or_o john_n when_o he_o say_v diotrephes_n love_v to_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n or_o all_o those_o council_n of_o bishop_n which_o condemn_v each_o other_o far_o deeply_o than_o i_o judge_v any_o of_o they_o what_o have_v i_o say_v of_o fact_n or_o canon_n which_o binnius_n and_o their_o other_o flatterer_n say_v not_o be_v it_o not_o there_o extant_a to_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o and_o that_o i_o record_v not_o all_o their_o virtue_n 1._o the_o history_n of_o council_n say_v little_a of_o they_o 2._o must_v no_o man_n show_v the_o hurt_n of_o drunkenness_n gluttony_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o of_o ambition_n and_o church-corruption_n unless_o he_o will_v write_v so_o voluminous_a a_o history_n as_o to_o contain_v also_o all_o the_o good_a do_v by_o all_o the_o person_n who_o he_o blame_v i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o i_o wonder_v that_o instead_o of_o so_o greedy_a gather_v up_o all_o the_o scrap_n of_o council_n the_o papist_n do_v not_o burn_v they_o all_o as_o they_o have_v do_v many_o better_a book_n which_o make_v against_o they_o §_o 2._o i_o be_v about_o to_o answer_v all_o his_o first_o chapter_n but_o i_o find_v it_o so_o useless_a a_o work_n that_o i_o shall_v ease_v myself_o and_o the_o reader_n of_o that_o labour_n 1._o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o answer_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o disputation_n write_v about_o 23_o year_n ago_o whereas_o i_o have_v late_o write_v a_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n with_o full_a proof_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o he_o name_v and_o take_v on_o he_o to_o answer_v some_o part_n of_o it_o and_o answer_v not_o till_o he_o or_o some_o other_o show_v i_o the_o mistake_n of_o that_o let_v they_o talk_v on_o for_o i_o in_o their_o little_a velitation_n 2._o most_o that_o be_v considerable_a which_o he_o say_v be_v answer_v already_o in_o that_o book_n as_o his_o fiction_n that_o unum_n alt_z be_v in_o ignatius_n signify_v not_o a_o ordinary_a communion_n table_n etc._n etc._n and_o much_o more_o out_o of_o ignatius_n and_o many_o more_o be_v add_v which_o he_o say_v nothing_o to_o 3._o i_o have_v before_o show_v that_o he_o go_v on_o false_a supposition_n that_o i_o be_o only_o for_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o single_a congregation_n or_o against_o all_o and_o many_o such_o when_o yet_o he_o himself_o confess_v the_o contrary_a yea_o deride_v i_o for_o make_v twelve_o sort_n of_o bishop_n and_o be_v for_o such_o as_o no_o party_n be_v like_a to_o be_v please_v with_o 4_o the_o contradiction_n and_o mistake_n be_v so_o many_o as_o will_v tire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v a_o answer_n to_o they_o and_o when_o he_o have_v all_o do_v with_o the_o number_n of_o church_n overpass_a the_o full_a proof_n of_o the_o primitive_a form_n of_o they_o which_o i_o give_v as_o before_o he_o confess_v that_o even_o his_o great_a esteem_a jesuit_n valesius_fw-la believe_v that_o the_o city_n church_n be_v but_o one_o even_o in_o alexandria_n and_o in_o dionysius_n '_o s_o time_n p._n 64._o and_o while_o p._n 65._o he_o make_v petavius_n and_o valesius_fw-la so_o much_o to_o differ_v as_o to_o gather_v their_o contrary_a opinion_n from_o the_o same_o word_n and_o consequent_o one_o of_o they_o at_o least_o understand_v they_o not_o i_o that_o profess_v myself_o not_o comparable_a to_o either_o of_o they_o special_o petavius_n in_o such_o thing_n be_o take_v for_o a_o falsifier_n if_o i_o misunderstand_v a_o word_n that_o concern_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o history_n this_o therefore_o be_v not_o about_o church-history_n so_o much_o as_o against_o my_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a government_n when_o he_o have_v answer_v the_o foresay_a treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n if_o i_o live_v not_o some_o one_o may_v reply_v if_o he_o deal_v no_o better_a than_o in_o this_o chap._n xviii_o of_o his_o second_o chapter_n §_o 1._o pag._n 78._o he_o will_v have_v man_n believe_v that_o it_o be_v discipline_n against_o real_a heresy_n that_o i_o find_v so_o much_o fault_n with_o and_o ascribe_v all_o mischief_n to_o answ_n utter_o contrary_a to_o my_o most_o open_a profession_n it_o be_v only_o make_v those_o thing_n to_o seem_v heresy_n that_o be_v none_o either_o truth_n or_o mere_a difference_n of_o word_n or_o small_a mistake_n or_o cure_v heresy_n by_o rash_a anathema_n without_o necessary_a precedent_n mean_v of_o conviction_n or_o by_o banishment_n or_o blood_n §_o 2._o be_v this_o it_o that_o you_o defend_v the_o church_n for_o and_o we_o oppose_v it_o for_o when_o we_o will_v have_v none_o in_o our_o church_n who_o we_o know_v not_o and_o that_o have_v not_o personal_o if_o at_o age_n profess_v understand_o their_o faith_n and_o what_o be_v the_o discipline_n that_o you_o exercise_v on_o heretic_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o you_o know_v they_o not_o and_o so_o never_o trouble_v they_o your_o talk_n and_o pamphlet_n true_o complain_v what_o swarm_n of_o hobbist_n sadducee_n infidel_n atheist_n be_v among_o we_o do_v they_o not_o all_o live_v in_o the_o parish_n and_o diocese_n do_v the_o bishop_n know_v they_o be_v any_o of_o
they_o excommunicate_v i_o can_v never_o learn_v yet_o how_o to_o know_v who_o be_v member_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o all_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o parish_n then_o all_o these_o aforesaid_a with_o jew_n and_o papist_n be_v in_o it_o and_o then_o why_o be_v ten_o part_n of_o some_o parish_n suffer_v without_o discipline_n to_o shun_v the_o parish_n church-communion_n be_v it_o all_o that_o hear_v you_o then_o 1._o ten_o part_n in_o some_o parish_n and_o two_o or_o three_o or_o half_a in_o other_o be_v not_o of_o your_o church_n and_o hear_v you_o not_o and_o many_o nonconformist_n hear_v you_o 2._o and_o any_o infidel_n may_v hear_v bare_a hear_v be_v never_o make_v a_o sufficient_a note_n of_o a_o church-member_n 3._o and_o how_o can_v you_o tell_v who_o all_o be_v that_o hear_v you_o in_o a_o uncertain_a crowd_n 4._o and_o why_o do_v not_o your_o discipline_n meddle_v with_o constant_a non-communicants_a 3._o be_v it_o only_o all_o that_o communicate_v with_o you_o 1._o these_o be_v yet_o few_o and_o so_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o many_o or_o most_o parish_n here_o be_v let_v alone_o to_o be_v no_o church_n member_n at_o all_o when_o they_o have_v be_v long_o baptise_a and_o no_o censure_n by_o discipline_n pass_v on_o they_o 2._o how_o know_v you_o your_o state_v communicant_o when_o any_o stranger_n may_v come_v unquestioned_a the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v parish_n discipline_n which_o you_o will_v not_o endure_v no_o wonder_n if_o you_o name_v it_o issachars_n burden_n bucer_n in_o scrip_n anglic._n and_o all_o the_o nonconformist_n after_o he_o long_o strive_v for_o it_o in_o vain_a it_o be_v the_o hate_a thing_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o prevail_v with_o you_o for_o this_o we_o shall_v have_v little_a disagreement_n about_o church_n government_n but_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v be_v the_o great_a enemy_n of_o it_o have_v yet_o glory_v in_o a_o discipline_n to_o set_v up_o their_o power_n over_o prince_n and_o people_n and_o to_o have_v their_o own_o will_n and_o tread_v down_o all_o that_o be_v against_o they_o §_o 2._o to_o extenuate_v anathematise_v so_o very_o common_a with_o council_n he_o tell_v we_o p._n 81._o that_o let_v he_o be_v anathema_n import_v no_o more_o than_o that_o we_o declare_v our_o abhorrence_n of_o such_o doctrine_n and_o will_v have_v nothing_o common_a with_o those_o that_o profess_v they_o ans_fw-fr 1._o we_o may_v declare_v our_o abhorrence_n of_o every_o know_a sin_n and_o error_n in_o such_o as_o must_v not_o be_v anathematise_v 2._o by_o nothing_o i_o suppose_v you_o mean_v not_o not_o the_o same_o king_n country_n earth_n air_n etc._n etc._n but_o not_o the_o same_o church_n the_o same_o christian_a communion_n familiarity_n love_n &c_n &c_n whether_o you_o mean_v not_o the_o same_o god_n christ_n etc._n etc._n i_o know_v not_o but_o do_v you_o think_v the_o anathematise_v bishop_n so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o renounce_v all_o christian_a communion_n with_o man_n and_o not_o tell_v why_o or_o to_o give_v no_o better_a reason_n than_o we_o abhor_v their_o doctrine_n how_o few_o church_n or_o man_n have_v nothing_o worthy_a to_o be_v abhor_v that_o be_v no_o error_n or_o sin_n and_o must_v we_o renounce_v communion_n with_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n no_o they_o be_v not_o so_o bad_a you_o use_v they_o hardly_o than_o i._n they_o take_v they_o to_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n as_o want_v somewhat_o of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o essential_a to_o a_o christian_a and_o so_o to_o have_v make_v themselves_o no_o church-member_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v sentence_v &_o avoid_v according_o and_o how_o ordinary_o do_v they_o expound_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n that_o be_v cut_n off_o from_o christ_n not_o only_o hildebrand_n so_o expound_v it_o often_o but_o many_o before_o he_o whereupon_o they_o common_o agree_v that_o a_o anathematise_v heretic_n be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v be_v save_v without_o repentance_n and_o indeed_o to_o renounce_v all_o communion_n with_o christ_n true_a member_n not_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n be_v a_o great_a sin_n than_o i_o charge_v on_o they_o though_o familiarity_n and_o special_o communion_n may_v be_v suspend_v while_o delay_n of_o repentance_n make_v the_o case_n of_o a_o sinner_n doubtful_a §_o 3._o pag._n 82_o he_o begin_v himself_o with_o blame_v bishop_n victor_n for_o endanger_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o so_o light_a occasion_n valesius_fw-la be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v but_o by_o letter_n of_o accusation_n answ_n i_o think_v it_o can_v be_v but_o by_o letter_n of_o accusation_n renunciation_n and_o persuade_v other_o to_o renounce_v they_o for_o bishop_n be_v not_o then_o come_v up_o to_o their_o command_a power_n over_o one_o another_o but_o do_v not_o mr._n m_n here_o rail_v upon_o a_o bishop_n in_o say_v the_o same_o of_o he_o that_o i_o do_v if_o my_o word_n be_v rail_a thus_o you_o shall_v have_v he_o all_o along_o confess_v much_o of_o that_o faultiness_n by_o they_o which_o he_o take_v the_o mention_n of_o by_o i_o to_o be_v so_o bad_a §_o 4._o he_o name_v many_o council_n which_o he_o say_v i_o pass_v light_o over_o then_o sure_o i_o say_v no_o harm_n of_o they_o he_o think_v it_o be_v because_o i_o can_v not_o as_o if_o he_o know_v it_o be_v my_o will_n and_o so_o i_o be_o never_o blameless_a §_o 5._o but_o he_o have_v a_o notable_a controversy_n against_o baronius_n who_o think_v novatus_n have_v be_v a_o bishop_n such_o error_n as_o baronius_n be_v guilty_a of_o by_o ignorance_n be_v excusable_a in_o one_o so_o far_o below_o he_o in_o history_n as_o i_o be_o but_o i_o congratulate_v mr._n m_n discovery_n that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o presbyter_n but_o all_o confess_v that_o he_o ordain_v felicissimus_n deacon_n and_o here_o be_v a_o presbyter_n ordain_v but_o it_o be_v irregular_o let_v it_o be_v so_o he_o say_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v ordain_v but_o with_o cyprian_a or_o by_o his_o permission_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o 1._o if_o cyprian_n permission_n will_v serve_v than_o it_o be_v not_o a_o work_n alien_n to_o a_o presbyter_n if_o a_o permit_v presbyter_n may_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n ordination_n be_v not_o necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la officii_fw-la and_o so_o that_o which_o be_v a_o disorder_n be_v no_o nullity_n 2._o and_o it_o seem_v by_o novatus_n act_n that_o the_o necessity_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v not_o universal_o receive_v and_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o meet_v with_o any_o that_o make_v it_o more_o necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la presbyteratus_n quam_fw-la diaconatus_fw-la §_o 6._o next_o he_o mention_n another_o carthage_n council_n where_o one_o victor_n dead_a be_v condemn_v for_o make_v a_o priest_n guardian_n of_o his_o child_n and_o so_o entangle_v he_o in_o worldly_a affair_n and_o he_o tell_v you_o that_o all_o that_o i_o can_v say_v against_o this_o be_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o sentence_n but_o he_o dissemble_v and_o take_v no_o notice_n that_o i_o mention_v it_o in_o praise_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n who_o be_v so_o much_o against_o clergyman_n meddle_v with_o secular_a affair_n what_o odious_a puritanism_n will_v this_o have_v be_v with_o we_o what_o i_o cite_v in_o praise_n our_o historian_n can_v understand_v §_o 7._o and_o that_o you_o may_v need_v no_o confuter_n of_o much_o of_o his_o accusation_n of_o i_o but_o himself_o who_o so_o oft_o say_v i_o say_v nothing_o of_o bishop_n and_o council_n but_o of_o their_o fault_n etc._n etc._n he_o here_o say_v as_o follow_v after_o this_o he_o give_v a_o short_a account_n of_o council_n call_v on_o the_o subject_a of_o rebaptisation_n of_o heretic_n and_o here_o to_o do_v he_o right_o he_o be_v just_a enough_o in_o his_o remark_n the_o generality_n of_o the_o world_n be_v for_o rebaptise_v heretic_n and_o consider_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n the_o first_o heretic_n be_v it_o be_v probable_a they_o have_v tradition_n as_o well_o as_o reason_n on_o their_o side_n however_o mr._n baxter_n endeavour_v fair_o to_o excuse_v these_o difference_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n with_o honour_n and_o respect_n allow_v they_o to_o be_v man_n of_o eminent_a piety_n and_o worth_n have_v he_o use_v the_o same_o candour_n towards_o other_o etc._n etc._n answ_n 1._o if_o this_o be_v true_a a_o great_a deal_n contradictory_n be_v untrue_a 2._o he_o great_o misreport_v the_o controversy_n it_o be_v not_o whether_o heretic_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v but_o those_o that_o be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n and_o take_v into_o their_o church_n if_o a_o heretic_n have_v be_v baptise_a when_o find_v by_o a_o sound_a minister_n and_o after_o turn_v to_o heresy_n he_o be_v to_o be_v restore_v by_o repentance_n without_o rebaptise_v and_o i_o
think_v they_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o but_o i_o imagine_v this_o be_v but_o a_o lapse_n of_o his_o memory_n in_o write_v 3._o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o bishop_n who_o fault_n i_o mention_v be_v of_o equal_a worth_n and_o innocency_n with_o those_o who_o i_o honour_n and_o praise_v let_v the_o proof_n show_v i_o will_v he_o will_v free_o tell_v we_o q._n 1._o whether_o he_o think_v at_o this_o day_n the_o generality_n of_o bishop_n in_o italy_n spain_n france_n germany_n poland_n the_o greek_a church_n moscovy_n armenia_n syria_n etc._n etc._n be_v so_o commendable_a as_o not_o to_o be_v notable_o blame_v q._n 2._o if_o not_o when_o be_v it_o that_o he_o think_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v general_o so_o commendable_a be_v it_o in_o hildebrand_n time_n or_o any_o time_n before_o q._n 3._o can_v you_o believe_v that_o the_o generality_n turn_v from_o good_a to_o bad_a just_a in_o one_o age_n or_o rather_o that_o they_o degenerate_v by_o degree_n if_o they_o be_v most_o bad_a in_o a_o thousand_o or_o nine_o hundred_o or_o eight_o hundred_o can_v you_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o draw_v towards_o it_o and_o near_o as_o bad_a a_o little_a before_o q._n 4._o what_o be_v it_o think_v you_o in_o which_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o clergy_n do_v consist_v be_v it_o not_o most_o in_o a_o proud_a domineer_a worldly_a spirit_n be_v it_o not_o that_o that_o you_o blame_v the_o pope_n for_o be_v not_o their_o ascent_n their_o corruption_n sure_o you_o all_o agree_v of_o that_o q._n 5._o and_o do_v the_o papacy_n spring_v up_o in_o a_o year_n do_v not_o leo_n begin_v to_o arrogate_v and_o other_o after_o he_o to_o say_v nothing_o now_o of_o those_o before_o he_o rise_v high_o and_o high_o by_o degree_n as_o child_n grow_v up_o to_o manhood_n till_o in_o greg._n 7._o it_o come_v to_o maturity_n i_o know_v no_o protestant_n that_o deny_v this_o q._n 6._o and_o can_v you_o or_o any_o sober_a man_n think_v that_o in_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n it_o be_v only_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v sick_a of_o this_o disease_n and_o that_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n be_v free_a be_v they_o not_o common_o for_o ascend_v with_o they_o do_v not_o they_o in_o the_o east_n strive_v to_o be_v great_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n strive_v to_o rise_v with_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n be_v they_o not_o and_o be_v they_o not_o as_o his_o army_n and_o do_v he_o prevail_v against_o the_o primitive_a purity_n and_o simplicity_n without_o they_o do_v not_o his_o council_n and_o prelate_n as_o his_o army_n do_v his_o great_a work_n yea_o have_v they_o not_o oft_o outdo_v he_o and_o overtopped_a he_o in_o mischief_n as_o in_o the_o depose_n of_o ludou._n pius_n against_o his_o will_n say_v good_a historian_n tell_v we_o then_o at_o what_o age_n just_o we_o may_v begin_v to_o dispraise_v the_o bishop_n and_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o will_v you_o not_o be_v as_o great_a a_o railer_n as_o i_o and_o scandalize_v christianity_n more_o than_o lucian_n or_o julian_n §_o 8._o but_o i_o somewhat_o marvel_v that_o he_o be_v again_o at_o it_o recite_v dionysius_n word_n which_o he_o think_v i_o mistake_v for_o eusebius_n that_o he_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n which_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o so_o great_a antiquity_n i_o judge_v more_o candid_o of_o he_o than_o he_o do_v of_o i_o though_o he_o so_o oft_o repeat_v it_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o baptise_v of_o heretic_n as_o such_o that_o be_v the_o question_n but_o only_o of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n yet_o i_o confess_v eusebius_n phrase_v it_o may_v tempt_v one_o to_o think_v so_o that_o have_v not_o read_v cyprian_a and_o other_o upon_o the_o question_n but_o when_o eusebius_n and_o dionysius_n mention_v rebaptise_v heretic_n they_o mean_v only_o those_o that_o be_v by_o heretic_n baptism_n enter_v into_o the_o society_n and_o profession_n of_o heretic_n if_o the_o worst_a heretic_n yea_o or_o apostate_n have_v be_v baptize_v by_o the_o orthodox_n cyprian_a and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v agree_v against_o rebaptise_v such_o when_o they_o repent_v this_o dionysius_n tell_v xystus_n rom._n of_o a_o ancient_a minister_n that_o be_v great_o trouble_v in_o conscience_n that_o he_o have_v be_v false_o baptise_a by_o a_o heretic_n be_v himself_o no_o heretic_n and_o doubt_v whether_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v yet_o say_v he_o tell_v he_o he_o dare_v not_o rebaptize_v he_o that_o have_v so_o long_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o communicate_v but_o bid_v he_o go_v on_o comfortable_o in_o communion_n much_o like_o a_o forementioned_a case_n put_v to_o i_o by_o some_o that_o never_o be_v baptise_a but_o in_o our_o undisciplined_a parish_n church_n have_v be_v without_o knowledge_n or_o question_n admit_v long_o to_o communion_n whether_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v baptise_a at_o all_o and_o dionysius_n reason_n against_o it_o i_o can_v answer_v §_o 9_o and_o here_o i_o may_v take_v notice_n how_o our_o new_a churchman_n such_o as_o thorndike_n mr._n dodwell_n and_o all_o their_o partner_n who_o nullify_v sacrament_n deliver_v by_o one_o that_o have_v not_o canonical_a ordination_n by_o a_o bishop_n of_o uninterrupted_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n do_v make_v themselves_o heretic_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o they_o allow_v for_o 1._o baptism_n be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o necessary_a sacrament_n in_o their_o own_o opinion_n yea_o austin_n and_o too_o many_o of_o old_a but_o special_o too_o many_o now_o take_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n 2._o if_o therefore_o baptism_n be_v a_o nullity_n all_o that_o be_v baptise_a in_o england_n scotland_n and_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n by_o such_o as_o have_v no_o such_o ordainer_n must_v be_v baptise_a again_z or_o be_v damn_v 3._o if_o they_o say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o than_o 1._o they_o confess_v mr._n dodwells_n doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a that_o say_v none_o have_v a_o covenant_n right_n to_o salvation_n who_o have_v it_o not_o by_o a_o sacrament_n from_o such_o hand_n 2._o and_o they_o renounce_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o salvation_n but_o if_o they_o be_v for_o rebaptise_v all_o such_o protestant_a country_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o be_v uncharitable_a that_o do_v not_o speak_v it_o out_o §_o 10._o he_o pass_v by_o bishop_n stephens_n excommunicate_v all_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n cilicia_n galatia_n and_o reprobate_v their_o synod_n for_o rebaptisation_n do_v he_o think_v that_o even_o then_o some_o bishop_n do_v not_o rise_v too_o fast_o §_o 11._o the_o man_n that_o be_v so_o angry_a with_o i_o for_o tell_v of_o the_o fault_n of_o bishop_n and_o council_n be_v pag._n 87._o angry_a with_o i_o for_o not_o say_v worse_o against_o secundus_n his_o council_n of_o bishop_n at_o cirta_n and_o say_v i_o have_v not_o do_v right_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o perceive_v the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o i_o may_v rail_v at_o bishop_n but_o what_o bishop_n they_o be_v that_o i_o must_v rail_v at_o as_o for_o the_o council_n at_o sinuessa_n i_o believe_v the_o be_v of_o it_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v and_o when_o i_o be_o but_o name_v the_o common_a catalogue_n he_o may_v pardon_v my_o modesty_n for_o say_v that_o the_o be_v of_o it_o be_v a_o controversy_n §_o 12._o of_o the_o council_n of_o illiberis_n he_o say_v but_o contract_o the_o same_n that_o i_o do_v that_o it_o have_v many_o good_a canon_n and_o some_o that_o need_v a_o favourable_a interpretation_n and_o be_v very_o severe_a in_o some_o case_n this_o measure_n of_o just_a praise_n and_o dispraise_v be_v practise_v by_o he_o that_o be_v condemn_v it_o in_o i_o §_o 13._o as_o to_o his_o controversy_n whether_o bishop_n or_o such_o as_o strive_v to_o be_v bishop_n be_v the_o very_a first_o mover_n of_o the_o donatists_n controversy_n who_o shall_v be_v bishop_n it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o turn_n over_o one_o book_n to_o search_v as_o to_o my_o business_n §_o 14._o next_o he_o that_o accuse_v i_o of_o rail_a at_o bishop_n accuse_v i_o for_o say_v from_o some_o good_a author_n that_o a_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n donatus_n be_v a_o good_a man_n who_o he_o say_v be_v bad_a it_o be_v little_a to_o i_o whether_o he_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a §_o 15._o next_o he_o note_v that_o i_o err_v with_o binnius_n and_o baronius_n as_o to_o the_o year_n of_o a_o carthage_n council_n i_o undertake_v not_o to_o justify_v all_o the_o chronology_n or_o history_n that_o i_o transcribe_v whether_o optatus_n or_o binnius_n and_o baronius_n hit_v on_o the_o
be_v principal_o the_o papist_n from_o infancy_n to_o hildebrand_n maturity_n against_o who_o i_o write_v §_o 21._o he_o next_o come_v to_o the_o novatian_o as_o my_o favourite_n sect_n and_o favourite_n may_v signify_v to_o the_o reader_n a_o truth_n or_o a_o falsehood_n 1._o do_v not_o every_o christian_a favour_n they_o that_o have_v lesser_a error_n more_o than_o they_o that_o have_v great_a 2._o do_v i_o not_o as_o oft_o as_o he_o profess_v my_o great_a dislike_n of_o every_o sect_n as_o a_o sect_n 3._o do_v i_o not_o disclaim_v this_o novatian_a sect_n and_o their_o opinion_n and_o own_o the_o contrary_a 4._o it_o seem_v he_o take_v i_o to_o be_v too_o favourable_a to_o some_o bishop_n and_o their_o follower_n the_o question_n be_v but_o who_o they_o be_v that_o must_v be_v favour_v i_o may_v come_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o novatian_a by_o such_o man_n as_o well_o as_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n §_o 22._o here_o without_o rail_v he_o bedawb_v novatus_n and_o novatian_n to_o the_o purpose_n with_o horrid_a crime_n a_o pharisaical_a saint_n perjure_a and_o what_o not_o but_o what_o be_v they_o not_o episcopal_a yes_o he_o doubt_v it_o not_o it_o be_v for_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o novatian_n wrought_v his_o villainy_n what_o if_o i_o have_v thus_o bedawb_v the_o episcopal_a but_o yet_o the_o very_a word_n puritan_n be_v of_o use_n to_o he_o this_o say_v he_o of_o novatus_n be_v the_o tender_a conscience_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o ancient_a sect_n of_o the_o puritan_n can_v you_o tell_v who_o the_o man_n aim_v at_o be_v it_o nonconformist_n novatus_n &_o novatian_n be_v prelatist_n and_o never_o scruple_v more_o ceremony_n than_o our_o prelate_n impose_v who_o then_o can_v it_o be_v but_o man_n that_o in_o general_a though_o episcopal_n do_v profess_v tenderness_n of_o conscience_n and_o there_o i_o leave_v they_o without_o the_o application_n §_o 23._o but_o this_o defender_n of_o surgent_a prelacy_n stick_v not_o to_o disgrace_v those_o who_o he_o seem_v to_o defend_v it_o be_v three_o of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n that_o consecrate_a novatian_n and_o without_o rail_v he_o call_v they_o three_o plain_a ignorant_a bishop_n these_o good_a man_n suspect_v no_o trick_n and_o overcome_v with_o his_o good_a entertainment_n with_o too_o much_o wine_n and_o persuasion_n be_v force_v at_o last_o to_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o he_o and_o consecrate_v he_o bishop_n 1._o ignorant_n bishop_n 2._o overcome_v with_o too_o much_o wine_n and_o entertainment_n 3._o and_o with_o persuasion_n 4._o to_o do_v such_o a_o act_n as_o to_o consecrate_v so_o bad_a a_o bishop_n &_o that_o in_o such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n and_o that_o without_o the_o church_n choice_n or_o consent_n how_o much_o worse_o have_v i_o say_v of_o bishop_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v good_a man_n but_o if_o they_o have_v be_v nonconformist_n what_o name_n have_v be_v bad_a enough_o for_o they_o no_o doubt_n if_o they_o have_v be_v sequester_v and_o cast_v out_o for_o their_o too_o much_o wine_n and_o such_o ordination_n how_o odious_o may_v the_o agent_n have_v be_v describe_v as_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n and_o persecutor_n of_o good_a man_n §_o 24._o yet_o further_o this_o new_a bishop_n engage_v man_n to_o he_o by_o oath_n enough_o to_o strike_v a_o horror_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o reader_n say_v he_o see_v what_o a_o man_n may_v do_v for_o a_o bishopric_n it_o remind_v i_o of_o many_o good_a canon_n that_o forbid_v bishop_n swear_v their_o clergy_n to_o they_o and_o of_o our_o et_fw-la caetera_fw-la oath_n in_o 1640_o never_a to_o consent_v to_o any_o alteration_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o our_o time_n and_o the_o old_a oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n it_o strike_v horror_n into_o man_n mind_n now_o that_o we_o scruple_n these_o §_o 25._o he_o make_v the_o novatian_a doctrine_n blasphemous_a without_o rail_v and_o i_o too_o favourable_a in_o represent_v it_o as_o to_o that_o i_o suppose_v he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o great_a a_o controversy_n it_o be_v what_o they_o hold_v even_o among_o the_o great_a antiquary_n and_o enemy_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o i_o use_v in_o accusation_n to_o meet_v with_o most_o truth_n in_o the_o most_o favourable_a interpretation_n and_o here_o i_o will_v tell_v our_o historian_n that_o while_o i_o take_v leave_n to_o dissent_v from_o his_o accusation_n it_o shall_v be_v but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o who_o i_o judge_v as_o well_o acquaint_v with_o church_n writer_n and_o custom_n as_o any_o that_o ever_o mr._n m._n or_o any_o of_o his_o master_n read_v not_o except_v more_o know_a man_n than_o valesius_fw-la the_o first_o be_v d._n petavius_n in_o epiphan_n de_fw-fr cath._n where_o first_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o no_o less_o nor_o late_a man_n than_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o special_o the_o greek_n mistake_v novatus_n and_o novatian_n for_o one_o or_o think_v the_o sect_n have_v a_o single_a author_n name_v euseb_n theodoret_n epiphan_n nazian_n ambrose_n austin_n philastrius_n yea_o and_o socrates_n yet_o half_a as_o great_a a_o mistake_n in_o i_o will_v have_v be_v scorn_v 2._o against_o epiph._n and_o theodoret_n he_o say_v non_fw-la ea_fw-la novatiani_n opinio_fw-la fuit_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la gravioris_fw-la peccati_fw-la noxam_fw-la contraherent_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la spe_fw-la consequendae_fw-la salutis_fw-la excludi_fw-la nam_fw-la &_o illos_fw-la ad_fw-la capessendam_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la hortari_fw-la solebant_fw-la et_fw-la ut_fw-la divinam_fw-la clementiam_fw-la lach●ymis_fw-la ac_fw-la sordibus_fw-la elicerent_fw-la identidem_fw-la admonebant_fw-la sed_fw-la hoc_fw-la unum_fw-la negabant_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fidelium_fw-la communionem_fw-la recipi_fw-la amplius_fw-la oportere_fw-la neque_fw-la penes_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la reconciliandi_fw-la jus_o ullum_fw-la ac_fw-la potestatem_fw-la esse_fw-la quip_n unicam_fw-la illam_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la in_o illius_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la versari_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la baptismum_fw-la obtinetur_fw-la which_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o socrates_n ambrose_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o count_v heretic_n for_o wrong_v the_o lapse_v by_o deny_v they_o communion_n but_o for_o wrong_v the_o church_n power_n by_o deny_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n for_o their_o restitution_n like_o enough_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v that_o excellent_a bishop_n albaspineus_n observe_v lib._n 2._o observe_v 20_o 21._o p._n mihi_fw-la 130_o 131._o advertant_fw-la novatianorum_n errorem_fw-la non_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la positum_fw-la quod_fw-la dicerent_fw-la neque_fw-la lapsum_fw-la neque_fw-la excommunicatum_fw-la in_o morte_fw-la à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la liberandum_fw-la sed_fw-la haereticos_fw-la ideo_fw-la habitos_fw-la quod_fw-la opinarentur_fw-la deum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la neque_fw-la remittendorum_fw-la neque_fw-la retinendorum_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la capitalium_fw-la potestatem_fw-la copiamque_fw-la fecisse_fw-la atque_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la fuit_fw-la viguitque_fw-la eorum_fw-la haeresis_fw-la qui_fw-la quanquam_fw-la illud_fw-la consequeretur_fw-la ex-eorum_a falsa_fw-la opinion_n ut_fw-la absolutionem_fw-la non_fw-la largirentur_fw-la tamen_fw-la hoc_fw-la eorum_fw-la factum_fw-la non_fw-la haeresis_fw-la nomine_fw-la afficiendum_fw-la erat_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la haeresin_fw-la accedebat_fw-la ob_fw-la aliam_fw-la causam_fw-la quam_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la fonte_fw-la illo_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la capite_fw-la haresin_n olente_fw-la dimanârat_fw-la eo_fw-la maxim_n quod_fw-la novatiani_n crederent_fw-la id_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la praestitum_fw-la &_o concessum_fw-la quae_fw-la causa_fw-la sola_fw-la fuit_fw-la cur_n praxis_fw-la illa_fw-la ce●_n disciplinae_fw-la novatianorum_n ratio_fw-la haeresis_fw-la nomen_fw-la notionemque_fw-la non_fw-la effugeret_fw-la the_o clergy_n feel_v their_o own_o interest_n and_o the_o novatian_o deny_v their_o power_n to_o retain_v as_o well_o as_o forgive_v capital_a crime_n and_o think_v their_o key_n extend_v not_o so_o far_o and_o that_o the_o case_n of_o the_o lapse_v be_v it_o that_o they_o begin_v with_o epiphanius_n himself_o and_o other_o agree_v and_o observe_v 19_o he_o show_v that_o novatianus_n do_v this_o against_o his_o former_a judgement_n in_o envy_n and_o faction_n against_o the_o bishop_n because_o he_o miss_v of_o be_v bishop_n himself_o a_o bishopric_n be_v it_o that_o provoke_v he_o to_o deny_v this_o pardon_v power_n in_o bishop_n and_o albaspineus_n have_v in_o many_o antecedent_n observation_n show_v how_o little_a if_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o the_o novatian_o differ_v else_o from_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o the_o strictness_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o avoid_v sinner_n so_o that_o he_o thus_o begin_v his_o five_o observation_n incredibilia_fw-la prope_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la his_fw-la capitibus_fw-la dicturi_fw-la sumus_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la ita_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o certa_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la cujusque_fw-la animam_fw-la summam_fw-la in_o admirationem_fw-la rapiant_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la primis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la nulla_fw-la vel_fw-la levissima_fw-la labe_fw-la inquinatam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la quin_fw-la ita_fw-la illibatam_fw-la intactamque_fw-la ut_fw-la omni_fw-la ratione_fw-la curâ_fw-la &_o solicitudine_fw-la prospexerit_fw-la silij_fw-la ut_fw-la svi_fw-la
he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o desire_v he_o to_o think_v again_o which_o party_n most_o befriend_v the_o papist_n they_o that_o be_v for_o a_o reconciliation_n with_o they_o on_o these_o term_n that_o there_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v a_o universal_a supreme_a human_a power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o he_o shall_v abate_v we_o the_o last_o 400_o year_n imposition_n and_o all_o be_v account_v schismatic_n that_o unite_v not_o into_o this_o church_n and_o that_o all_o the_o preacher_n in_o england_n shall_v be_v silence_v that_o will_v not_o swear_v promise_n profess_v and_o practice_v all_o that_o which_o be_v here_o impose_v on_o they_o though_o they_o think_v it_o heinons_a sin_n and_o other_o think_v it_o but_o matter_n indifferent_a and_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v prosecute_v that_o hear_v they_o and_o that_o this_o division_n shall_v rather_o weaken_v the_o kingdom_n and_o advantage_v the_o papist_n than_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n as_o wise_a and_o faithful_a as_o themselves_o shall_v be_v ease_v of_o such_o imposition_n or_o they_o suffer_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n or_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v to_o such_o silence_n prison_n and_o ruin_n have_v rather_o be_v deliver_v though_o a_o papist_n be_v deliver_v with_o they_o than_o be_v destroy_v methinks_v we_o be_v use_v by_o these_o church-fathers_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v determine_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o be_v most_o against_o popery_n shall_v be_v hang_v unless_o the_o papist_n will_v beg_v their_o pardon_n or_o cut_v the_o rope_n which_o if_o these_o protestant_n accept_v they_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o promoter_n of_o the_o papist_n §_o 6._o as_o for_o all_o his_o exception_n against_o epiphanius_n they_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o who_o do_v not_o undertake_v to_o justify_v his_o word_n but_o transcribe_v they_o nor_o think_v it_o worth_a my_o labour_n now_o to_o examine_v the_o case_n of_o so_o small_a concernment_n §_o 7._o when_o some_o have_v blame_v i_o for_o condemn_v the_o arian_n too_o much_o he_o say_v that_o i_o say_v some_o what_o very_o much_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n but_o he_o be_v so_o gentle_a as_o not_o to_o tell_v what_o it_o be_v unless_o it_o be_v tell_v what_o petavius_n the_o jesuit_n say_v about_o that_o i_o be_o whole_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n but_o the_o express_a word_n which_o petavius_n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cit_v out_o of_o all_o those_o old_a father_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o very_o they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o gross_a that_o unless_o his_o argument_n satisfy_v i_o viz._n the_o vote_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a show_v what_o be_v the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n better_a than_o the_o word_n of_o all_o those_o father_n i_o shall_v think_v as_o philostorgius_n in_o point_n of_o history_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a confute_v of_o the_o arian_n from_o those_o father_n though_o sometime_o they_o have_v better_a word_n visible_a word_n can_v be_v deny_v even_o where_o they_o must_v be_v lament_v that_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o mr._n m_n opinion_n of_o history_n and_o i_o §_o 8._o as_o to_o the_o audian_n i_o recite_v but_o epiphanius_n word_n who_o in_o other_o case_n be_v great_o value_v by_o these_o accuser_n they_o will_v believe_v what_o he_o say_v of_o aerius_n and_o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_a out_o of_o theodoret_n he_o may_v see_v that_o he_o say_v all_o by_o hearsay_n and_o say_v that_o they_o hide_v that_o which_o he_o accuse_v they_o of_o and_o be_v hypocrite_n profess_v too_o much_o strictness_n l._n 4._o c._n 9_o which_o be_v still_o the_o common_a way_n of_o accuse_v the_o best_a against_o who_o instead_o of_o provable_a fault_n they_o turn_v their_o strictness_n into_o a_o crime_n epiphanius_n be_v much_o more_o particular_a than_o theodoret_n in_o the_o story_n §_o 9_o the_o rest_n which_o he_o note_v of_o my_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v nothing_o need_v a_o reply_n petavius_n have_v full_o prove_v that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v true_a bishop_n but_o now_o we_o be_v odious_a presbyterian_o if_o we_o will_v but_o have_v a_o bishop_n in_o every_o city_n that_o be_v corporation_n desire_v only_o that_o discipline_n may_v become_v possible_a and_o for_o this_o we_o be_v proclaim_v to_o be_v against_o bishop_n that_o be_v say_v this_o sort_n of_o man_n they_o that_o will_v have_v but_o one_o bishop_n over_o a_o thousand_o or_o many_o hundred_o or_o score_n church_n be_v for_o episcopacy_n and_o they_o that_o will_v have_v every_o church_n have_v a_o bishop_n as_o of_o old_a or_o at_o least_o every_o great_a town_n and_o so_o will_v have_v twenty_o or_o forty_o or_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o be_v against_o episcopacy_n and_o that_o which_o be_v strange_a be_v these_o man_n be_v believe_v §_o 10._o i_o praise_v the_o council_n of_o gangra_n for_o condemn_v some_o superstition_n and_o he_o say_v i_o have_v nothing_o against_o it_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o common_a mistake_n that_o arius_n be_v here_o receive_v to_o communion_n i_o will_v not_o stay_v to_o examine_v §_o 11._o when_o he_o have_v weigh_v all_o he_o can_v for_o the_o synod_n at_o antioch_n he_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v a_o pack_v company_n of_o bishop_n that_o comply_v with_o constantius_n and_o eusebius_n contrivance_n and_o what_o do_v i_o say_v worse_o of_o they_o than_o he_o as_o to_o the_o canon_n against_o priest_n or_o deacon_n not_o gather_v assembly_n against_o the_o bishop_n will_v i_o be_o for_o it_o as_o much_o as_o he_o if_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v then_o but_o not_o in_o france_n nor_o italy_n he_o say_v i_o leave_v my_o sting_n behind_o i_o and_o end_v very_o angry_o for_o these_o only_a word_n this_n be_v their_o strength_n mention_v the_o council_n that_o be_v against_o athanasius_n suppress_v dissenter_n as_o seditious_a by_o force_n i_o see_v angry_a man_n think_v other_o angry_a when_o they_o be_v and_o be_v sting_v if_o we_o do_v but_o name_v their_o sting_v we_o as_o if_o prison_n and_o ruin_n be_v not_o so_o sharp_a a_o sting_n as_o these_o four_o word_n if_o it_o be_v not_o their_o strength_n why_o do_v they_o so_o trust_v to_o it_o as_o to_o confess_v that_o their_o argument_n and_o key_n will_v do_v little_a to_o uphold_v their_o prelacy_n without_o it_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o usurper_n i_o move_v for_o a_o petition_n that_o when_o they_o grant_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n for_o so_o many_o other_o they_o will_v grant_v liberty_n for_o the_o full_a exercise_n of_o the_o episcopal_a government_n to_o all_o that_o desire_v it_o but_o the_o episcopal_a party_n that_o i_o speak_v to_o will_v not_o endure_v it_o as_o know_v what_o bare_a liberty_n will_v be_v to_o their_o cause_n unless_o they_o can_v have_v the_o sword_n to_o suppress_v those_o that_o yield_v not_o to_o their_o reason_n §_o 12._o next_o he_o say_v i_o spare_v my_o gall_n for_o about_o a_o dozentimes_o not_o regard_v how_o it_o contradict_v his_o former_a accusation_n but_o whereas_o i_o recite_v the_o horrid_a accusation_n of_o the_o council_n at_o philippopolis_n against_o athanasius_n paulus_n and_o marcellus_n of_o open_a matter_n of_o fact_n as_o murder_n persecution_n burn_v of_o church_n war_n flame_n drag_v priest_n to_o the_o marketplace_n with_o christ_n body_n tie_v about_o their_o neck_n strip_v consecrate_a virgin_n naked_a before_o a_o concourse_n of_o people_n and_o offering_n to_o send_v messenger_n on_o both_o side_n to_o try_v the_o fact_n and_o to_o be_v themselves_o condemn_v if_o it_o prove_v not_o true_a he_o be_v offend_v that_o i_o seem_v stagger_v at_o this_o athanasius_n have_v detect_v before_o so_o many_o subornation_n etc._n etc._n answ_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o i_o be_v stagger_v much_o less_o doubt_v which_o of_o they_o do_v the_o wrong_n but_o that_o a_o reader_n may_v by_o such_o a_o temptation_n be_v astonish_v and_o confound_v who_o to_o believe_v but_o d_o d_o i_o ever_o rail_v more_o at_o bishop_n than_o he_o here_o do_v what_o 1._o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o bishop_n 2._o deliberate_o in_o council_n 3._o to_o affirm_v so_o vehement_o 4_o such_o matter_n of_o open_a fact_n 5._o and_o offer_v it_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o witness_n of_o both_o side_n and_o all_o this_o to_o be_v false_a 6._o and_o to_o be_v but_o the_o consequent_a of_o former_a subornation_n and_o perjury_n can_v you_o name_v great_a wickedness_n obj._n but_o they_o be_v arian_n answ_n but_o they_o be_v bishop_n the_o worse_a for_o be_v arian_n 2._o yet_o call_v but_o semi
and_o renounce_v arius_n and_o pretend_a reconciliation_n 3._o and_o they_o be_v the_o oriental_a part_n of_o the_o council_n at_o sardica_n call_v general_n by_o the_o papist_n 4._o and_o they_o be_v believe_v against_o marcellus_n by_o basil_n and_o chrysostom_n but_o all_o that_o i_o cite_v it_o for_o be_v to_o tell_v the_o reader_n what_o a_o doleful_a case_n the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o by_o the_o depravation_n of_o the_o bishop_n do_v none_o of_o these_o profess_v before_o to_o be_v orthodox_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v quatenus_fw-la bishop_n that_o they_o do_v all_o this_o but_o that_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n be_v then_o become_v the_o shame_n and_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 13._o next_o he_o scorn_o accuse_v i_o for_o give_v too_o soft_a a_o character_n of_o the_o circumcellian_o and_o say_v my_o moderation_n and_o charity_n may_v extend_v to_o john_n of_o leyden_n and_o he_o call_v they_o the_o most_o barbarous_a and_o desperate_a villain_n that_o ever_o defame_a christianity_n by_o assume_v the_o title_n ans_fw-fr 1._o this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o say_v i_o rail_v i_o name_v so_o many_o and_o great_a sin_n of_o they_o that_o i_o little_o think_v any_o reader_n will_v have_v think_v that_o i_o spare_v they_o too_o much_o 2._o yet_o they_o be_v donatist_n and_o of_o they_o optatus_n himself_o say_v lib._n 5._o apud_fw-la vos_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la nos_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la conversatio_fw-la commune_v lectiones_fw-la eadem_fw-la fides_n ipsa_fw-la fidei_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la eadem_fw-la mysteria_fw-la that_o be_v say_v albaspine_n una_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la disciplina_fw-la eodem_fw-la modo_fw-la scripturas_fw-la explicamus_fw-la ipsa_fw-la regula_n fidei_fw-la idem_fw-la mysterium_fw-la quod_fw-la confertur_fw-la &_o significatur_fw-la &_o eadem_fw-la res_fw-la visibilis_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la res_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la datur_fw-la in_o lib._n 5._o p._n 153._o and_o say_v optatus_n lib._n 1._o nequis_fw-la dicat_fw-la i_o inconsiderate_n eos_fw-la fratres_fw-la appellare_fw-la qui_fw-la tale_n sunt_fw-la quamvis_fw-la &_o illi_fw-la non_fw-la negent_fw-la &_o omnibus_fw-la notum_fw-la sit_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la odio_fw-la habeant_fw-la &_o execrentur_fw-la &_o nolunt_fw-la se_fw-la dioi_fw-la fratres_fw-la nostros_fw-la tamen_fw-la nos_fw-la recedere_fw-la à_fw-la timore_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la sunt_fw-la igitur_fw-la sine_fw-la dubio_fw-la fratres_fw-la quamvis_fw-la non_fw-la boni_fw-la quare_fw-la nemo_fw-la miretur_fw-la eos_fw-la i_o appellare_fw-la fratres_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la possant_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la fratres_fw-la obj._n but_o the_o circumcellian_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o rest_n answ_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n but_o the_o unruly_a furious_a part_n in_o their_o practice_n and_o optatus_n say_v though_o they_o will_v rail_v in_o word_n sed_fw-la unum_fw-la quidem_fw-la vix_fw-la invevimus_fw-la cum_fw-la quo_fw-la p●r_fw-la literas_fw-la vel_fw-la hoc_fw-la modo_fw-la loquatur_fw-la and_o so_o go_v on_o to_o call_v parmenian_n his_o brother_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o consideration_n how_o much_o albaspine_n include_v in_o fraternity_n note_v first_o &_o in_o observat_fw-la 3._o and_o they_o be_v orthodox_n fierce_a prelatist_n do_v all_o this_o for_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o what_o if_o some_o prelatist_n now_o shall_v hurt_v their_o brethren_n more_o than_o the_o circumcellian_o do_v must_v i_o call_v they_o therefore_o the_o most_o barbarous_a villain_n that_o ever_o defame_a christianity_n angustine_n say_v they_o make_v a_o water_n of_o some_o salt_n or_o sharp_a thing_n and_o cast_v in_o man_n eye_n in_o the_o night_n in_o the_o street_n no_o man_n can_v think_v that_o this_o barbarous_a action_n be_v do_v by_o the_o most_o or_o any_o but_o some_o furious_a fool_n they_o say_v that_o they_o will_v wound_v themselves_o to_o bring_v hatred_n on_o the_o catholic_n as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v it_o or_o drive_v they_o to_o it_o he_o that_o know_v what_o self-love_n be_v will_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n but_o of_o a_o few_o and_o a_o easy_a wrong_n than_o some_o that_o abhor_v they_o do_v to_o their_o brethren_n and_o must_v we_o needs_o rail_v indeed_o against_o such_o number_n of_o hurtful_a prelatist_n what_o if_o any_o rude_a person_n of_o your_o church_n shall_v be_v whoremonger_n drunkard_n blasphemer_n and_o seek_v the_o imprisonment_n of_o their_o brethren_n yea_o their_o defamation_n and_o blood_n by_o perjury_n shall_v the_o church_n be_v for_o their_o sake_n so_o call_v as_o you_o call_v they_o i_o speak_v they_o no_o fair_a than_o optatus_n do_v §_o 14._o when_o p._n 57_o i_o commend_v the_o many_o good_a canon_n of_o the_o african_a council_n and_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o note_v none_o of_o this_o because_o it_o prove_v the_o untruth_n of_o his_o former_a accusation_n and_o when_o i_o name_v twenty_o five_o or_o twenty_o six_o more_o council_n of_o bishop_n some_o general_n and_o some_o less_o which_o be_v for_o arianism_n or_o a_o compliance_n with_o they_o he_o defend_v none_o of_o they_o but_o excuse_v they_o and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o much_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o evil_a edict_n and_o consequence_n of_o they_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v charge_v on_o the_o arian_n emperor_n than_o the_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o this_o be_v the_o same_o man_n that_o elsewhere_o so_o overdo_v i_o in_o accuse_v the_o arian_n 2._o the_o emperor_n be_v erroneous_a but_o say_v to_o be_v otherwise_o very_o commendable_a and_o be_v it_o not_o more_o culpable_a for_o bishop_n to_o err_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o divinity_n than_o a_o layman_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o to_o err_v than_o for_o one_o man_n and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o bishop_n err_v do_v not_o more_o to_o seduce_v the_o flock_n than_o the_o emperor_n but_o he_o say_v that_o if_o many_o fall_v in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n they_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v pity_v than_o insult_v over_o for_o we_o have_v all_o the_o same_o infirmity_n etc._n etc._n answ_n i_o write_v in_o pity_n of_o they_o and_o the_o church_n without_o any_o insult_a purpose_n if_o any_o now_o to_o avoid_v lie_v in_o prison_n and_o starve_v their_o family_n by_o famine_n shall_v surrender_v their_o conscience_n to_o sinful_a subscription_n after_o a_o siege_n of_o nineteen_o year_n i_o shall_v pity_v they_o and_o not_o insult_v over_o they_o nay_o if_o i_o speak_v of_o those_o that_o lay_v the_o siege_n and_o call_v out_o for_o more_o execution_n i_o do_v it_o not_o insult_o but_o with_o a_o grieve_a heart_n for_o the_o church_n and_o they_o but_o when_o i_o large_o recite_v hillary_n word_n of_o they_o he_o say_v the_o account_n be_v very_o sad_a and_o what_o say_v i_o more_o but_o say_v he_o yet_o such_o as_o show_v rather_o the_o calamity_n than_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o bishop_n answ_n nay_o then_o no_o doubt_n it_o be_v no_o fault_n to_o conform_v hillary_n then_o and_o all_o that_o keep_v their_o ground_n be_v in_o a_o great_a fault_n for_o so_o heavy_o accuse_v they_o and_o so_o the_o world_n turn_v arian_n in_o show_n as_o hierom_n and_o hillary_n speak_v be_v much_o acquit_v and_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v the_o faulty_a railer_n for_o accuse_v they_o it_o have_v be_v enough_o to_o say_v it_o be_v no_o crime_n but_o to_o say_v no_o fault_n be_v too_o gentle_a for_o the_o same_o man_n that_o so_o talk_v of_o perjure_a arian_n before_o §_o 15._o yet_o because_o he_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v most_o by_o far_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n even_o in_o council_n he_o of_o rome_n not_o except_v that_o thus_o fall_v he_o must_v show_v how_o it_o offend_v he_o to_o be_v force_v to_o it_o by_o tell_v the_o world_n how_o contentious_a i_o have_v be_v against_o all_o sort_n and_o sect_n the_o first_o be_v false_a and_o he_o know_v it_o i_o think_v and_o the_o latter_a be_v true_a formal_o of_o a_o sect_n as_o such_o even_o his_o own_o sect._n and_o some_o judge_v i_o such_o a_o stranger_n to_o peace_n as_o to_o need_v a_o moderator_n to_o stand_v between_o i_o and_o the_o contradiction_n of_o my_o own_o book_n answ_n yes_o the_o bishop_n advocate_n roger_n l'estrange_n where_o nothing_o but_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o malice_n or_o negligence_n can_v have_v find_v contradiction_n be_v the_o whole_a place_n peruse_v and_o where_o i_o be_o sure_a myself_o that_o there_o be_v none_o i_o have_v somewhat_o else_o to_o do_v than_o to_o write_v more_o to_o show_v the_o calumny_n of_o such_o reader_n who_o most_o seek_v peace_n you_o or_o those_o that_o you_o prosecute_v one_o will_v think_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v hard_a to_o know_v if_o man_n be_v willing_a chap._n xx._n of_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o constantinople_n his_o cap._n 4._o §_o 1._o he_o begin_v with_o accuse_v i_o of_o imitate_v the_o devil_n do_v job_n serve_v god_n
for_o nought_o because_o i_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o west_n be_v free_a from_o the_o arian_n heresy_n than_o the_o east_n be_v not_o as_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o christ_n pray_v for_o peter_n that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v but_o because_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o west_n be_v orthodox_n and_o those_o in_o the_o east_n arian_n and_o the_o bishop_n much_o follow_v the_o emperor_n will_n what_o say_v he_o can_v be_v more_o unchristian_a answ_n 1._o i_o never_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n 2._o i_o prove_v that_o this_o privilege_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n prayer_n 3._o be_v not_o this_o the_o same_o man_n that_o even_o now_o ●●id_v the_o fall_n of_o far_o more_o bishop_n even_o most_o in_o the_o world_n on_o the_o emperor_n as_o overcome_v they_o by_o force_n and_o fraud_n 4._o do_v not_o god_n himself_o keep_v man_n usual_o from_o strong_a temptation_n when_o he_o will_v deliver_v they_o from_o sin_n 5._o be_v not_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n and_o the_o western_a of_o the_o same_o mould_n and_o temper_n and_o if_o the_o eastern_a follow_v the_o emperor_n have_v not_o the_o western_a be_v in_o danger_n if_o they_o have_v the_o like_a temptation_n 6._o do_v not_o basil_n that_o send_v to_o they_o for_o help_v complain_v of_o they_o as_o proud_a and_o no_o better_a than_o their_o brethren_n 7._o do_v not_o marcellinus_n fall_v to_o idolatry_n and_o liberius_n to_o subscribe_v against_o athanasius_n with_o the_o arian_n 8._o do_v not_o the_o west_n actual_o fall_v to_o arianism_n when_o tempt_v for_o the_o most_o part_n judge_n by_o the_o great_a council_n at_o milane_n and_o by_o hillary_n complaint_n 9_o have_v rome_n and_o the_o west_n stand_v fast_o to_o the_o truth_n since_o then_o what!_o all_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v by_o council_n charge_v with_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n and_o all_o wickedness_n and_o those_o many_o who_o life_n even_o by_o baronius_n and_o genebrard_n be_v so_o odious_o describe_v be_v the_o west_n at_o this_o day_n free_a from_o popery_n and_o its_o fruit_n 10._o do_v you_o think_v in_o your_o conscience_n that_o if_o we_o have_v not_o here_o a_o protestant_a king_n but_o a_o papist_n many_o of_o the_o clergy_n will_v not_o be_v papist_n why_o then_o be_v they_o so_o in_o france_n spain_n italy_n poland_n &_o c_o and_o why_o do_v the_o most_o of_o they_o turn_v in_o qu._n mary_n day_n i_o do_v not_o insult_v but_o lament_v the_o church_n case_n which_o ever_o since_o wealth_n and_o honour_n and_o too_o much_o power_n corrupt_v it_o have_v have_v bishop_n far_o more_o worldly_a and_o less_o faithful_a than_o they_o be_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n though_o i_o still_o say_v that_o ever_o since_o god_n have_v in_o all_o time_n raise_v some_o serious_a believer_n that_o have_v keep_v up_o serious_a piety_n in_o the_o church_n and_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v so_o many_o such_o among_o the_o conformist_n as_o be_v our_o great_a joy_n so_o i_o hope_v that_o though_o foul_o blot_v with_o superstition_n and_o error_n there_o be_v many_o such_o among_o the_o papist_n themselves_o §_o 2._o yet_o he_o say_v i_o do_v the_o bishop_n right_o again_o without_o think_v of_o do_v they_o justice_n while_o i_o tell_v how_o many_o be_v murder_v answ_n 1._o do_v he_o know_v my_o thought_n 2._o it_o be_v true_a i_o intend_v not_o to_o do_v any_o other_o justice_n than_o to_o praise_v christ_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n while_o i_o lament_v the_o case_n of_o persecutor_n and_o revolter_n be_v the_o praise_n of_o confessor_n any_o honour_n to_o the_o heretic_n but_o perhaps_o he_o mean_v i_o right_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n answ_n do_v i_o ever_o say_v or_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n that_o keep_v the_o faith_n do_v i_o say_v all_o fell_a when_o i_o say_v most_o fell_a the_o man_n speak_v as_o his_o imagine_a interest_n lead_v he_o and_o so_o interprete_v my_o word_n to_o his_o own_o sense_n not_o as_o write_v and_o if_o that_o be_v the_o right_a way_n i_o think_v he_o will_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v more_o martyr_n and_o sufferer_n under_o valens_n constantius_n hunnericus_n and_o gensericus_fw-la in_o the_o east_n and_o in_o africa_n by_o far_o than_o be_v when_o their_o trial_n come_v in_o all_o the_o west_n that_o be_v now_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o what_o move_v the_o man_n to_o dream_v that_o when_o i_o so_o describe_v and_o praise_v their_o constancy_n in_o suffer_v i_o do_v it_o as_o at_o unaware_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v arian_n i_o will_v not_o offer_v by_o testimony_n to_o prove_v when_o it_o be_v so_o common_o by_o father_n historian_n by_o papist_n and_o protestant_n agree_v on_o how_o many_o of_o they_o be_v bishop_n before_o and_o how_o many_o but_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n i_o will_v not_o pretend_v to_o number_v the_o turn_n of_o multitude_n all_o agree_v on_o the_o constancy_n of_o many_o he_o false_o intimate_v that_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v i_o injurious_o represent_v they_o and_o can_v tell_v a_o word_n wherein_o that_o crime_n be_v find_v §_o 3._o name_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o council_n at_o constantinople_n i_o mention_v both_o the_o set_n up_o and_o after_o the_o put_v down_o of_o gregory_n &_o lest_o any_o caviller_n shall_v carp_v at_o the_o word_n put_v down_o i_o present_o open_v particular_o what_o it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v towards_o it_o that_o resolve_v on_o his_o deposition_n they_o cause_v he_o though_o unwilling_a rather_o to_o give_v it_o up_o than_o stay_v till_o they_o cast_v he_o out_o this_o great_a historian_n have_v no_o more_o manlike_a a_o exception_n here_o than_o to_o say_v that_o against_o all_o history_n and_o against_o my_o own_o explication_n i_o say_v that_o they_o depose_v he_o i_o say_v they_o put_v he_o down_o in_o the_o manner_n and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o explain_v §_o 4._o while_o he_o here_o himself_o accuse_v the_o time_n then_o of_o general_a corruption_n and_o the_o church_n of_o division_n add_v what_o age_n have_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o not_o to_o labour_v under_o those_o evil_n he_o accuse_v i_o of_o make_v misuse_n of_o gregory_n word_n to_o represent_v the_o council_n in_o a_o odious_a manner_n answ_n it_o be_v to_o represent_v the_o worse_a part_n in_o a_o lamentable_a manner_n as_o far_o as_o gregory_n do_v and_o no_o further_o and_o as_o to_o his_o quarrel_n at_o my_o citation_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o but_o if_o the_o reader_n will_v but_o read_v gregory_n own_o word_n i_o willing_o leave_v all_o that_o cause_n to_o his_o judgement_n if_o he_o will_v not_o my_o word_n can_v inform_v he_o yet_o he_o himself_o say_v he_o do_v indeed_o in_o several_a place_n find_v fault_n with_o this_o council_n and_o can_v you_o forgive_v he_o i_o think_v i_o find_v no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v but_o for_o this_o you_o find_v fault_n with_o he_o he_o do_v resent_v the_o injury_n and_o be_v it_o a_o injury_n and_o do_v not_o bear_v the_o deprivation_n of_o his_o bishopric_n with_o the_o same_o generosity_n he_o propose_v which_o make_v he_o a_o little_a more_o sharp_a than_o be_v decent_a in_o his_o representation_n of_o the_o bishop_n what_o wonder_v if_o sharpen_v with_o discontent_n he_o exclaim_v with_o somewhat_o too_o great_a a_o passion_n against_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v be_v force_v to_o quit_v ans_fw-fr all_o will_v be_v confess_v anon_o when_o i_o have_v be_v accuse_v for_o say_v it_o before_o he_o that_o be_v his_o way_n but_o it_o be_v not_o for_o leave_v a_o high_a and_o fat_a bishopric_n that_o he_o be_v grieve_v but_o for_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o people_n that_o he_o have_v partly_o serve_v in_o their_o low_a state_n and_o partly_o win_v from_o heresy_n and_o who_o come_v about_o he_o with_o tear_n entreat_v he_o not_o to_o forsake_v they_o and_o though_o it_o be_v morethan_fw-ge generosity_n to_o set_a light_n by_o the_o honour_n and_o wealth_n it_o be_v treachery_n to_o set_v light_n by_o soul_n and_o they_o change_v to_o their_o great_a loss_n he_o resign_v much_o to_o quiet_a the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v do_v as_o they_o do_v for_o chrysostom_n after_o he_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o the_o major_a vote_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o envy_n those_o few_o that_o be_v better_a and_o more_o esteem_v than_o themselves_o nor_o yet_o for_o the_o godly_a people_n to_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v such_o pastor_n §_o 5._o he_o say_v his_o censure_n of_o council_n that_o he_o know_v none_o of_o they_o that_o have_v any_o happy_a end_n be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o expedient_a but_o of_o
the_o man_n ans_fw-fr and_o what_o do_v i_o ever_o say_v more_o it_o be_v his_o custom_n when_o he_o have_v storm_v at_o i_o to_o say_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o that_o he_o storm_v at_o some_o papist_n will_v persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v only_a arian_n council_n that_o he_o mean_v but_o most_o protestant_n that_o write_v about_o council_n against_o they_o do_v cite_v &_o vindicate_v these_o word_n of_o gregory_n and_o the_o impartial_a papist_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o council_n also_o of_o the_o catholic_n that_o there_o and_o else_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o §_o 6._o in_o the_o case_n of_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n two_o bishop_n in_o a_o city_n and_o the_o case_n of_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n make_v a_o heretic_n for_o separate_v from_o lapse_v arian_n he_o say_v over_o the_o same_o that_o i_o do_v that_o good_a man_n can_v right_o understand_v one_o another_o and_o so_o it_o ever_o have_v be_v and_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o humane_a frailty_n and_o not_o episcopacy_n in_o all_o this_o i_o agree_v but_o 1._o if_o humane_a frailty_n make_v bishop_n swell_v in_o pride_n and_o ambition_n and_o domineer_a it_o have_v far_o worse_a effect_n than_o in_o other_o man_n 2._o and_o bishop_n be_v bind_v to_o excel_v their_o flock_n in_o piety_n humility_n selfdenyal_n peaceableness_n as_o well_o as_o in_o knowledge_n if_o the_o physician_n of_o this_o city_n shall_v prove_v unskilful_a and_o yet_o confident_a where_o they_o err_v it_o be_v not_o quatenus_fw-la physician_n that_o they_o be_v such_o but_o if_o it_o be_v qui_fw-fr physician_n that_o be_v such_o they_o may_v kill_v thousand_o while_o the_o same_o fault_n in_o all_o their_o neighbour_n may_v kill_v few_o or_o none_o if_o your_o interest_n make_v you_o not_o smart_a and_o angry_a without_o cause_n you_o will_v not_o cavil_v against_o such_o plain_a truth_n §_o 7._o about_o the_o priscillianist_n he_o say_v i_o all_o along_o observe_v this_o rule_n to_o be_v very_o favourable_a to_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v they_o never_o so_o much_o in_o the_o wrong_n and_o to_o fall_v on_o the_o orthodox_n party_n and_o improve_v every_o miscarriage_n of_o they_o into_o a_o mighty_a crime_n ans_fw-fr if_o all_o along_o this_o accusation_n be_v false_a than_o all_o a_o long_a your_o history_n serve_v such_o a_o use_n but_o in_o france_n spain_n italy_n he_o be_v favourable_a to_o heretic_n that_o take_v not_o the_o orthodox_n for_o such_o or_o that_o be_v not_o for_o rack_a and_o burn_v they_o and_o in_o england_n he_o be_v favourable_a to_o schismatic_n that_o take_v not_o the_o great_a lover_n of_o piety_n and_o peace_n for_o such_o and_o the_o church_n tearer_n for_o church-healers_a as_o mr._n dodwell_n phrase_v it_o they_o be_v schismatic_n that_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v excommunicate_a for_o unsinful_a thing_n in_o the_o bishop_n account_n and_o heinous_a sin_n in_o they_o and_o so_o that_o be_v not_o so_o ripe_a in_o knowledge_n as_o to_o know_v all_o the_o unsinful_a thing_n to_o be_v such_o which_o may_v be_v impose_v §_o 8._o what_o will_v this_o enemy_n of_o rail_v have_v have_v i_o say_v more_o than_o i_o do_v of_o the_o priscillianist_n viz._n that_o they_o be_v gnostic_n and_o manichee_n be_v not_o that_o bad_a enough_o no_o i_o favour_v they_o still_o and_o what_o say_v i_o more_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a cause_n than_o sulpitius_n severus_n the_o full_a and_o most_o know_a describer_n say_v why_o do_v he_o not_o accuse_v he_o for_o the_o same_o description_n yea_o and_o their_o mr._n ri._n hooker_n who_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o eccl._n pol._n say_v of_o ithacius_n the_o like_a yea_o baronius_n himself_o consent_v where_o i_o say_v that_o to_o the_o death_n martin_n separate_v from_o the_o synod_n of_o these_o bishop_n i_o say_v not_o from_o all_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n he_o say_v he_o renounce_v only_o the_o communion_n of_o ithacius_n his_o party_n and_o that_o other_o do_v as_o well_o as_o he_o reader_n it_o will_v be_v thy_o folly_n to_o take_v either_o his_o word_n or_o i_o what_o a_o author_n say_v when_o we_o differ_v without_o look_v into_o the_o book_n itself_o read_v sulpitius_n severus_n i_o will_v transcribe_v some_o word_n lest_o he_o say_v i_o mistranslate_v they_o priscillianus_n familia_fw-la nobilis_fw-la praedives_fw-la opibus_fw-la acer_fw-la inquies_fw-la facundus_fw-la multa_fw-la lectione_n eruditus_fw-la disserendi_fw-la &_o disputandi_fw-la promptissimus_fw-la vigilare_fw-la multum_fw-la famem_fw-la &_o sitim_fw-la far_o poterat_fw-la habendi_fw-la minime_fw-la cupidus_fw-la utendi_fw-la parcissimus_fw-la be_v it_o a_o crime_n to_o say_v so_o much_o good_a of_o he_o but_o proud_a of_o his_o learning_n set_v up_o a_o heresy_n and_o two_o bishop_n instantius_fw-la and_o salvianus_n join_v with_o he_o and_o make_v he_o a_o bishop_n at_o caesar_n augusta_n one_o synod_n be_v gather_v against_o he_o the_o story_n i_o before_o recite_v next_o a_o synod_n at_o bordeaux_n try_v they_o say_v sulpitius_n ac_fw-la mea_fw-la quidem_fw-la sententia_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la tam_fw-la reos_fw-la quam_fw-la accusatores_fw-la displicere_fw-la certain_o ithacium_n nihil_fw-la pensi_fw-la nihil_fw-la sancti_fw-la habuisse_fw-la definio_fw-la suis_fw-la enim_fw-la audax_fw-la loquax_fw-la impudens_fw-la sumptuosus_fw-la ventri_fw-la &_o gulae_fw-la plurimum_fw-la impertiens_fw-la hic_fw-la stultitiae_fw-la eo_fw-la usque_fw-la processerat_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la etiam_fw-la sanctos_fw-la viros_fw-la quibus_fw-la aut_fw-la studium_fw-la erat_fw-la lectionis_fw-la aut_fw-la propositum_fw-la erat_fw-la certare_fw-la jejuniis_fw-la tanquam_fw-la priscilliani_n socios_fw-la aut_fw-la discipulos_fw-la in_o crimen_fw-la arcesseret_fw-la ausus_fw-la etiam_fw-la miser_n est_fw-la ea_fw-la tempestate_fw-la martino_n episcopo_fw-la palam_fw-la objectare_fw-la haeresis_fw-la infamiam_fw-la imperator_fw-la per_fw-la magnum_fw-la &_o ru●um_fw-la episcopos_fw-la depravatus_fw-la à_fw-la mitioribus_fw-la consiliis_fw-la deflexus_fw-la so_o he_o tell_v how_o many_o be_v put_v to_o death_n caeterum_fw-la priscilliano_n occiso_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la non_fw-la repressa_fw-la est_fw-la haeresis_fw-la sed_fw-la confirmata_fw-la latius_fw-la propagata_fw-la est_fw-la namque_fw-la sectatores_fw-la ejus_fw-la qui_fw-la eum_fw-la prius_fw-la ut_fw-la sanctum_fw-la honoraverant_a postea_fw-la ut_fw-la martyrem_fw-la colere_fw-la c●p●runt_fw-la ac_fw-la inter_fw-la nostros_fw-la perpetuum_fw-la discordiarum_fw-la bellum_fw-la exarserat_fw-la quod_fw-la jam_fw-la per_fw-la quind●●im_fw-la annos_fw-la ●oedis_fw-la dissensionibus_fw-la agitatum_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la sopiri_fw-la poterat_fw-la et_fw-la nunc_fw-la cum_fw-la maxim_n discordiis_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la turbari_fw-la aut_fw-la misceri_fw-la omne_fw-la ce●nerentur_fw-la cunctaque_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la odio_fw-la aut_fw-la gratia_fw-la metu_fw-la inconstantia_fw-la inuidia_fw-la factione_n libidine_fw-la avaritia_fw-la arrogantia_fw-la somno_fw-la desidia_fw-la essent_fw-la depravata_fw-la postremo_fw-la plures_fw-la adversus_fw-la paucos_fw-la bene_fw-la consulentes_fw-la insan●s_fw-la consiliis_fw-la &_o pertinacibus_fw-la studiis_fw-la certarent_fw-la inter_fw-la haec_fw-la plebs_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o optimus_fw-la cuique_fw-la probro_fw-la atque_fw-la ludibrio_fw-la habebatur_fw-la so_o end_v sulpitius_n history_n do_v you_o not_o see_v mr._n morrice_n that_o there_o have_v be_v prelate_n and_o puritan_n even_o episcopal_a puritan_n before_o our_o time_n do_v not_o your_o stomach_n rise_v against_o sulpitius_n as_o too_o puritanical_a and_o severe_a be_v not_o my_o language_n of_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n soft_a in_o comparison_n of_o he_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o early_o as_o to_o live_v in_o that_o which_o you_o now_o call_v the_o most_o flourish_a time_n of_o the_o church_n sir_n i_o hate_v discord_n and_o love_v peace_n but_o i_o never_o look_v that_o the_o enmity_n between_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n seed_n or_o cain_n and_o abel_n shall_v be_v end_v or_o that_o the_o holy_a title_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v reconcile_v ungodly_a man_n to_o saint_n sir_n england_n know_v that_o though_o some_o factious_a person_n have_v do_v otherwise_o the_o main_a body_n of_o those_o that_o your_o law_n do_v silence_n ruin_n and_o revile_v have_v a_o high_a esteem_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o have_v be_v serious_o godly_a such_o as_o be_v many_o in_o ancient_n and_o late_a time_n and_o deride_v it_o as_o long_o as_o you_o will_v the_o serious_o religious_a people_n in_o england_n be_v they_o that_o be_v most_o against_o church-tyranny_n and_o which_o party_n most_o of_o the_o debauch_a and_o profane_a be_v of_o have_v long_o be_v know_v §_o 9_o but_o the_o reader_n shall_v further_o hear_v how_o little_a you_o be_v to_o be_v trust_v say_v sul._n in_o vita_fw-la mart._n apud_fw-la nemausium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la synodus_fw-la habebatur_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la quidem_fw-la ire_n noluerat_fw-la there_o be_v another_o synod_n et_fw-fr pag._n 584._o in_o mon._n pat._n maximus_fw-la imperator_fw-la aliâs_fw-la vir_fw-la bone_fw-la depravatus_fw-la consiliis_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la post_fw-la priscilliani_n necem_fw-la ithacium_n episcopum_fw-la priscilliani_n accusatorem_fw-la caeterosque_fw-la illius_fw-la socios_fw-la quos_fw-la nominare_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la necesse_fw-la
of_o albemarle_n to_o expect_v to_o be_v at_o last_o call_v to_o account_v for_o his_o original_a sin_n §_o 11._o but_o his_o passion_n make_v he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o p._n 142_o i_o need_v not_o call_v mr._n b._n to_o remembrance_n who_o compare_v cromwell_n to_o david_n and_o his_o son_n to_o solomon_n but_o this_o have_v transport_v i_o a_o little_a too_o far_o ans_fw-fr he_o say_v this_o plain_o of_o i_o afterward_o to_o show_v the_o credibility_n of_o his_o history_n do_v he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a if_o so_o there_o be_v no_o dispute_v with_o he_o if_o not_o why_o do_v he_o not_o cite_v my_o word_n yea_o he_o after_o transcribe_v the_o epistle_n mean_v where_o he_o see_v there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n but_o other_o have_v tell_v that_o tale_n before_o he_o and_o that_o be_v enough_o even_o as_o one_o of_o his_o tribe_n have_v write_v that_o i_o have_v write_v in_o my_o holy_a commonwealth_n that_o any_o one_o peer_n may_v judge_v the_o king_n if_o these_o episcopal_a historian_n tell_v foreigner_n that_o we_o have_v all_o cleave_a foot_n and_o horn_n and_o go_v on_o four_o leg_n yea_o and_o if_o some_o swear_v it_o we_o have_v no_o remedy_n they_o can_v prove_v our_o nose_n horn_n and_o our_o hand_n foot_n i_o again_o tell_v they_o if_o martin_n angel_n and_o miracle_n be_v credible_a woe_n to_o those_o prelatist_n that_o be_v for_o ruine_v violence_n and_o silence_n against_o man_n better_o than_o the_o gnostic_n if_o they_o be_v not_o true_a let_v they_o not_o trust_v too_o much_o to_o the_o best_a historian_n §_o 12._o of_o the_o council_n at_o capua_n i_o say_v that_o they_o decree_v that_o the_o two_o bishop_n and_o their_o people_n shall_v live_v in_o love_a communion_n mr._n m._n find_v i_o mistake_v here_o the_o word_n in_o binnius_n be_v ut_fw-la tam_fw-la flaviani_n quam_fw-la evagrii_fw-la fautores_fw-la in_o communionem_fw-la catholicam_fw-la admittantur_fw-la modo_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la assertores_fw-la inveniantur_fw-la i_o think_v catholic_n communion_n have_v be_v love_v communion_n and_o i_o think_v if_o their_o fautor_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v so_o be_v they_o and_o i_o think_v antioch_n have_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o catholic_n communion_n have_v extend_v to_o antioch_n but_o if_o mr._n m._n deny_v these_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v with_o he_o §_o 13._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o no_o man_n with_o his_o eye_n open_v ever_o see_v the_o condemnation_n of_o bonosus_n by_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n for_o deny_v the_o virgin_n mary_n perpetual_a virginity_n answ_n it_o be_v criticism_n and_o not_o history_n that_o the_o man_n be_v best_a at_o they_o do_v it_o mediate_o while_o they_o refer_v it_o to_o they_o that_o do_v it_o say_v binnius_n causa_fw-la bonosi_n cujusdam_fw-la in_o macedonia_n episcopi_fw-la haeretici_fw-la negantis_fw-la delibatam_fw-la dei_fw-la genitricis_fw-la mariae_fw-la virginitatem_fw-la post_fw-la partum_fw-la in_o judicium_fw-la deducta_fw-la est_fw-la synodus_fw-la cognitionem_fw-la causae_fw-la anysio_fw-la thessaloniensi_fw-la cum_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ipsi_fw-la subjectis_fw-la aelegavit_fw-la ab_fw-la anysio_fw-la bonosum_fw-la damnatum_fw-la eorumque_fw-la quos_fw-la ordinasset_fw-la communione_fw-la privatum_fw-la esse_fw-la testatur_fw-la innoc._n p._n and_o he_o know_v its_o a_o heresy_n now_o yet_o this_o council_n condemn_v reordination_n §_o 14._o that_o jovinian_a a_o monk_n be_v call_v a_o heretic_n for_o doctrine_n judge_v sound_a by_o protestant_n be_v no_o strange_a thing_n that_o one_o not_o a_o bishop_n be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o heresy_n be_v somewhat_o strange_a then_o but_o not_o before_o they_o get_v too_o high_a as_o to_o the_o question_n whether_o bishop_n be_v the_o chief_a head_n and_o fomenter_n of_o heresy_n i_o crave_v his_o impartial_a answer_n to_o these_o question_n 1._o do_v not_o yourselves_o maintain_v that_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n have_v bishop_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o ruler_n and_o of_o chief_a power_n if_o so_o can_v you_o imagine_v that_o after_o they_o have_v such_o power_n church_n can_v be_v usual_o make_v heretic_n without_o they_o q._n 2._o do_v not_o council_n and_o all_o church-history_n tell_v we_o how_o many_o council_n of_o heretic_n there_o have_v be_v that_o be_v bishop_n q._n 3._o if_o any_o presbyter_n break_v from_o his_o bishop_n to_o set_v up_o a_o heresy_n be_v it_o not_o one_o that_o seek_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o do_v they_o not_o make_v present_o he_o or_o some_o other_o their_o bishop_n and_o head_n heresy_n or_o popery_n have_v make_v but_o small_a progress_n have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o bishop_n §_o 15._o when_o i_o commend_v the_o novatian_o canon_n which_o allow_v all_o man_n liberty_n for_o the_o time_n of_o easter_n as_o better_a than_o burn_a man_n as_o heretic_n he_o take_v it_o for_o a_o immoderate_a transport_n that_o i_o say_v as_o loud_o as_o i_o can_v speak_v if_o all_o the_o proud_a ambitious_a hereticate_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v of_o this_o mind_n o_o what_o sin_n what_o scandal_n and_o what_o shame_n what_o cruelty_n confusion_n and_o misery_n have_v the_o christian_a world_n escape_v that_o be_v have_v they_o leave_v such_o indifferent_a thing_n as_o indifferent_a and_o be_v this_o against_o moderation_n i_o will_v such_o zeal_n of_o god_n house_n have_v more_o eat_v i_o up_o dare_v you_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o course_n will_v have_v save_v the_o life_n of_o all_o those_o thousand_o of_o albigenses_n waldenses_n and_o bohemian_n that_o the_o papist_n kill_v and_o the_o death_n and_o torment_n of_o multitude_n by_o the_o inquisition_n and_o the_o burn_a of_o our_o smithfield_n martyr_n and_o it_o be_v like_o most_o of_o the_o war_n between_o the_o old_a pope_n and_o emperor_n about_o investiture_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o thousand_o more_o and_o it_o will_v have_v save_v more_o nation_n than_o we_o from_o the_o tear_v and_o division_n of_o church_n by_o the_o eject_v and_o silence_v of_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o of_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o case_n of_o the_o german_a interim_n and_o other_o such_o action_n prove_v and_o be_v it_o immoderate_a transport_v to_o wish_v all_o this_o blood_n schism_n hatred_n and_o confusion_n and_o weaken_v and_o shame_v of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v prevent_v at_o the_o rate_n of_o tolerate_v indifferent_a thing_n no_o wonder_n if_o you_o have_v rather_o england_n still_o suffer_v what_o it_o do_v and_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o by_o schism_n than_o such_o thing_n indifferent_a shall_v be_v tolerate_v it_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o that_o christ_n and_o paul_n repeat_v that_o some_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o ear_n and_o hear_v not_o etc._n etc._n §_o 16._o and_o here_o he_o again_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n think_v its_o true_a that_o the_o nonconformist_n pretend_v that_o their_o silence_v be_v for_o not_o keep_v easter_n day_n at_o the_o due_a time_n as_o if_o this_o man_n that_o live_v among_o we_o do_v not_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o avoid_n of_o deliberate_a lie_v by_o subscribe_v to_o a_o know_a untruth_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o refuse_v and_o they_o mention_v it_o only_o as_o a_o appurtenance_n of_o the_o imposition_n ad_fw-la homines_fw-la that_o it_o will_v bind_v they_o to_o two_o different_a time_n whether_o as_o he_o say_v our_o disease_n be_v a_o wantonness_n sed_fw-la by_o concession_n and_o we_o be_v most_o violent_a when_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o will_v have_v those_o man_n be_v no_o credible_a judge_n that_o for_o seventeen_o year_n will_v not_o endure_v we_o to_o speak_v out_o our_o case_n and_o when_o before_o we_o debate_v part_n of_o it_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o answer_v we_o and_o at_o last_o when_o we_o tell_v it_o they_o do_v but_o accuse_v we_o with_o a_o sharp_a storm_n instead_o of_o give_v any_o thing_n that_o a_o man_n can_v call_v a_o answer_n that_o ever_o know_v the_o case_n e._n g._n to_o our_o plea_n for_o peace_n and_o my_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n §_o 17._o he_o confess_v that_o i_o praise_v the_o african_a bishop_n as_o the_o best_a in_o the_o world_n though_o it_o contradict_v his_o former_a charge_n as_o to_o the_o magnitude_n of_o diocese_n when_o he_o have_v answer_v my_o treat_n of_o episcopacy_n some_o body_n may_v be_v edify_v by_o he_o i_o agree_v with_o he_o that_o good_a man_n will_v do_v much_o good_a in_o a_o great_a diocese_n but_o 1._o worldly_n bishop_n be_v so_o far_o bad_a and_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o honour_n will_v ever_o be_v most_o seek_v by_o the_o most_o worldly_a man_n and_o usual_o he_o that_o seek_v shall_v find_v ergo_fw-la and_o 2._o a_o good_a man_n can_v do_v impossibility_n the_o best_a can_v do_v the_o work_n of_o many_o hundred_o forty_o two_o year_n ago_o some_o wish_v for_o the_o restore_a of_o confession_n theophilus_n
parochialis_fw-la bring_v copious_a reason_n and_o order_n of_o prince_n pope_n and_o prelate_n that_o all_o shall_v confess_v to_o the_o parish-priest_n if_o you_o have_v set_v this_o up_o here_o how_o many_o man_n must_v have_v go_v to_o it_o in_o the_o parish_n of_o st._n martin_n giles_n cripplegate_n stepney_n &c_n &c_n but_o how_o much_o great_a work_n have_v dr._n hammond_n and_o old_a council_n cut_v out_o for_o he_o that_o will_v be_v the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o many_o hundred_o parish_n i_o have_v name_v it_o elsewhere_o and_o if_o any_o man_n of_o consideration_n think_v i_o have_v not_o prove_v against_o mr._n dodwell_n that_o bishop_n government_n be_v not_o like_o a_o king_n be_v who_o may_v make_v what_o officer_n under_o he_o he_o please_v but_o depend_v more_o as_o a_o physician_n be_v or_o schoolmaster_n on_o personal_a ability_n i_o will_v now_o add_v but_o this_o question_n to_o he_o why_o be_v it_o that_o monarchy_n may_v be_v hereditary_a and_o a_o child_n or_o infant_n may_v be_v king_n but_o a_o infant_n may_v not_o be_v bishop_n nor_o any_o one_o not_o qualify_v with_o essential_a ability_n i_o have_v at_o large_a tell_v you_o how_o sharp_o baronius_n and_o binnius_n condemn_v that_o odious_a nullity_n of_o make_v a_o child_n by_o his_o father_n power_n a._n bishop_n of_o rheims_n if_o i_o hear_v twenty_o man_n say_v and_o swear_v that_o one_o man_n be_v sufficient_a to_o be_v the_o only_a master_n of_o many_o hundred_o school_n or_o physician_n to_o many_o hundred_o hospital_n or_o that_o one_o carpenter_n or_o mason_n may_v alone_o build_v and_o rear_v all_o the_o house_n in_o the_o city_n after_o the_o fire_n or_o one_o man_n be_v the_o sole_a master_n of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o family_n what_o can_v i_o say_v to_o he_o but_o that_o he_o never_o try_v or_o know_v the_o work_n §_o 18._o when_o i_o note_v that_o the_o donatist_n take_v themselves_o for_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o adversary_n for_o schismatic_n because_o they_o be_v the_o great_a number_n he_o very_o honest_o say_v that_o multitude_n may_v render_v a_o sect_n formidable_a but_o it_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o right_n very_o true_a nor_o secular_a power_n neither_o but_o what_o better_a argument_n have_v the_o papist_n and_o many_o other_o that_o talk_v against_o schism_n §_o 19_o he_o think_v the_o donatists_n bishop_n church_n be_v not_o so_o small_a as_o our_o parish_n answ_n not_o as_o some_o but_o if_o as_o i_o say_v before_o constantinople_n in_o the_o height_n of_o all_o its_o glory_n in_o chrysostom_n day_n have_v but_o 100000_o christian_n as_o many_o as_o three_o london_n parish_n have_v judge_v then_o what_o the_o donatist_n have_v §_o 20._o his_o double_a quarrel_n with_o binnius_n and_o baronius_n let_v who_o will_v mind_v what_o i_o gather_v out_o of_o those_o and_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o smallness_n of_o church_n then_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o make_v good_a his_o revile_v accusation_n of_o envy_n to_o their_o wealth_n deserve_v no_o answer_n §_o 21._o he_o come_v to_o st._n theophilus_n case_n of_o which_o we_o speak_v before_o the_o monk_n that_o report_v evil_a of_o he_o be_v it_o may_v be_v say_v he_o downright_a knave_n the_o revile_v be_v blameless_a when_o apply_v to_o such_o doubtless_o they_o be_v ignorant_a rash_a zealot_n but_o one_o that_o read_v what_o the_o egyptian_a monk_n be_v in_o anthony_n day_n and_o after_o and_o what_o miracle_n and_o holiness_n sulpitius_n severus_n report_v of_o they_o and_o why_o basil_n retire_v into_o his_o monastery_n etc._n etc._n may_v conjecture_v that_o they_o have_v much_o less_o worldliness_n than_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o great_a fault_n §_o 22._o i_o think_v it_o not_o desirable_a or_o pleasant_a work_n to_o vindicate_v the_o credit_n of_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n accuse_v theophilus_n but_o if_o his_o conjecture_n in_o this_o case_n may_v serve_v against_o express_a history_n of_o such_o man_n and_o so_o near_o let_v he_o leave_v other_o history_n as_o loose_v to_o our_o conjecture_n post●umianus_n narrative_n in_o sulpitius_n be_v but_o of_o one_o piece_n of_o the_o tragedy_n he_o think_v it_o improbable_a that_o origen_n shall_v be_v accuse_v for_o make_v god_n incorporeal_a and_o such_o conjecture_n be_v his_o consutation_n of_o history_n but_o origen_n have_v two_o sort_n of_o accuser_n the_o bishop_n such_o as_o theophilus_n and_o epiphanius_n have_v worse_a charge_n against_o he_o but_o the_o anthropomorphite_n monk_n be_v they_o that_o bring_v that_o charge_n against_o he_o that_o god_n have_v no_o face_n hands_z eye_n and_o theophilus_n before_o they_o cry_v down_o origen_n in_o general_a to_o save_v his_o life_n by_o deceive_v they_o that_o they_o may_v think_v he_o do_v it_o on_o the_o same_o account_n as_o they_o do_v this_o be_v socrates_n his_o report_n of_o the_o case_n he_o say_v that_o the_o impudent_a mutinous_a monk_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v all_o the_o world_n that_o all_o that_o be_v against_o they_o be_v anthropophites_n answ_n it_o be_v other_o monk_n that_o i_o here_o talk_v not_o of_o that_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v these_o monk_n that_o be_v anthropomorphites_n themselves_o and_o will_v have_v kill_v theophilus_n for_o not_o be_v so_o till_o he_o say_v to_o they_o methinks_v i_o see_v your_o face_n as_o the_o face_n of_o god_n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o face_n of_o god_n do_v quiet_v they_o hierom_n be_v a_o party_n against_o chrysostom_n it_o be_v for_o not_o pass_v that_o sentence_n on_o origen_n that_o epiphanius_n will_v by_o masterly_a usurpation_n have_v impose_v on_o he_o that_o chrysostom_n be_v by_o he_o accuse_v §_o 23._o can_v any_o sobriety_n excuse_v that_o man_n epiphanius_n that_o will_v come_v to_o the_o imperial_a city_n and_o there_o purposely_o intrude_v into_o the_o cathedral_n of_o one_o of_o the_o best_a bishop_n in_o the_o world_n for_o part_n and_o piety_n and_o there_o play_v the_o bishop_n over_o a_o a._n bishop_n in_o his_o own_o church_n and_o seek_v to_o set_v all_o the_o auditory_a in_o a_o flame_n at_o the_o time_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o require_v he_o to_o say_v that_o of_o origen_n which_o he_o there_o without_o any_o authority_n impose_v on_o he_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v pride_n usurpation_n turbulence_n if_o not_o malignity_n if_o this_o be_v not_o but_o at_o last_o he_o say_v i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o excuso_fw-la theophilus_n in_o this_o particular_a thank_v pope_n innocent_a he_o do_v certain_o prosecute_v his_o resentment_n too_o far_o but_o he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a man_n epiphanius_n a_o person_n of_o great_a holiness_n hierom_n and_o several_a other_o person_n renown_v for_o their_o piety_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o persecution_n of_o this_o great_a man_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n this_o be_v their_o weakness_n for_o that_o severity_n which_o give_v man_n general_o a_o reputation_n of_o holiness_n though_o it_o mortify_v some_o irregular_a heat_n yet_o be_v apt_a to_o dispose_v man_n to_o peevishness_n but_o true_a holiness_n ever_o sincere_o love_v holy_a man_n and_o special_o such_o as_o be_v public_a blessing_n to_o the_o church_n and_o though_o i_o censure_v not_o their_o main_a state_n your_o holy_a persecutor_n of_o the_o best_a of_o christ_n servant_n will_v never_o by_o christ_n be_v judge_v small_a offender_n alas_o its_o too_o true_a that_o theophilus_n be_v not_o alone_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n be_v the_o persecutor_n and_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o think_v that_o they_o love_v chrysostom_n as_o themselves_o when_o the_o forementioned_a council_n at_o constantinople_n have_v turn_v out_o nazianzen_n even_o the_o great_a magnifier_n of_o general_a council_n baronius_n and_o binnius_n thus_o reproach_v they_o that_o they_o drive_v away_o a_o holy_a excellent_a man_n that_o a_o man_n be_v set_v up_o in_o his_o stead_n that_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o it_o be_v the_o episcopi_fw-la nundinarii_fw-la that_o do_v it_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n first_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v away_o with_o gregory_n and_o if_o the_o major_a vote_n of_o that_o general_n council_n be_v episcopi_fw-la nundinarii_fw-la what_o ch●ysostom's_n persecutor_n be_v may_v be_v conjecture_v do_v not_o these_o papist_n here_o say_v worse_o of_o they_o than_o i_o do_v §_o 24._o yet_o though_o he_o confess_v as_o much_o as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o bring_v but_o his_o conjecture_n mix_v with_o palpable_a omission_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n he_o have_v the_o face_n to_o make_v up_o his_o fail_n with_o this_o calumny_n i_o have_v dwell_v so_o long_o on_o this_o not_o only_o to_o vindicate_v theophilus_n but_o to_o show_v once_o for_o all_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o author_n deal_n with_o his_o reader_n in_o his_o church-history_n any_o scandalous_a story_n though_o it_o be_v as_o false_a and_o improbable_a as_o
any_o in_o the_o anni_fw-la mirabiles_fw-la or_o whites_n century_n of_o scandalous_a minister_n any_o fiction_n that_o reflect_v with_o disgrace_n on_o bishop_n and_o council_n be_v set_v down_o for_o authentic_a no_o matter_n who_o deliver_v it_o friend_n or_o foe_n answ_n be_v not_o baronius_n and_o binnius_n friend_n to_o the_o high_a prelacy_n do_v not_o he_o himself_o say_v that_o socrates_n be_v a_o credible_a historian_n be_v his_o authority_n weighty_a enough_o to_o discredit_v they_o who_o he_o contradict_v have_v he_o prove_v one_o word_n false_a that_o i_o have_v say_v of_o theophilus_n be_v not_o chrysostom_n as_o credible_a as_o he_o do_v he_o not_o know_v how_o ill_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o chrysostom_n defender_n and_o how_o smart_o isidore_n pelusiota_n reflect_v on_o he_o but_o who_o can_v have_v disgrace_v he_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v imply_v that_o the_o thing_n mention_v of_o he_o be_v as_o true_a as_o what_o be_v say_v in_o white_n be_v century_n of_o scandalous_a minister_n or_o the_o anni_fw-la mirabiles_fw-la i_o know_v not_o all_o or_o most_o thing_n in_o either_o of_o they_o but_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n in_o england_n that_o have_v not_o credible_a testimony_n of_o divers_a of_o the_o thing_n in_o the_o anni_fw-la mirabiles_fw-la and_o mr._n white_n the_o chairman_n of_o that_o parliament-committee_n be_v common_o repute_v a_o grave_n and_o godly_a credible_a man_n and_o if_o he_o lie_v the_o whole_a committee_n must_v concur_v in_o the_o lie_n and_o the_o witness_n must_v all_o be_v false_a i_o will_v not_o further_o meddle_v in_o so_o unpleasant_a a_o business_n than_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o all_o that_o i_o know_v accuse_v of_o scandal_n have_v witness_n of_o it_o that_o in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v be_v think_v to_o make_v as_o much_o conscience_n of_o a_o lie_n as_o the_o best_a of_o their_o neighbour_n and_o whether_o such_o a_o man_n scorn_n that_o be_v then_o in_o the_o shell_n be_v in_o history_n a_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o committee_n of_o parliament_n and_o witness_n be_v all_o liar_n i_o leave_v to_o consideration_n i_o well_o know_v what_o schoolmaster_n and_o curate_n i_o be_v breed_v under_o and_o what_o the_o two_o minister_n be_v that_o be_v sequester_v in_o the_o place_n where_o i_o after_o come_v and_o all_o the_o country_n can_v tell_v you_o they_o constrain_v i_o to_o name_v they_o and_o the_o case_n in_o my_o apology_n for_o our_o preach_v and_o my_o answer_n to_o mr._n hinkley_n it_o be_v yet_o the_o same_o age_n any_o may_v inquire_v of_o they_o §_o 25._o as_o to_o his_o note_n of_o altar_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v at_o the_o memorial_n of_o martyr_n commemoratory_n altar_n erect_v in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o century_n but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o communicatory_a altar_n and_o those_o in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o century_n §_o 26._o i_o suppose_v he_o write_v against_o my_o book_n upon_o some_o other_o read_v i_o do_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n say_v innocent_a excommunicate_v theophilus_n arcadius_n and_o the_o empress_n and_o of_o another_o matter_n add_v yet_o do_v this_o pass_n without_o contradiction_n and_o he_o confound_v they_o and_o say_v any_o thing_n pass_v with_o he_o for_o history_n this_o epistle_n of_o innocent_a be_v all_o forge_a answ_n i_o see_v not_o his_o proof_n but_o i_o have_v rather_o it_o be_v prove_v false_a than_o true_a but_o when_o i_o speak_v against_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v the_o man_n never_o so_o good_a i_o think_v to_o such_o binnius_n and_o baronius_n be_v meet_a witness_n §_o 27._o boniface_n decree_n of_o exempt_n bishop_n from_o civil_a judicature_n he_o think_v not_o so_o ancient_a and_o say_v we_o have_v only_o the_o authority_n of_o gratian_n for_o it_o but_o his_o conjecture_n and_o a_o flirt_n at_o i_o be_v all_o the_o confutation_n and_o he_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o exemption_n have_v sufficient_o privilege_v bishop_n since_o then_o as_o be_v after_o prove_v chap._n xxi_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n etc._n etc._n his_o cap._n 5._o §_o 1._o our_o accuser_n in_o his_o five_o chapter_n pass_v by_o the_o just_a praise_n which_o i_o give_v to_o peaceable_a bishop_n as_o cross_v his_o slander_n that_o i_o dispraise_v all_o or_o such_o as_o well_o as_o the_o unpeaceable_a who_o justification_n it_o be_v that_o he_o undertake_v §_o 2._o he_o begin_v with_o a_o accusation_n that_o to_o prejudice_v the_o reader_n against_o cyril_n '_o s_o council_n i_o give_v the_o worst_a account_n of_o he_o that_o i_o can_v patch_v up_o out_o of_o all_o the_o libel_n and_o accusation_n of_o his_o enemy_n answ_n if_o by_o prejudice_n be_v mean_v inform_v he_o of_o history_n and_o by_o worst_a be_v mean_v impartial_a recitation_n of_o what_o history_n say_v and_o by_o patching_n up_o be_v mean_v such_o recite_v and_o by_o enemy_n be_v mean_v the_o best_a and_o most_o credible_a historian_n that_o have_v write_v of_o it_o than_o this_o be_v true_a else_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o that_o undertaker_n that_o be_v engage_v to_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o darkness_n light_n and_o preser_v speak_v good_a of_o bad_a action_n before_o speak_v true_o §_o 3._o and_o that_o you_o may_v know_v by_o what_o spirit_n man_n that_o will_v not_o reproach_v the_o best_a that_o differ_v from_o the_o prelate_n be_v themselves_o reproach_v by_o this_o sect_n and_o also_o what_o sort_n of_o history_n this_o man_n give_v the_o lie_n to_o on_o pretence_n of_o give_v it_o i_o and_o how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o rail_a he_o thus_o proceed_v the_o first_o thing_n he_o be_v charge_v with_o be_v the_o oppression_n of_o the_o novatian_o this_o be_v enough_o with_o socrates_n or_o sozomen_n to_o paint_v he_o as_o ugly_a as_o man_n do_v the_o devil_n or_o antichrist_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o great_a credit_n to_o be_v give_v they_o in_o these_o relation_n as_o manifest_o espouse_v the_o cause_n and_o quarrel_n of_o the_o novatian_o answ_n 1._o just_o as_o thuanus_n or_o erasmus_n espouse_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o protestant_n by_o truth_n and_o peace_n when_o other_o hate_v and_o belie_v they_o 2._o methinks_v the_o man_n revile_v i_o very_o gentle_o in_o comparison_n of_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n the_o two_o most_o impartial_a and_o credible_a of_o all_o our_o ancient_a church-historian_n with_o theodorot_n but_o who_o can_v wonder_v that_o he_o imitate_v that_o which_o he_o defend_v §_o 4._o but_o he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v the_o novatian_o deserve_v it_o and_o it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a that_o they_o be_v very_o troublesome_a and_o seditious_a answ_n it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a now_o that_o other_o will_v say_v it_o be_v so_o but_o mark_v reader_n which_o of_o these_o historian_n be_v most_o credible_a socrates_n and_o sozomen_n live_v with_o those_o that_o know_v the_o thing_n and_o person_n they_o have_v tell_v we_o truth_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o history_n if_o they_o have_v be_v novatian_n mr._n m._n say_v they_o believe_v sin_v after_o baptism_n have_v no_o pardon_n or_o absolution_n and_o be_v they_o not_o like_v then_o to_o fear_v such_o lie_v and_o false_a accuse_v as_o paint_v a_o saint_n like_o the_o devil_n or_o antichrist_n on_o the_o other_o side_n mr._n m._n live_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o they_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o party_n that_o take_v it_o to_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o a_o duty_n to_o say_v and_o swear_v all_o that_o be_v impose_v now_o which_o i_o will_v not_o here_o describe_v how_o true_o he_o write_v the_o history_n of_o his_o own_o age_n even_o of_o parliament_n and_o war_n and_o live_a person_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o he_o say_v no_o more_o against_o the_o historian_n credit_v here_o but_o it_o may_v be_v and_o its_o not_o unlikely_a and_o they_o be_v novatian_n schismatic_n alexandrian_n even_o so_o their_o counterminer_n and_o many_o conformist_n that_o have_v many_o year_n report_v we_o to_o be_v raise_v a_o war_n against_o the_o king_n have_v their_o may-be's_a and_o it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a and_o they_o be_v schismatic_n to_o prove_v it_o and_o other_o soon_o rise_v up_o and_o swear_v it_o and_o when_o some_o lament_v their_o perjury_n it_o stop_v not_o the_o rest_n but_o some_o have_v such_o freewill_n that_o they_o can_v believe_v who_o they_o list_v list_o 5._o socrates_n say_v he_o make_v it_o part_v of_o his_o charge_n that_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o government_n of_o temporal_a affair_n this_o be_v not_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o indulgence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o he_o show_v the_o church_n need_v of_o it_o answ_n that_o which_o he_o be_v charge_v with_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n that_o himself_o use_v the_o sword_n and_o 1._o do_v you_o
think_v that_o so_o great_a a_o patriarchate_n &_o diocese_n will_v not_o find_v a_o conscionable_a pastor_n work_v enough_o without_o join_v with_o it_o the_o magistrate_n office_n 2._o be_v not_o the_o church_n great_o change_v even_o so_o early_o from_o what_o it_o be_v a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o day_n of_o martin_n and_o sulpitius_n when_o even_o ithacius_n dare_v not_o own_o be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o seeker_n to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o draw_v the_o sword_n against_o gross_a heretic_n and_o the_o best_a bishop_n deny_v communion_n with_o they_o that_o seek_v it_o and_o now_o a_o bishop_n himself_o become_v the_o striker_n not_o of_o gross_a heretic_n but_o such_o as_o peaceable_a bishop_n bear_v with_o i_o remember_v not_o to_o have_v read_v that_o cyril_n have_v any_o commission_n for_o the_o sword_n from_o the_o emperor_n other_o then_o have_v not_o but_o i_o deny_v it_o not_o §_o 6._o he_o say_v that_o elsewhere_o i_o say_v i_o shall_v not_o dishonour_v such_o nor_o disobey_v they_o answ_n i_o say_v and_o do_v so_o if_o a_o bishop_n will_v take_v another_o call_v from_o the_o king_n grant_n when_o he_o have_v undertake_v already_o 40_o time_n more_o work_n as_o a_o diocesan_n than_o he_o can_v do_v i_o will_v honour_v and_o obey_v he_o as_o a_o magistrate_n but_o i_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o stand_v before_o god_n under_o the_o guilt_n of_o his_o undertake_n and_o omission_n §_o 7._o as_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o history_n about_o cyril_n execution_n and_o the_o wound_a of_o orestes_n the_o governor_n i_o leave_v it_o between_o the_o credit_n of_o mr._n m._n and_o socrates_n and_o he_o very_o much_o suspect_v the_o story_n of_o cyril_n '_o s_z make_v a_o martyr_n of_o he_o that_o be_v execute_v for_o it_o i_o leave_v all_o to_o the_o reader_n be_v judgement_n i_o think_v i_o may_v transcribe_v socrates_n without_o slander_v cyril_n here_o his_o spleen_n rise_v say_v there_o be_v man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o honour_n such_o as_o martyr_n for_o murder_v a_o king_n answ_n you_o may_v smell_v what_o he_o insinuate_v i_o think_v he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o he_o ever_o do_v more_o against_o they_o than_o those_o that_o they_o call_v presbyterian_o have_v do_v we_o write_v and_o preach_v against_o they_o when_o he_o do_v not_o i_o know_v not_o the_o presbyterian_a live_n to_o my_o remembrance_n that_o be_v not_o against_o the_o murder_n of_o the_o king_n and_o prin._n who_o the_o bishop_n have_v crop_v and_o stigmatise_v for_o be_v against_o they_o as_o a_o erastian_n be_v the_o hot_a in_o the_o parliament_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o king_n judge_n but_o i_o know_v divers_a conformist_n that_o have_v write_v or_o speak_v to_o justify_v or_o excuse_v that_o fact_n §_o 8._o as_o for_o the_o murder_n of_o hypatia_n i_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o scuffle_n with_o socrates_n and_o damascius_n in_o which_o i_o interess_n not_o myself_o §_o 9_o i_o thank_v pope_n innocent_n mr._n m._n dare_v not_o deny_v cyril_n fault_n in_o his_o enmity_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o chrysostom_n and_o yet_o he_o call_v my_o recite_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n a_o reproach_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o quarrel_n be_v it_o seem_v hereditary_a to_o he_o so_o be_v original_a sin_n and_o he_o do_v prosecute_v it_o beyond_o all_o equity_n or_o decency_n against_o the_o memory_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n this_o be_v a_o fault_n and_o and_o he_o that_o be_v without_o any_o or_o without_o any_o particular_a animosity_n special_o if_o he_o be_v in_o any_o eminent_a place_n let_v he_o ●ast_v the_o first_o stone_n answ_n thanks_o to_o conscience_n we_o feel_v your_o animosity_n but_o be_v not_o this_o man_n a_o rail_a accuser_n of_o cyril_n if_o i_o be_o such_o what_o say_v he_o less_o in_o the_o main_a yea_o he_o now_o renew_v his_o accusation_n of_o his_o predecessor_n say_v it_o be_v hereditary_a to_o prosecute_v malice_n against_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o holy_a extraordinary_a bishop_n beyond_o all_o equity_n and_o decency_n what_o will_v christianity_n or_o humanity_n call_v it_o but_o faction_n say_v it_o be_v a_o fault_n and_o he_o that_o be_v without_o any_o etc._n etc._n thus_o talk_v eli_n to_o his_o son_n so_o one_o may_v say_v to_z silence_z 2000_o minister_n or_o to_o hate_v the_o best_a man_n and_o seek_v their_o ruin_n be_v a_o fault_n a_o prelatical_a peccadillo_n and_o so_o be_v bonner_n usage_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o let_v he_o that_o be_v without_o any_o cast_v the_o first_o stone_n and_o st._n john_n say_v he_o that_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o none_o such_o have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o that_o as_o cain_n he_o be_v of_o the_o evil_a one_o the_o devil_n and_o i_o believe_v he_o §_o 10._o but_o he_o say_v i_o injurious_o charge_v he_o with_o calling_n alexander_n a_o bold_a face_a man_n when_o atticus_n be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o that_o word_n answ_n atticus_n mention_v alexander_n confident_a true_a and_o necessary_a counsel_n cyril_n contradict_v it_o call_v the_o man_n a_o man_n of_o a_o confident_a face_n or_o mouth_n if_o another_o bishop_n say_v the_o first_o word_n before_o he_o do_v i_o wrong_v he_o in_o say_v he_o say_v the_o second_o o_o tender_a man_n his_o urge_v the_o keep_n up_o the_o name_n of_o such_o as_o nectarius_n and_o arsacius_n and_o cast_v out_o chrysostomus_n be_v so_o like_o our_o canon_n about_o reader_n and_o nonconformist_n and_o our_o cannoneer_n description_n of_o their_o country_n parson_n and_o the_o puritan_n that_o i_o wonder_v not_o that_o you_o defend_v he_o §_o 11._o but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o little_a unchristian_a to_o blast_v his_o memory_n with_o the_o fault_n which_o he_o correct_v in_o his_o life-time_n answ_n 1._o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o tell_v that_o truth_n which_o blast_v the_o reputation_n of_o such_o sin_n as_o be_v grow_v up_o towards_o papacy_n ans_fw-fr 2._o then_o christ_n be_v unchristian_a to_o tell_v the_o jew_n of_o their_o very_a father_n murder_n of_o the_o prophet_n while_o they_o disclaim_v it_o and_o build_v their_o sepulcher_n mat._n 23._o and_o then_o it_o be_v unchristian_a in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o blast_v the_o memory_n of_o adam_n no_o lot_n david_n solomon_n peter_n yea_o or_o manasseh_n with_o sin_n repent_v of_o 3._o history_n must_v speak_v truth_n about_o thing_n repent_v of_o or_o else_o it_o will_v but_o deceive_v the_o world_n 4._o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o goodness_n and_o truth_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o our_o own_o honour_n repentance_n if_o true_a will_v most_o free_o confess_v a_o man_n own_o sin_n and_o most_o full_o shame_v it_o §_o 12._o whether_o all_o his_o far-fetched_a conjecture_n that_o cyril_n repent_v be_v true_a or_o no_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o i_o will_v hope_v he_o do_v though_o i_o never_o see_v it_o prove_v the_o very_a last_o sentence_n of_o death_n may_v do_v it_o his_o retortion_n be_v i_o know_v no_o man_n deep_o engage_v in_o the_o contention_n of_o the_o church_n than_o i_o the_o writing_n of_o his_o eighty_o book_n be_v but_o like_o so_o many_o pitch_a battle_n he_o have_v fight_v and_o most_o common_o in_o the_o dark_a when_o he_o be_v hardly_o able_a to_o discover_v friend_n from_o foe_n answ_n it_o be_v too_o true_a that_o be_v all_o write_v for_o peace_n the_o enemy_n of_o peace_n have_v fight_v against_o they_o nimis_fw-la diu_fw-la habitavit_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la inter_fw-la osores_fw-la pacis_fw-la but_o pro_fw-la captu_fw-la lectoris_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o man_n take_v not_o the_o word_n of_o such_o as_o he_o for_o oracle_n how_o much_o i_o have_v write_v and_o do_v for_o peace_n let_v other_o read_v and_o judge_v i_o long_o labour_v and_o beg_v for_o peace_n in_o vain_a with_o such_o as_o he_o defend_v and_o it_o be_v admirable_a if_o this_o pitiless_a enemy_n of_o sect_n and_o error_n can_v be_v for_o all_o the_o sect_n and_o error_n that_o i_o have_v write_v against_o have_v i_o in_o the_o dark_a take_v for_o foe_n by_o error_n the_o atheist_n the_o infidel_n the_o sadducee_n the_o hobbist_n the_o quaker_n the_o ranter_n the_o papist_n the_o socinian_o the_o libertine_n call_v antinomian_o the_o anabaptist_n the_o separatist_n and_o sect_n as_o sect_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n all_o these_o prelatist_n that_o accuse_v we_o for_o too_o dark_a and_o sharp_a write_n against_o you_o seem_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o will_v more_o hate_v persecute_v or_o distress_v you_o yes_o when_o they_o agree_v with_o themselves_o his_o prayer_n that_o i_o may_v have_v a_o more_o honourable_a opinion_n of_o repentance_n he_o call_v i_o to_o speak_v to_o in_o the_o end_n §_o 13._o whether_o good_a isidore_n pelusiota_n be_v a_o man_n very_o easy_a to_o
of_o hereticator_n and_o misery_n of_o the_o church_n thereby_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o man_n in_o these_o time_n call_v they_o papist_n that_o be_v none_o ans_fw-fr if_o it_o be_v ill_o do_v why_o condemn_v you_o yourself_o by_o defend_v those_o that_o do_v the_o like_a if_o it_o be_v well_o do_v in_o bishop_n council_n why_o not_o in_o they_o 2._o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o he_o mean_v if_o it_o be_v 1._o if_o you_o will_v read_v but_o the_o last_o part_n of_o my_o cathol_n theolog._n judge_n of_o the_o man_n front_n 2._o it_o be_v none_o but_o those_o that_o be_v for_o a_o humane_a sovereignty_n over_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n that_o we_o judge_v papist_n and_o if_o you_o judge_v they_o not_o such_o we_o will_v thank_v you_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o a_o papist_n be_v in_o your_o own_o sense_n §_o 18._o his_o saying_n p._n 225._o that_o john_n come_v that_o give_v a_o sad_a account_n of_o the_o council_n be_v much_o to_o be_v suspect_v etc._n etc._n do_v but_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v have_v your_o belief_n of_o history_n guide_v by_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o cause_n §_o 19_o as_o to_o his_o scorn_n against_o my_o translate_n the_o word_n the_o scripture_n and_o sacred_a which_o mean_v that_o imperial_a scripture_n i_o do_v think_v a_o literal_a translation_n can_v not_o have_v be_v judge_v a_o misunderstanding_n or_o mistranslation_n why_o may_v they_o not_o be_v call_v in_o english_a what_o they_o be_v call_v in_o greek_a and_o he_o have_v a_o strong_a imagination_n if_o he_o think_v that_o haumers_n translation_n of_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n afford_v i_o such_o material_n as_o these_o §_o 20._o his_o conclusion_n of_o some_o that_o scorn_v to_o preach_v by_o the_o licence_n of_o the_o government_n i_o before_o mention_v the_o truth_n and_o ministerial_a honesty_n of_o it_o be_v much_o like_a as_o if_o thousand_o shall_v petition_v the_o bishop_n that_o their_o sick_a family_n may_v have_v license_v physician_n and_o he_o reject_v all_o their_o petition_n and_o prevail_v with_o the_o parliament_n to_o do_v the_o like_a at_o last_o the_o king_n pity_v they_o and_o license_v the_o physician_n and_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o clergy_n be_v offend_v and_o get_v it_o revoke_v and_o the_o physician_n practise_v at_o their_o peril_n without_o licence_n and_o our_o credible_a historian_n shall_v record_v it_o that_o they_o scorn_v to_o practice_v as_o license_v by_o the_o government_n even_o while_o still_o they_o make_v all_o the_o friend_n they_o can_v to_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v license_v and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prevail_v but_o the_o age_n that_o know_v not_o they_o and_o we_o that_o be_v to_o come_v may_v possible_o believe_v these_o man_n as_o they_o believe_v their_o predecessor_n §_o 21._o to_o conclude_v reader_n if_o now_o thou_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o christian_a interest_n unity_n and_o love_n judge_v of_o the_o whole_a case_n impartial_o and_o begin_v with_o notorious_a matter_n of_o fact_n 1._o we_o find_v at_o this_o day_n a_o great_a body_n of_o christian_n call_v nestorian_n inhabit_v the_o country_n of_o babylon_n assyria_n mesopotamia_n partbia_n and_o media_n yea_o spread_v northerly_a to_o cataya_n and_o southerly_a to_o india_n abundance_n of_o they_o even_o in_o tartary_n say_v paulus_n venet._n see_v brierwood_n p._n 139._o and_o we_o find_v that_o they_o be_v by_o the_o western_a church_n if_o not_o the_o greek_n call_v heretic_n and_o at_o the_o easy_a schismatic_n and_o yet_o as_o those_o very_a friar_n that_o have_v live_v among_o they_o say_v they_o be_v common_o free_a from_o any_o such_o opinion_n as_o be_v charge_v on_o they_o but_o only_o honour_v the_o name_n of_o nestoriaus_n and_o condemn_v the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o this_o mr._n m._n nor_o no_o prelate_n will_v deny_v that_o retain_v humanity_n 2._o we_o find_v that_o this_o woeful_a fraction_n have_v continue_v about_o one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n 3._o we_o be_v put_v to_o inquire_v what_o be_v and_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o we_o find_v that_o on_o both_o side_n it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n that_o now_o continue_v it_o and_o it_o be_v patriarch_n and_o their_o bishop_n that_o at_o first_o cause_v it_o 4._o we_o inquire_v how_o they_o do_v it_o and_o mr._n morrice_n confess_v that_o it_o begin_v in_o a_o dispute_n between_o the_o two_o patriarch_n whether_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n or_o rather_o the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v god_n and_o man_n and_o that_o on_o this_o occasion_n cyril_n charge_v nestorius_n as_o make_v christ_n to_o be_v two_o person_n and_o he_o himself_o say_v christ_n incarnate_a have_v but_o one_o nature_n but_o have_v no_o more_o skill_n in_o speak_v than_o by_o one_o nature_n to_o mean_v one_o person_n though_o derodon_n labour_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o mean_v worse_o that_o nestorius_n profess_v two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n and_o mr._n m._n say_v nestorius_n when_o he_o speak_v well_o mean_v ill_o and_o cyril_n when_o he_o speak_v ill_o mean_v well_o and_o upon_o this_o a_o general_n council_n itself_o be_v first_o divide_v about_o they_o even_o to_o blow_n and_o after_o by_o the_o importunity_n of_o cyril_n party_n nestorius_n be_v banish_v and_o the_o bishop_n divide_v some_o for_o one_o and_o some_o for_o another_o to_o this_o day_n another_o council_n be_v call_v at_o chalcedon_n and_o confirm_v the_o condemnation_n and_o the_o nestorian_a bishop_n condemn_v that_o council_n and_o for_o many_o age_n the_o bishop_n be_v divide_v also_o about_o that_o one_o part_n condemn_v it_o and_o the_o other_o subscribe_v to_o it_o and_o honour_v it_o judge_v now_o what_o these_o bishop_n have_v do_v to_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o continue_v to_o do_v and_o if_o you_o dare_v join_v with_o our_o cannoneer_n in_o make_v the_o guilt_n your_o own_o by_o justify_v such_o dismal_a work_n the_o further_a you_o go_v the_o more_o of_o it_o you_o have_v to_o justify_v till_o your_o soul_n have_v guilt_n and_o load_n enough_o honest_a dr._n moor_n charge_v with_o nestorianism_n be_v fain_o to_o accuse_v nestorius_n out_o of_o his_o enemy_n word_n to_o clear_v himself_o that_o he_o own_v not_o a_o physical_a union_n of_o nature_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a unsafe_a word_n a_o physical_a union_n seem_v to_o signify_v one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v he_o never_o deny_v a_o personal_a or_o hypostatical_a union_n and_o if_o he_o have_v as_o he_o do_v not_o oppose_v the_o word_n hypostasis_fw-la so_o do_v hierom_n that_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o many_o more_o for_o a_o long_a time_n i_o suppose_v mr._n m._n be_v not_o more_o zealous_a against_o nestorianism_n than_o the_o hereticate_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v and_o how_o great_a they_o real_o think_v the_o nestorian_a heresy_n the_o story_n which_o i_o mention_v of_o p._n hormisda_n tell_v you_o which_o i_o will_v repeat_v there_o arise_v a_o controversy_n whether_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o trinity_n be_v crucify_v pope_n hormisda_n say_v no_o because_o they_o that_o be_v for_o it_o be_v suspect_v to_o be_v eutychian_o the_o nestorian_n lay_v hold_v on_o this_o and_o say_v than_o we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o mary_n be_v the_o parent_n of_o one_o of_o the_o trinity_n this_o be_v a_o hard_a case_n justinian_n send_v to_o pope_n john_n about_o it_o his_o infallibility_n and_o hormisda_n be_v contrary_a he_o and_o his_o council_n say_v that_o we_o may_v say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o trinity_n be_v crucify_v hereupon_o baronius_n and_o binnius_n give_v we_o a_o useful_a note_n ita_fw-la mutatis_fw-la hostibus_fw-la arma_fw-la mutari_fw-la necesse_fw-la suis_fw-la what_o shall_v the_o world_n do_v if_o we_o have_v not_o have_v such_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n i_o hope_v mr._n m._n will_v not_o be_v so_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a as_o to_o say_v that_o either_o of_o these_o pope_n err_v against_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o will_v rather_o recant_v his_o accusation_n of_o nestorius_n and_o number_v this_o with_o thing_n indifferent_a which_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o change_v at_o her_o pleasure_n chap._n xxii_o of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 2d_o §_o 1._o that_o our_o historian_n may_v justify_v the_o divider_n he_o make_v himself_o a_o party_n and_o by_o downright_a mistake_n against_o both_o say_v 1._o that_o nestorius_n fall_v into_o blasphemy_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v true_a god_n 2._o and_o that_o eutyches_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v true_a man._n this_o be_v our_o reformer_n of_o history_n when_o both_o of_o they_o profess_a christ_n to_o be_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n i_o doubt_v not_o
but_o the_o man_n can_v write_v another_o book_n to_o justify_v this_o for_o what_o be_v it_o that_o some_o can_v talk_v for_o yea_o he_o be_v at_o if_o again_o p._n 230._o that_o eutyches_n hold_v christ_n not_o to_o be_v true_a man._n §_o 2._o he_o confess_v again_o that_o cyril_n affirm_v but_o one_o nature_n and_o mean_v but_o one_o person_n and_o that_o eutyches_n use_v the_o same_o word_n but_o say_v sure_o they_o can_v be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o fall_v out_o so_o violent_o when_o they_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n &_o word_n flavian_n can_v not_o be_v so_o foolish_a or_o so_o wicked_a etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr i_o justify_v not_o the_o word_n of_o eutyches_n or_o cyril_n but_o if_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o as_o he_o confess_v cyril_n so_o gross_a as_o to_o use_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o eutyches_n who_o have_v far_o less_o learning_n than_o cyril_n do_v word_n amiss_o the_o conception_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o cyril_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o this_o mild_a censurer_n to_o call_v they_o fool_n and_o mad_a and_o wicked_a it_o be_v take_v for_o rail_v in_o i_o to_o blame_v they_o §_o 3._o he_o say_v cyril_n never_o say_v there_o be_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n before_o the_o union_n ans_fw-fr i_o have_v twice_o cite_v his_o word_n find_v a_o true_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o those_o of_o eutyches_n if_o you_o can_v i_o believe_v they_o both_o mean_v better_a than_o they_o speak_v §_o 4._o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o detraction_n use_v to_o fetch_v accusation_n from_o heart_n &_o thought_n and_o secret_a action_n and_o so_o do_v he_o against_o eutyches_n and_o he_o say_v this_o have_v be_v do_v of_o late_a time_n to_o deliver_v that_o in_o select_a meeting_n which_o they_o will_v not_o in_o public_a promiscuous_a assembly_n as_o evil_a spirit_n be_v under_o restraint_n in_o consecrate_a place_n ans_fw-fr therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o nonconformist_n have_v 20_o or_o 19_o year_n so_o earnest_o beg_v for_o leave_v to_o preach_v in_o public_a consecrate_a place_n to_o promiscuous_a assembly_n that_o they_o may_v be_v out_o of_o suspicion_n but_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o of_o this_o sort_n of_o master_n exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la thus_o they_o that_o cast_v the_o stone_n at_o other_o oft_o find_v it_o hit_v themselves_o mr._n edward_n gangrena_fw-la be_v here_o commend_v to_o those_o that_o be_v for_o toleration_n as_o if_o all_o difference_n be_v equal_o intolerable_a or_o tolerable_a and_o he_o that_o say_v tolerate_v not_o those_o that_o preach_v blasphemy_n or_o intolerable_a error_n say_v no_o worse_o than_o he_o that_o say_v silence_v two_o thousand_o preacher_n unless_o they_o will_v profess_v promise_v and_o swear_v and_o do_v all_o that_o be_v oft_o describe_v impose_v on_o they_o §_o 5._o in_o his_o narrative_a he_o be_v no_o more_o tender_a of_o the_o honour_n of_o bishop_n it_o seem_v than_o i_o be_o nor_o so_o much_o of_o emperor_n for_o when_o he_o have_v say_v the_o emperor_n be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o this_o kind_n of_o vermine_n eunuch_n and_o show_v his_o bitterness_n against_o flavian_n he_o say_v that_o the_o letter_n which_o call_v this_o council_n suggest_v sufficient_o what_o it_o be_v to_o do_v and_o that_o their_o business_n be_v to_o condemn_v a_o bishop_n the_o emperor_n do_v not_o care_n for_o though_o without_o any_o just_a ground_n nay_o for_o his_o honesty_n i_o deny_v none_o of_o this_o but_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o a_o good_a case_n then_o that_o when_o they_o know_v before_o that_o they_o be_v call_v to_o such_o a_o work_n as_o this_o will_v meet_v in_o a_o general_n council_n and_o do_v it_o no_o he_o accuse_v they_o himself_o i_o need_v not_o do_v it_o the_o emperor_n he_o say_v know_v how_o to_o choose_v bishop_n and_o yet_o his_o summons_n be_v general_a to_o all_o to_o come_v and_o the_o precedent_n if_o half_o be_v true_a that_o be_v say_v of_o he_o and_o if_o that_o be_v a_o doubt_n how_o credible_a be_v your_o historian_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o wicked_a profligate_v wretch_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o all_o the_o council_n bishop_n and_o till_o they_o meet_v be_v not_o thus_o accuse_v you_o see_v the_o man_n be_v a_o far_o great_a railer_n than_o i_o even_o against_o bishop_n but_o it_o be_v but_o against_o those_o that_o be_v against_o his_o interest_n and_o side_n §_o 6._o he_o describe_v those_o bishop_n as_o use_v violence_n forget_v that_o it_o be_v it_o his_o party_n trust_v to_o continual_o just_o with_o the_o front_n as_o baronius_n and_o binnius_n and_o many_o other_o papist_n justify_v martin_n for_o be_v against_o put_v heretic_n to_o death_n and_o condemn_v ithacius_n while_o their_o kingdom_n be_v uphold_v by_o that_o which_o they_o condemn_v and_o worse_o even_o the_o burn_n of_o true_a christian_n as_o heretic_n and_o it_o be_v heretical_a with_o they_o to_o imitate_v martin_n just_a as_o those_o matth._n 23._o your_o father_n kill_v the_o prophet_n and_o you_o build_v their_o sepulcher_n and_o say_v if_o we_o have_v live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n we_o will_v not_o etc._n etc._n §_o 7._o but_o in_o the_o passage_n i_o find_v our_o historian_n in_o a_o more_o charitable_a mood_n to_o this_o ephesine_n council_n of_o bishop_n than_o his_o brethren_n how_o bad_a soever_o dioscorus_n and_o this_o council_n be_v yet_o they_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n to_o be_v look_v on_o rather_o as_o favourer_n of_o heresy_n than_o heretic_n they_o follow_v the_o meaning_n i_o believe_v as_o well_o as_o the_o word_n of_o cyril_n ans_fw-fr and_o now_o i_o may_v hope_v i_o be_o orthodox_n and_o charitable_a when_o i_o have_v no_o less_o than_o his_o judgement_n to_o justify_v i_o and_o anatolius_n justify_v we_o both_o §_o 8._o but_o sir_n now_o you_o be_v in_o a_o good_a mood_n will_v you_o consider_v 1._o whether_o those_o bishop_n and_o council_n that_o set_v the_o christian_a world_n in_o that_o flame_n that_o burn_v dreadful_o to_o this_o day_n after_o above_o 1200_o year_n be_v not_o guilty_a at_o least_o of_o a_o peccadillo_n or_o venial_a sin_n 2._o whether_o they_o be_v imitable_a 3._o whether_o this_o general_a council_n have_v a_o supreme_a legislative_a and_o judicial_a power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n which_o all_o must_v obey_v and_o none_o must_v appeal_v from_o no_o say_v bishop_n gunning_n it_o be_v a_o meeting_n of_o violent_a robber_n ans_fw-fr but_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n which_o it_o seem_v then_o may_v be_v such_o chap._n xxiii_o of_o the_o four_o general_n council_n at_o chalcedon_n §_o 1._o he_o begin_v his_o chapter_n comical_o and_o notable_o deride_v i_o for_o say_v pulcheria_n be_v the_o same_o that_o before_o at_o ephesus_n have_v set_v the_o bishop_n against_o nestorius_n be_v this_o so_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o historian_n make_v she_o very_o powerful_a with_o her_o brother_n she_o choose_v his_o wife_n eudocia_n they_o be_v long_o of_o two_o mind_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o she_o that_o get_v he_o condemn_v at_o ephesus_n get_v the_o same_o further_o do_v at_o chalcedon_n when_o she_o be_v empress_n herself_o have_v make_v martian_a emperor_n and_o her_o nominal_a husband_n for_o they_o be_v not_o conjugal_o to_o know_v each_o other_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o that_o deserve_v the_o stage_n though_o theodosius_n be_v reproach_v by_o popish_a historian_n as_o a_o eutychian_a or_o a_o favourer_n of_o they_o if_o credible_a honest_a socrates_n may_v be_v believe_v there_o have_v be_v few_o such_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n for_o piety_n his_o house_n be_v a_o church_n for_o patience_n never_o see_v angry_a for_o compassion_n will_v never_o let_v a_o man_n die_v for_o treason-against_a himself_o but_o his_o sister_n a_o woman_n eminent_a for_o wit_n and_o piety_n be_v think_v to_o govern_v he_o very_o much_o &_o special_o in_o the_o severity_n against_o nestorius_n evagrius_n who_o bitter_o reproach_v nestorius_n tell_v we_o of_o some_o write_n of_o his_o that_o fell_a into_o his_o hand_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v his_o friend_n and_o will_v not_o sign_v his_o banishment_n and_o lay_v the_o cruelty_n that_o he_o undergo_v on_o his_o officer_n and_o consider_v the_o case_n of_o a_o suffer_a man_n i_o see_v nothing_o unseemly_a in_o the_o letter_n to_o he_o which_o evagrius_n charge_v with_o contempt_n §_o 2._o my_o wish_n for_o the_o church_n peace_n that_o the_o unskilful_a word_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n have_v be_v silence_v by_o neglect_n rather_o than_o the_o flame_n blow_v up_o by_o honour_v they_o with_o two_o general_a council_n disputation_n
trouble_v at_o any_o one_o that_o do_v turn_v quaker_n or_o against_o infant_n baptism_n than_o some_o indifferent_a person_n be_v at_o multitude_n and_o i_o be_v one_o that_o dispute_v most_o against_o they_o and_o write_v against_o some_o distant_a antinomian_o most_o soldier_n but_o our_o dispute_n satisfy_v and_o confirm_v all_o our_o neighbour_n more_o than_o prison_n will_v have_v do_v we_o punish_v none_o of_o they_o and_o none_o of_o our_o people_n there_o turn_v to_o they_o but_o i_o confess_v we_o be_v common_o too_o little_a sensible_a how_o much_o hurtful_a violence_n hinder_v concord_n more_o than_o love_a forbearance_n of_o tolerable_a difference_n as_o too_o many_o be_v how_o much_o for_o peace_n they_o shall_v have_v abate_v of_o the_o zeal_n for_o their_o private_a opinion_n which_o they_o think_v to_o be_v better_a than_o they_o be_v we_o be_v much_o like_o the_o day_n that_o follow_v the_o apostle_n which_o have_v some_o troublesome_a sectary_n but_o the_o main_a body_n of_o christian_n do_v cleave_v together_o in_o love_n till_o success_n have_v puff_v up_o a_o rebellious_a army_n to_o make_v themselves_o ruler_n to_o the_o confusion_n of_o themselves_o and_o other_o §_o 35._o at_o last_o mention_v the_o common_a dissension_n of_o the_o church_n he_o seem_v to_o resolve_v the_o question_n what_o then_o must_v be_v do_v but_o he_o put_v we_o off_o only_o with_o the_o negative_a answer_n that_o the_o rule_n i._n e._n of_o our_o uniformity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v alter_v and_o why_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v any_o conformity_n to_o it_o more_o than_o we_o have_v now_o ans_fw-fr i_o must_v not_o call_v this_o answer_n as_o it_o deserve_v 1._o you_o be_v about_o deal_v otherwise_o with_o the_o papist_n dr._n heylin_n tell_v we_o how_o much_o they_o be_v to_o have_v alter_v for_o concord_n mr._n thorndike_n threaten_v the_o land_n if_o you_o alter_v not_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n for_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o antichrist_n have_v be_v expunge_v for_o they_o yet_o you_o say_v not_o we_o know_v not_o that_o they_o will_v come_v any_o near_a we_o 2._o by_o these_o measure_v a_o rag_n or_o a_o ceremony_n shall_v never_o be_v abate_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o any_o church_n or_o kingdom_n you_o may_v still_o say_v we_o be_v not_o sure_a that_o this_o will_v serve_v they_o the_o pope_n may_v say_v so_o where_o he_o refuse_v to_o abate_v the_o shave_n of_o the_o priest_n beard_n or_o the_o least_o of_o his_o imposition_n yea_o he_o know_v that_o will_v not_o serve_v they_o say_v so_o to_o the_o bohemian_n four_o demand_n they_o conclude_v so_o at_o first_o against_o luther_n this_o very_a argument_n have_v keep_v they_o from_o all_o reformation_n 3._o can_v you_o find_v nothing_o in_o your_o imposition_n that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v alter_v if_o not_o you_o have_v more_o or_o less_o wisdom_n than_o bishop_n morton_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n doctor_n who_o at_o westminster_n motion_v so_o many_o alteration_n ●●_o one_o shall_v but_o then_o move_v you_o to_o correct_v your_o know_a false_a rule_n for_o find_v easterday_n or_o to_o give_v parent_n leave_v to_o be_v the_o first_o promiser_n for_o their_o own_o child_n and_o godfather_n but_o their_o second_o or_o not_o to_o deny_v christendom_n and_o communion_n for_o that_o or_o a_o ceremony_n no_o come_v on_o it_o what_o will_v nothing_o must_v be_v alter_v lest_o man_n ask_v more_o and_o yet_o you_o preach_v against_o clergy_n infallibility_n or_o subscribe_v at_o least_o 4_o but_o if_o you_o be_v so_o much_o against_o alter_v why_o do_v you_o alter_v to_o our_o great_a suffering_n and_o add_v as_o much_o more_o yea_o five_a time_n more_o to_o the_o former_a task_n and_o burden_n you_o can_v no_o doubt_n say_v somewhat_o for_o all_o this_o 5._o and_o when_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n still_o ask_v and_o we_o since_o 1660_o ask_v yet_o less_o what_o reason_n have_v you_o to_o raise_v that_o suspicion_n that_o we_o will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v with_o what_o we_o ask_v have_v we_o give_v you_o any_o cause_n if_o you_o mean_v that_o perhaps_o there_o be_v some_o still_o that_o may_v be_v unsatisfied_a will_v you_o deny_v peace_n to_o so_o many_o that_o beg_v it_o of_o you_o because_o other_o will_v not_o accept_v it_o on_o their_o term_n or_o will_v you_o never_o agree_v with_o any_o lest_o some_o disagreement_n shall_v arise_v hereafter_o some_o traveller_n be_v assault_v by_o the_o high_a way_n by_o a_o captain_n of_o soldier_n who_o take_v all_o their_o money_n sword_n and_o horse_n and_o swear_v he_o will_v kill_v they_o if_o they_o will_v not_o take_v a_o oath_n to_o conceal_v he_o one_o take_v the_o oath_n to_o save_v his_o life_n another_o scruple_v it_o they_o beg_v his_o mercy_n to_o restore_v so_o much_o as_o will_v bring_v they_o home_o he_o ask_v they_o what_o will_v satisfy_v they_o one_o will_v have_v his_o horse_n another_o his_o sword_n another_o part_n of_o his_o money_n he_o tell_v they_o you_o be_v a_o company_n of_o rogue_n that_o can_v neither_o agree_v what_o to_o ask_v nor_o give_v i_o assurance_n if_o i_o give_v you_o this_o you_o will_v ask_v no_o more_o i_o compare_v not_o the_o authority_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o denial_n §_o 36._o but_o see_v no_o abatement_n of_o their_o canon_n etc._n etc._n must_v be_v grant_v what_o be_v it_o that_o must_v cause_v our_o concord_n he_o will_v not_o tell_v you_o but_o it_o be_v discernible_a what_o be_v leave_v it_o must_v be_v no_o concord_n but_o what_o punishment_n can_v procure_v and_o what_o punishment_n sharp_a than_o be_v yet_o try_v for_o that_o have_v not_o do_v it_o such_o concord_n as_o tertullian_n name_v solitudinem_fw-la faciunt_fw-la &_o pacem_fw-la vocant_fw-la the_o concord_n in_o spain_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o amsterdam_n toleration_n again_o i_o remember_v the_o great_a fishpond_n mention_v by_o judge_n hale_n that_o have_v multitude_n of_o fish_n and_o fry_v and_o at_o last_o two_o small_a pike_n put_v in_o when_o the_o pond_n be_v draw_v there_o be_v never_o a_o fish_n but_o the_o two_o tyrant_n as_o he_o call_v they_o grow_v to_o a_o huge_a bigness_n the_o fear_v least_o popery_n and_o prelacy_n shall_v be_v the_o two_o pike_n tempt_v man_n irregular_o to_o covenant_n against_o they_o to_o have_v such_o variety_n as_o roch_n dace_n pierch_n tench_n carp_n make_v it_o a_o schismatical_a pond_n the_o two_o pike_n be_v against_o schism_n and_o toleration_n and_o for_o end_v the_o division_n by_o reduce_v all_o to_o unity_n of_o species_n §_o 37._o as_o to_o his_o question_n of_o qu._n elizabeth_n day_n the_o intimation_n may_v seduce_v the_o ignorant_a but_o none_o else_o 1._o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v the_o subscription_n require_v in_o the_o canon_n that_o nothing_o in_o the_o book_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n scruple_v which_o break_v the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o england_n he_o be_v unfit_a by_o his_o ignorance_n to_o be_v a_o informer_n of_o other_o i_o have_v know_v many_o that_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o come_v into_o the_o conform_v church_n if_o that_o one_o word_n have_v be_v but_o forbear_v for_o when_o any_o practice_n against_o their_o conscience_n about_o baptise_v communion_n or_o burial_n have_v fall_v in_o their_o way_n they_o will_v have_v silent_o shift_v it_o off_o or_o be_v from_o home_n and_o have_v venture_v to_o answer_v it_o so_o they_o can_v but_o conscionable_o have_v get_v in_o but_o our_o cannoneer_n be_v for_o all_o or_o nothing_o 2._o he_o be_v sure_a no_o english_a clergyman_n if_o he_o know_v not_o how_o much_o be_v lay_v on_o we_o that_o be_v not_o know_v in_o the_o day_n of_o qu._n elizabeth_n be_v it_o to_o inform_v man_n or_o deceive_v they_o that_o he_o make_v the_o difference_n to_o be_v between_o 36_o and_o 39_o article_n and_o say_v nothing_o of_o all_o the_o new_a covenant_n declaration_n oath_n subscription_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n §_o 38._o many_o make_v use_v of_o mr._n edward_n gangrena_fw-la and_o the_o london_n minister_n testimony_n against_o error_n to_o prove_v the_o heresy_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o late_a time_n no_o doubt_v all_o sin_n be_v odious_a but_o few_o man_n live_v be_v more_o competent_a witness_n of_o those_o thing_n than_o i._o the_o error_n that_o spring_v up_o be_v much_o more_o tender_o resent_v then_o than_o now_o you_o now_o have_v many_o call_v wit_n and_o person_n of_o quality_n who_o at_o a_o club_n dispute_v against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o a_o future_a life_n and_o there_o be_v neither_o church-admonition_n excommunication_n nor_o any_o great_a
matter_n make_v of_o it_o but_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o pure_a church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n whereas_o in_o those_o licentious_a time_n if_o one_o soldier_n have_v speak_v such_o a_o word_n it_o will_v have_v ring_v out_o through_o the_o land_n and_o perhaps_o his_o tongue_n will_v have_v be_v bore_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n it_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o proud_a rebellious_a soldier_n that_o make_v most_o of_o the_o noise_n that_o have_v no_o considerable_a number_n of_o minister_n leave_v with_o they_o i_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o mr._n edward_n book_n thus_o a_o assembly_n of_o minister_n after_o naseby_n fight_v send_v i_o into_o the_o army_n to_o try_v if_o i_o can_v reduce_v they_o daily_o dispute_v with_o they_o a_o few_o proud_a selfconceited_a fellow_n vent_v some_o gross_a word_n at_o amersham_n a_o few_o country_n sectary_n have_v set_v up_o a_o meeting_n in_o dr._n crook_n church_n to_o dispute_v and_o deceive_v the_o people_n a_o few_o of_o major_a bethel_n troop_n that_o afterward_o turn_v leveller_n and_o be_v ruin_v join_v with_o they_o i_o meet_v they_o and_o almost_o all_o day_n dispute_v against_o they_o and_o shame_v they_o and_o they_o meet_v there_o no_o more_o i_o gather_v up_o all_o the_o gross_a word_n which_o they_o utter_v and_o write_v they_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o francis_n titan_n and_o after_o i_o find_v they_o cite_v in_o mr._n edward_n gangrena_fw-la and_o what_o be_v the_o absurd_a speech_n of_o a_o few_o ignorant_a soldier_n that_o be_v dead_a with_o they_o to_o the_o heresy_n and_o schism_n that_o these_o 1000_o or_o 1200_o year_n continue_v in_o all_o the_o roman_a communion_n and_o they_o say_v in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n one_o cheat_v papist_n as_o a_o convert_a jew_n get_v into_o a_o anabaptist_n meet_v one_o maxwell_n a_o scot_n and_o all_o england_n ring_v of_o it_o but_o when_o bishop_n have_v make_v and_o keep_v france_n spain_n italy_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o same_o error_n dr._n heylin_n and_o bp._n bromhall_n and_o such_o other_o take_v they_o for_o such_o with_o who_o a_o coalition_n on_o the_o term_n by_o they_o describe_v be_v very_o desirable_a chap._n xxiv_o his_o seven_o chapter_n consider_v §_o 1._o the_o man_n have_v not_o the_o courage_n to_o defend_v the_o surgent_a prelacy_n in_o its_o manhood_n and_o maturity_n but_o only_o in_o its_o infant_n and_o juvenile_a state_n nor_o to_o defend_v the_o many_o hundred_o council_n which_o i_o mention_v after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o which_o either_o his_o modesty_n or_o cautelousness_n come_v short_a of_o his_o rd._n father_n who_o some_o of_o they_o own_o the_o six_o first_o general_n council_n and_o some_o of_o they_o eight_o and_o some_o will_v unite_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o they_o will_v abate_v but_o the_o last_o 400_o year_n addition_n §_o 2._o in_o his_o glean_n in_o this_o seven_o chap._n he_o over_o and_o over_o and_o over_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o i_o make_v or_o affirm_v that_o the_o bps._n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n and_o of_o all_o the_o heresy_n schism_n and_o evil_n that_o have_v afflict_v the_o church_n and_o have_v this_o historian_n any_o proof_n of_o this_o or_o be_v it_o the_o melancholy_a fiction_n of_o his_o brain_n yes_o this_o be_v his_o proof_n contrary_a to_o my_o manifold_a instance_n because_o i_o say_v in_o one_o age_n we_o have_v a_o strange_a thing_n a_o heresy_n raise_v by_o one_o that_o be_v no_o bishop_n which_o i_o have_v answer_v before_o to_o be_v then_o strange_a and_o never_o to_o be_v at_o all_o be_v not_o word_n of_o the_o same_o sense_n but_o his_o answer_n throughout_o do_v mind_n i_o of_o seneca_n word_n that_o a_o man_n that_o be_v sore_o complain_v or_o cry_n oh_o when_o he_o do_v but_o think_v you_o touch_v he_o §_o 3._o he_o thus_o himself_o accuse_v the_o bishop_n p._n 276_o there_o have_v be_v wicked_a man_n and_o wicked_a bishop_n in_o all_o time_n and_o p._n 277._o that_o some_o bishop_n have_v abuse_v their_o authority_n and_o office_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n can_v be_v deny_v but_o yet_o he_o have_v show_v sufficient_o that_o most_o of_o my_o particular_a accusation_n be_v void_a of_o all_o truth_n and_o ingenuity_n ans_fw-fr or_o else_o those_o word_n be_v so_o §_o 4._o he_o say_v all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n agree_v that_o simon_n magus_n be_v author_n of_o the_o first_o heresy_n in_o christian_a religion_n ans_fw-fr all_o confess_v that_o judas_n be_v before_o he_o and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o heresy_n to_o buy_v the_o spirit_n for_o money_n it_o be_v a_o heresy_n to_o sell_v christ_n for_o money_n but_o i_o confess_v some_o tell_v we_o of_o his_o after_o prank_n at_o rome_n and_o imitate_v icarus_n at_o peter_n prayer_n if_o you_o will_v see_v why_o dr._n more_o take_v this_o for_o a_o toyish_a legend_n see_v his_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n lib._n 2._o c._n 19_o §_o 6_o 7._o p._n 447_o 448._o §_o 5._o p._n 286_o 287._o baronius_n first_o and_o philastrius_n after_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o forgery_n and_o disregardable_a history_n so_o that_o i_o may_v well_o bear_v some_o of_o his_o censure_n §_o 6._o p._n 290._o to_o confute_v i_o effectual_o he_o say_v much_o what_o the_o same_o which_o be_v much_o of_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o my_o book_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v false_a and_o malicious_a in_o i_o and_o true_a and_o charitable_a in_o he_o viz._n praise_v the_o first_o 300_o year_n when_o the_o bishop_n be_v such_o as_o we_o offer_v to_o submit_v to_o he_o add_v the_o follow_a age_n be_v not_o so_o happy_a but_o as_o christian_n general_o degenerate_v so_o do_v the_o bishop_n too_o ans_fw-fr what!_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o be_v a_o sad_a confession_n i_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v as_o a_o roman_a emperor_n say_v to_o a_o flatterer_n that_o still_o say_v all_o that_o he_o say_v dic_fw-la aliud_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ut_fw-la duo_fw-la simus_fw-la but_o his_o next_o word_n allay_v it_o but_o yet_o not_o so_o much_o as_o our_o author_n will_v make_v it_o appear_v as_o the_o dominican_n and_o oratorians_n must_v say_v some_o falsehood_n of_o calvine_n lest_o they_o be_v think_v calvinist_n and_o yet_o he_o add_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o four_o century_n be_v very_o unhappy_a to_o the_o church_n for_o persecution_n without_o and_o heresy_n and_o schism_n within_o meletius_n a_o egyytian_a begin_v a_o schism_n forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n next_o the_o donatist_n arian_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr it_o seem_v that_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n and_o valens_n be_v without_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o the_o arian_n priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v within_o it_o when_o he_o define_v the_o church_n we_o may_v understand_v this_o but_o be_v it_o not_o this_o four_o century_n that_o be_v make_v the_o church_n more_o flourish_a state_n by_o other_o §_o 7._o even_o the_o great_a historian_n of_o heresy_n epiphanius_n be_v say_v p._n 292._o to_o be_v unaccountable_o mistake_v in_o several_a thing_n relate_v to_o that_o history_n and_o 293._o have_v he_o strange_a unaccountable_a mistake_n in_o diverse_a other_o thing_n relate_v to_o that_o matter_n if_o i_o have_v at_o any_o time_n err_v with_o such_o a_o bishop_n and_o father_n i_o may_v have_v be_v excusable_a for_o recite_v his_o history_n §_o 8._o pag._n 295._o he_o open_v the_o very_a heart_n of_o his_o party_n principle_n and_o say_v the_o church_n be_v never_o distract_v more_o by_o any_o thing_n than_o project_n of_o moderation_n ans_fw-fr experience_n prove_v that_o you_o speak_v your_o heart_n the_o word_n be_v no_o wilful_a lie_n which_o agree_v with_o a_o man_n mind_n be_v they_o never_o so_o false_a as_o disagreeable_a to_o the_o matter_n no_o man_n be_v more_o of_o that_o opinion_n than_o hildebrand_n that_o will_v not_o yield_v the_o emperor_n the_o investiture_n nor_o as_o i_o before_o say_v abate_v the_o prince_n of_o calaris_n the_o shave_n of_o his_o bishop_n beard_n to_o save_v his_o kingdom_n victor_n begin_v with_o that_o opinion_n too_o soon_o but_o his_o successor_n have_v these_o thousand_o year_n be_v as_o much_o for_o it_o as_o you_o can_v wish_v 2._o but_o to_o who_o be_v it_o that_o you_o intend_v this_o sure_o not_o to_o all_o be_v bishop_n laud_n of_o that_o mind_n towards_o the_o papist_n if_o dr._n heylin_n say_v true_a be_v grotius_n of_o that_o mind_n towards_o they_o be_v archbishop_n bromhall_n forbes_n beziar_n thorndike_n and_o many_o more_o such_o of_o that_o mind_n no_o i_o will_v excuse_v you_o that_o you_o mean_v not_o they_o and_o their_o project_n of_o moderation_n nor_o i_o believe_v neither_o cassander_n erasmus_n wicelius_n sancta_fw-la
clara_n leander_n &c._n &c._n but_o towards_o such_o as_o i_o be_o you_o have_v be_v as_o firm_a to_o that_o principle_n as_o any_o one_o of_o our_o enemy_n can_v wish_v in_o 1660_o 1661._o it_o be_v most_o effectual_o improve_v and_o you_o have_v attain_v much_o of_o the_o fruit_n then_o foretell_v and_o ever_o since_o have_v be_v unmovable_o and_o prevail_o true_a to_o it_o 3._o but_o this_o make_v some_o man_n the_o distracter_n of_o the_o church_n if_o not_o the_o great_a which_o true_o i_o have_v better_a thought_n of_o such_o as_o junius_n paraeus_n amyraldus_n le_fw-fr blank_a davenant_n ward_n ʋsher_n holdsworth_n morton_n hall_n etc._n etc._n and_o late_o when_o we_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o king_n return_v bp._n brownrig_v and_o after_o his_o death_n dr._n gawden_n dr._n gulston_n dr._n allen_n dr._n bernard_n and_o diverse_a such_o do_v offer_v themselves_o to_o a_o treaty_n for_o moderation_n and_o since_o then_o dr._n wilkins_n dr._n burton_n dr._n tillotson_n and_o in_o diebus_fw-la illis_fw-la dr._n still_v fleet_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n of_o distract_n the_o church_n by_o project_n of_o moderation_n but_o i_o can_v name_v the_o bps._n that_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o it_o to_o abate_v or_o forsake_v the_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n on_o pretence_n of_o moderation_n be_v to_o destroy_v christianity_n on_o pretence_n of_o humanity_n or_o peace_n but_o to_o make_v law_n that_o man_n shall_v preach_v with_o horn_n on_o their_o head_n to_o signify_v the_o victory_n of_o truth_n and_o to_o ruin_v all_o that_o will_v not_o keep_v these_o law_n much_o more_o if_o man_n shall_v command_v worse_a and_o to_o say_v a_o project_n for_o moderation_n will_v distract_v the_o church_n will_v be_v as_o far_o from_o wisdom_n as_o it_o be_v from_o moderation_n and_o some_o prelate_n have_v do_v as_o bad_a as_o this_o §_o 9_o he_o confess_v p._n 296._o that_o by_o force_n and_o fraud_n the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v turn_v arian_n and_o do_v i_o ever_o say_v worse_o of_o the_o bishop_n than_o this_o §_o 10._o he_o make_v aerius_n to_o speak_v against_o bishop_n because_o he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o bishop_n so_o that_o he_o be_v of_o a_o prelatical_a judgement_n and_o spirit_n and_o call_v he_o the_o cartwright_n of_o the_o time_n by_o which_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o cartwright_n will_v have_v be_v a_o bishop_n it_o do_v but_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o deserve_v little_a belief_n in_o his_o history_n §_o 11._o he_o be_v a_o most_o singular_a historian_n p._n 303._o in_o tell_v we_o that_o after_o the_o monothelite_n in_o follow_a age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o devil_n start_v up_o but_o few_o heresy_n till_o these_o age_n swenk_n feldian_n anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o i_o perceive_v he_o believe_v neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n for_o the_o papist_n name_v many_o heresy_n since_o and_o the_o protestant_n say_v that_o popery_n be_v but_o a_o composition_n of_o many_o heresy_n and_o name_v we_o many_o that_o concur_v thereto_o §_o 12._o he_o there_o give_v i_o this_o serious_a admonition_n it_o be_v a_o much_o great_a wonder_n that_o any_o man_n that_o make_v conscience_n of_o what_o he_o say_v shall_v against_o all_o truth_n of_o history_n and_o against_o his_o own_o knowledge_n charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o all_o the_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n that_o a_o person_n that_o seem_v so_o sensible_a of_o approach_a judgement_n as_o frequent_o to_o put_v himself_o in_o mind_n of_o it_o shall_v yet_o advance_v so_o malicious_a and_o groundless_a a_o accusation_n there_o be_v no_o dally_v with_o the_o all-seeing_a god_n what_o plea_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o whole_a book_n full_a of_o calumny_n and_o detraction_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o acceptable_a passage_n to_o i_o in_o his_o book_n i_o love_v the_o man_n the_o better_a for_o seem_v serious_a in_o the_o belief_n of_o judgement_n and_o i_o hope_v his_o warn_v shall_v make_v i_o search_v my_o heart_n with_o some_o more_o jealousy_n and_o care_n he_o seem_v here_o to_o believe_v himself_o but_o be_v myself_o far_o more_o concern_v than_o he_o be_v to_o know_v how_o far_o i_o be_o guilty_a of_o what_o i_o be_o accuse_v as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v know_v my_o heart_n and_o write_n i_o will_v tell_v the_o reader_n what_o to_o judge_v of_o his_o word_n and_o i_o 1._o that_o i_o charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o all_o the_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n never_o be_v in_o my_o mind_n nor_o can_v i_o find_v it_o in_o any_o of_o my_o write_n yet_o this_o he_o very_o oft_o repeat_v and_o shall_v a_o man_n so_o often_o write_v a_o falsehood_n about_o a_o thing_n visible_a and_o never_o cite_v the_o place_n where_o i_o say_v it_o and_o this_o while_o he_o be_v thus_o serious_o mention_v calumny_n and_o judgement_n 2._o can_v he_o make_v man_n believe_v at_o once_o that_o i_o do_v persuade_v man_n that_o bishop_n or_o diocesanes_n come_v not_o up_o till_o about_o 150_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o yet_o that_o i_o make_v they_o the_o author_n of_o the_o heresy_n that_o be_v in_o those_o time_n non_fw-la entis_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la actio_fw-la can_v bishop_n be_v heretic_n when_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n 3._o if_o i_o have_v charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o all_o the_o heresy_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o i_o have_v charge_v no_o one_o else_o with_o they_o and_o make_v the_o bishop_n the_o sole_a author_n and_o acquit_v people_n priests_z and_o prince_n why_o then_o do_v he_o name_v many_o monk_n and_o priest_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o emperor_n that_o promote_v they_o as_o if_o this_o cross_v what_o i_o say_v do_v he_o think_v that_o i_o exclude_v the_o army_n if_o i_o blame_v the_o general_n or_o the_o prelatical_a priest_n when_o i_o blame_v the_o prelate_n if_o i_o take_v the_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o our_o church-schism_n and_o calamity_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o i_o acquit_v such_o as_o you_o and_o all_o the_o clergy_n like_o you_o 4._o that_o i_o have_v do_v this_o against_o all_o truth_n of_o history_n which_o i_o transcribe_v out_o of_o the_o council_n and_o historian_n most_o partial_a for_o the_o high_a prelacy_n be_v either_o a_o great_a untruth_n and_o unprove_v by_o he_o or_o i_o know_v not_o what_o i_o read_v or_o write_v 5._o that_o i_o do_v this_o against_o my_o own_o knowledge_n i_o be_o certain_a be_v a_o untruth_n 6._o that_o my_o accusation_n be_v malicious_a i_o be_o certain_a be_v untruth_n as_o be_v able_a to_o say_v that_o i_o speak_v in_o pity_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o save_v soul_n from_o deceit_n and_o malice_n no_o man_n but_o pray_v with_o the_o liturgy_n that_o god_n will_v forgive_v our_o enemy_n persecutor_n and_o slanderer_n and_o turn_v their_o heart_n 7._o that_o i_o have_v bring_v any_o groundless_a accusation_n i_o must_v take_v for_o a_o untruth_n till_o my_o ground_n produce_v be_v better_o confute_v 8._o much_o more_o that_o i_o write_v whole_a book_n full_a of_o calumny_n and_o detraction_n all_o these_o and_o more_o untruth_n be_v heap_v up_o with_o the_o mention_n of_o death_n and_o judgement_n tell_v we_o whither_o faction_n and_o prepossession_n may_v carry_v man_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v the_o truth_n i_o shall_v again_o brief_o tell_v the_o reader_n 1._o about_o 2000_o of_o such_o minister_n as_o i_o confident_o take_v for_o the_o most_o spiritual_a and_o conscionable_a and_o devote_a to_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n be_v silence_v and_o in_o law_n imprison_v and_o ruin_v and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o their_o mind_n be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la if_o they_o confess_v it_o excommunicate_v beside_o their_o other_o penalty_n i_o accuse_v not_o the_o law_n but_o mention_n only_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o the_o k._n once_o commission_v bps._n to_o have_v prevent_v 2._o the_o kingdom_n be_v doleful_o divide_v and_o alas_o the_o sad_a consequent_n be_v not_o to_o be_v name_v 3._o beside_o all_o our_o penalty_n the_o bishop_n accuse_v we_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o and_o as_o wilful_a schismatic_n and_o call_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n against_o we_o 4._o we_o say_v we_o dare_v not_o do_v that_o which_o when_o ever_o they_o will_v give_v we_o leave_v we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v our_o reason_n why_o we_o take_v it_o for_o heinous_a sin_n against_o god_n and_o tend_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o dare_v we_o forsake_v our_o ministry_n while_o the_o church_n necessity_n be_v to_o we_o past_o doubt_n 5._o we_o beg_v of_o they_o but_o to_o abate_v we_o some_o needless_a oath_n and_o covenant_n and_o profession_n and_o a_o few_o thing_n call_v indifferent_a by_o the_o imposer_n that_o we_o may_v all_o live_v
in_o christian_a love_n and_o peace_n and_o we_o offer_v they_o as_o unquestionable_a security_n for_o our_o peaceableness_n loyalty_n and_o orthodoxness_n as_o the_o say_a oath_n promise_n or_o profession_n can_v be_v 6._o they_o tell_v we_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v abate_v we_o and_o we_o must_v cease_v preach_v the_o rule_n must_v not_o be_v alter_v we_o will_v do_v more_o harm_n in_o the_o church_n than_o out_o project_n for_o moderation_n most_o distract_v the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o concord_n or_o liberty_n to_o be_v expect_v but_o by_o our_o total_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v obey_v the_o church_n yea_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o concord_n 7._o to_o confute_v this_o supposition_n which_o be_v the_o root_n of_o our_o calamity_n i_o transcribe_v out_o of_o history_n and_o the_o act_n of_o council_n how_o great_a a_o hand_n in_o the_o schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o confusion_n of_o christian_n those_o bishop_n have_v have_v who_o have_v swell_v up_o above_o the_o primitive_a species_n by_o vast_a diocese_n wealth_n and_o claim_v of_o government_n over_o other_o church_n and_o bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o this_o grandeur_n and_o exorbitant_a power_n of_o bishop_n single_o or_o in_o council_n have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o keep_v the_o church_n from_o schism_n that_o it_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o most_o age_n since_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o prelacy_n spring_v up_o and_o that_o popery_n come_v not_o up_o in_o a_o day_n but_o rise_v from_o that_o juniority_n to_o its_o present_a maturity_n this_o be_v my_o work_n §_o 13._o he_o true_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o original_a of_o all_o mischief_n be_v the_o lust_v that_o war_n in_o our_o member_n and_o not_o this_o or_o that_o order_n of_o men._n when_o the_o world_n have_v a_o good_a pope_n if_o god_n will_v bless_v that_o order_n of_o man_n some_o think_v he_o may_v do_v more_o good_a than_o any_o other_o man_n but_o he_o have_v touch_v the_o core_n of_o the_o church_n malady_n very_o the_o grand_a strife_n be_v between_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o of_o the_o woman_n and_o if_o patriarch_n and_o diocesan_n be_v but_o as_o much_o set_v on_o the_o promote_a of_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a life_n as_o those_o minister_n be_v who_o they_o silence_n and_o imprison_v they_o may_v do_v much_o good_a though_o the_o largeness_n of_o their_o diocese_n render_v they_o uncapable_a of_o perform_v the_o 40th_o part_n of_o a_o true_a bishop_n work_n no_o doubt_n but_o bishop_n hall_n and_o potter_n and_o usher_n etc._n etc._n do_v much_o good_a by_o such_o preach_n write_a and_o good_a live_n as_o other_o use_v that_o be_v no_o bishop_n but_o will_v fire_n burn_v without_o fuel_n and_o will_v it_o not_o burn_v if_o combustible_a fuel_n be_v contiguous_a do_v not_o the_o lust_v that_o war_n in_o our_o member_n live_v upon_o that_o food_n which_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o provide_v do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v not_o more_o desire_v riches_n than_o poverty_n honour_n than_o a_o low_a estate_n domination_n over_o other_o to_o have_v our_o will_n on_o all_o than_o humble_a subjection_n where_o the_o carcase_n be_v there_o will_v the_o eagle_n be_v gather_v do_v not_o you_o yourself_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n grow_v more_o corrupt_a after_o the_o three_o century_n do_v you_o believe_v that_o when_o a_o bishop_n power_n be_v make_v equal_a to_o a_o great_a lord_n or_o more_o and_o all_o his_o pomp_n and_o riches_n answerable_a that_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n will_v not_o more_o greedy_o desire_v it_o than_o it_o will_v desire_v a_o mere_a mediocrity_n or_o that_o a_o worldly_a proud_a man_n will_v not_o seek_v more_o for_o lordship_n and_o greatness_n than_o a_o synesius_n and_o such_o other_o as_o you_o say_v flee_v from_o it_o if_o the_o poor_a retire_a monk_n be_v as_o bad_a as_o you_o make_v they_o what_o wonder_v if_o great_a lordly_a bishop_n be_v much_o worse_o will_v not_o the_o fire_n of_o lust_n grow_v great_a as_o the_o fuel_n be_v great_a i_o be_o satisfy_v that_o riches_n and_o power_n well_o use_v may_v great_o serve_v the_o interest_n of_o religion_n but_o two_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v 1._o that_o the_o great_a power_n and_o wealth_n be_v far_o more_o desire_v by_o carnal_a worldling_n that_o be_v by_o bad_a man_n than_o by_o mortify_a heavenly_a mind_a man_n the_o more_o man_n desire_v they_o the_o more_o eager_o they_o will_v seek_v they_o by_o friend_n flattery_n or_o any_o mean_n and_o therefore_o the_o like_a they_o be_v to_o attain_v they_o except_o when_o the_o chooser_n be_v some_o resolve_v godly_a man_n and_o so_o which_o way_n can_v a_o succession_n of_o the_o worst_a man_n be_v avoid_v but_o a_o mediocrity_n that_o do_v not_o to_o the_o flesh_n overweigh_v the_o labour_n and_o difficulty_n of_o the_o sacred_a office_n will_v encourage_v the_o good_a and_o not_o much_o tempt_v the_o bad_a or_o if_o good_a man_n will_v be_v never_o so_o bountiful_a to_o pious_a use_n their_o bounty_n and_o church-land_n may_v better_o maintain_v labourer_n enough_o for_o the_o work_n than_o be_v make_v a_o snare_n to_o one_o 2._o and_o that_o power_n which_o depopulate_v and_o destroy_v its_o end_n be_v unlawful_a in_o its_o very_a state_n as_o well_o as_o in_o its_o use_n the_o power_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v sole_a physician_n to_o the_o city_n and_o to_o have_v none_o but_o apothecary_n under_o he_o or_o of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o only_a schoolmaster_n in_o the_o county_n and_o have_v none_o but_o usher_n under_o he_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v destruction_n than_o power_n it_o be_v bishop_n cast_v out_o power_n that_o i_o be_o against_o that_o be_v the_o necessary_a power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o parish_n minister_n or_o put_v down_o necessary_a bishop_n and_o also_o a_o power_n to_o silence_n christ_n faithful_a minister_n and_o deprive_v soul_n of_o the_o necessary_a mean_n by_o impose_v thing_n needless_a in_o themselves_o and_o sinful_a in_o the_o receiver_n that_o after_o his_o best_a search_n believe_v they_o such_o see_v then_o that_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lust_n that_o war_v in_o man_n that_o be_v the_o corrupt_a of_o the_o church_n let_v but_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a roman_a clergy_n these_o 1000_o year_n at_o least_o tell_v we_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o the_o swell_a of_o the_o power_n and_o wealth_n of_o bishop_n that_o have_v cause_v so_o long_a a_o succession_n of_o a_o worldly_a lustful_a tyrannical_a clergy_n §_o 14._o and_o he_o true_o say_v p._n 306._o that_o the_o generality_n of_o man_n when_o they_o have_v gain_v wealth_n and_o honour_n be_v common_o willing_a to_o secure_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o those_o possession_n by_o let_v thing_n run_v in_o their_o ordinary_a course_n the_o spanish_a proverb_n be_v the_o world_n be_v a_o carrion_n and_o they_o be_v dog_n that_o love_v it_o and_o they_o will_v snarl_v at_o any_o that_o will_v take_v it_o from_o they_o and_o if_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o ditch_n dog_n rather_o than_o man_n will_v gather_v about_o it_o and_o its_o pity_n such_o man_n shall_v by_o such_o a_o bait_n be_v tempt_v into_o the_o sacred_a chair_n and_o he_o true_o add_v that_o repulse_v and_o disappointment_n will_v end_v such_o man_n patience_n for_o real_o as_o the_o man_n be_v such_o be_v his_o desire_n it_o be_v not_o only_a turgent_fw-la prelacy_n but_o a_o prelatical_a spirit_n that_o troublerh_n the_o church_n and_o if_o novatianus_n or_o arius_n will_v fain_o be_v a_o prelate_n it_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o no_o wonder_n if_o he_o be_v a_o schismatic_a trahit_fw-la sua_fw-la quemque_fw-la voluptas_fw-la appetite_n be_v the_o spring_n of_o action_n all_o the_o pope_n clergy_n be_v much_o of_o his_o mind_n for_o they_o participate_v of_o his_o worldly_a interest_n and_o depend_v on_o he_o and_o therefore_o participate_v of_o the_o papal_a spirit_n the_o interest_n of_o the_o general_n and_o army_n be_v conjunct_a §_o 15._o and_o its_o true_a that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n interest_n oblige_v he_o to_o maintain_v peace_n and_o unity_n and_o so_o no_o doubt_n from_o that_o sense_n of_o interest_n it_o be_v endeavour_v in_o italy_n spain_n france_n germany_n etc._n etc._n when_o a_o strong_a man_n arm_v keep_v his_o house_n the_o thing_n which_o he_o possess_v be_v in_o peace_n but_o whether_o therefore_o the_o people_n do_v ill_a that_o forsake_v the_o bishop_n and_o follow_v luther_n or_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o cleave_v to_o the_o bishop_n unity_n be_v the_o doubt_n §_o 16._o whether_o it_o be_v true_a p._n 310_o that_o
very_o few_o if_o any_o one_o be_v bishop_n when_o they_o turn_v heretic_n i_o have_v inquire_v in_o the_o preface_n though_o if_o they_o ascend_v from_o heresy_n to_o prelacy_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o but_o by_o this_o i_o conjecture_v that_o he_o take_v few_o for_o heretic_n than_o other_o do_v and_o that_o he_o pretend_v acquaintance_n with_o their_o mind_n in_o that_o antecedent_n part_n of_o their_o life_n which_o no_o history_n mention_v i_o confess_v i_o think_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n man_n be_v papist_n fore_o they_o be_v pope_n or_o papist_n bishop_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v that_o it_o be_v first_o the_o desire_n of_o papal_n and_o prelatical_a grandeur_n and_o next_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o schism_n and_o persecution_n §_o 17._o i_o very_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v that_o platonic_a philosophy_n and_o a_o willingness_n to_o win_v the_o heathen_n by_o compliance_n have_v a_o great_a hand_n in_o corrupt_v many_o doctrine_n and_o not_o only_a monk_n but_o other_o of_o the_o most_o religious_a christian_n have_v a_o great_a hand_n in_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a superstition_n especial_o those_o that_o tend_v to_o the_o over-honouring_a of_o their_o martyr_n and_o too_o much_o advancement_n of_o their_o bishop_n when_o they_o come_v new_o from_o under_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o heathen_n but_o it_o come_v not_o to_o be_v universal_a nor_o the_o engine_n of_o great_a corruption_n and_o cruelty_n till_o the_o bishop_n turn_v all_o into_o a_o law_n who_o can_v make_v any_o of_o all_o this_o necessary_a but_o pope_n prelate_n or_o prince_n who_o pretend_v a_o legislative_a power_n hereto_o even_o luther_n and_o melancthon_n be_v indifferent_a to_o diverse_a ceremony_n so_o they_o be_v make_v to_o be_v indifferent_o use_v but_o when_o they_o be_v make_v necessary_a by_o a_o law_n special_o more_o necessary_a to_o a_o minister_n than_o his_o ministry_n and_o to_o a_o private_a christian_a than_o his_o church_n communion_n who_o do_v more_o vehement_o condemn_v they_o than_o they_o §_o 18._o that_o paschasius_fw-la radbertus_n be_v the_o first_o that_o broach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o doubtful_a expression_n either_o he_o mean_v the_o name_n or_o only_o the_o thing_n under_o another_o name_n if_o the_o latter_a he_o will_v do_v more_o than_o edm._n albertinus_n or_o bp._n consius_fw-la have_v do_v if_o he_o prove_v it_o if_o it_o be_v the_o name_n that_o he_o mean_v i_o think_v by_o my_o memory_n for_o i_o will_v not_o for_o that_o go_v read_v he_o all_o over_o that_o he_o will_v not_o find_v the_o name_n in_o radbertus_n nor_o any_o where_o before_o stephanus_n eduensis_n about_o 130_o year_n after_o he_o and_o that_o all_o that_o he_o can_v true_o say_v be_v but_o as_o bellarmine_n do_v hic_fw-la author_n primus_fw-la suis_fw-la qui_fw-la seriò_fw-la &_o copiosè_fw-la scripsit_fw-la de_fw-la veritate_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o eucharistia_n contra_fw-la bertramum_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la §_o 19_o that_o the_o bishop_n charge_v by_o i_o with_o these_o corruption_n be_v the_o only_a opposer_n of_o they_o that_o we_o find_v in_o antiquity_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o africa_n and_o spain_n be_v a_o say_n very_o near_a kin_n to_o much_o of_o his_o history_n i_o confess_v that_o so_o few_o presbyter_n in_o comparison_n of_o bishop_n be_v public_a actor_n who_o judgement_n be_v notify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n after_o constantine_n time_n if_o there_o be_v more_o proof_n of_o their_o word_n and_o deed_n than_o of_o other_o man_n but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o excellent_a man_n here_o slander_v against_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o church-history_n and_o their_o own_o write_n yet_o in_o our_o hand_n will_v it_o be_v worth_a the_o reader_n price_n and_o labour_n i_o can_v swell_v my_o book_n with_o the_o proof_n that_o what_o he_o speak_v be_v untrue_a do_v he_o think_v that_o i_o can_v not_o prove_v that_o justin_n martyr_n athenagoras_n tatianus_n tertullian_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n origen_n arnobius_n lactantius_n macarius_n maternus_n firmicus_n ephrem_fw-la syrus_n faustinus_n hierome_n ruffinus_n prudentius_n sulpitius_n severus_n sedulius_n mammertus_n cassianus_n vincent_n lirinensis_n socrates_n sozomen_n isodore_n pelusiota_n etc._n etc._n do_v something_o in_o opposition_n to_o some_o church-corruption_n though_o some_o of_o they_o promote_v some_o other_o yea_o antony_n and_o abundance_n of_o monk_n that_o further_v some_o oppose_v other_o no_o less_o dangerous_a though_o many_o of_o they_o may_v be_v accuse_v as_o bellarmine_n do_v sulpit._n severus_n for_o say_v ecclesiam_fw-la auro_fw-la non_fw-la strui_fw-la sed_fw-la destrui_fw-la judge_n of_o time_n pass_v by_o what_o we_o see_v be_v it_o only_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n church-corrupting_a usurpation_n in_o italy_n spain_n france_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o only_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v against_o the_o mass_n corruption_n and_o against_o all_o their_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n purgatory_n image_n etc._n etc._n and_o against_o all_o their_o ceremony_n and_o profane_a abuse_n of_o holy_a thing_n be_v it_o only_o the_o bishop_n at_o constance_n and_o basil_n that_o be_v against_o suppress_v the_o bohemian_a and_o moravian_n reformation_n in_o the_o end_n of_o lydius_n upon_o prateolus_n you_o may_v read_v a_o letter_n subscribe_v by_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o lord_n and_o great_a man_n for_o john_n hus_n and_o hierome_n and_o the_o reformation_n which_o yet_o prevail_v not_o with_o the_o bishop_n as_o will_v tell_v you_o who_o be_v then_o the_o great_a opposer_n of_o church-corruption_n and_o i_o think_v prince_n and_o drs._n oppose_v it_o more_o than_o bps._n in_o luther_n time_n be_v it_o only_o the_o bishop_n that_o have_v oppose_v warp_a towards_o rome_n for_o church-unity_n have_v none_o but_o bishop_n be_v against_o corrupt_v the_o church_n by_o silence_v good_a minister_n and_o ordain_v bad_a one_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v have_v be_v i_o confess_v our_o difference_n be_v great_a on_o the_o case_n what_o be_v to_o be_v account_v church-corruption_n for_o that_o which_o in_o one_o country_n go_v for_o corruption_n in_o another_o yea_o the_o same_o go_v for_o church-glory_n strength_n and_o beauty_n our_o main_a difference_n be_v about_o what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v bad_a what_o be_v virtue_n and_o what_o be_v vice_n §_o 20._o he_o next_o come_v to_o sedition_n and_o ask_v what_o reign_n have_v they_o disturb_v here_o with_o their_o sedition_n and_o because_o he_o know_v that_o i_o can_v refer_v he_o to_o the_o large_a volume_n of_o their_o treason_n write_v by_o prin_fw-mi and_o abroad_o to_o the_o many_o volume_n in_o goldastus_n and_o the_o many_o history_n of_o the_o war_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n against_o emperor_n he_o prevent_v all_o my_o proof_n with_o a_o downright_a untruth_n that_o if_o a_o man_n be_v not_o blind_a he_o may_v see_v that_o my_o history_n be_v only_o design_v against_o protestant_a bishop_n under_o a_o general_a name_n ans_fw-fr be_v it_o not_o enough_o so_o gross_o to_o write_v this_o untruth_n of_o i_o but_o he_o must_v also_o reproach_v all_o the_o reader_n as_o blind_v that_o will_v not_o judge_v false_o of_o what_o they_o read_v do_v he_o know_v my_o meaning_n better_o than_o myself_o he_o know_v that_o i_o plead_v for_o the_o primitive_a episcopacy_n and_o that_o i_o profess_v to_o intend_v this_o history_n most_o to_o discover_v the_o rise_n growth_n and_o maturity_n of_o the_o popish_a destructive_a sort_n of_o prelacy_n reader_n can_v you_o believe_v this_o man_n that_o i_o write_v the_o case_n of_o the_o bishop_n before_o and_o under_o popery_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o above_o five_o hundred_o council_n and_o all_o these_o before_o the_o name_n of_o a_o protestant_a bishop_n be_v know_v in_o the_o world_n and_o as_o he_o say_v gather_v their_o fault_n and_o all_o this_o only_a against_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n and_o not_o against_o pope_n or_o prelate_n or_o any_o of_o the_o council_n that_o i_o name_v perhaps_o he_o will_v tempt_v i_o to_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o history_n of_o bishop_n laua_n trial_n or_o to_o what_o bishop_n abbot_n george_n and_o robert_n bishop_n hall_n and_o other_o say_v against_o he_o or_o to_o tell_v he_o of_o a._n bp._n william_n arm_n for_o the_o parliament_n but_o these_o be_v not_o subject_n fit_a for_o our_o debate_n §_o 21._o p._n 318._o when_o i_o say_v that_o where_o prelacy_n with_o the_o papist_n be_v at_o the_o high_a prince_n be_v at_o the_o low_a he_o ask_v be_v it_o the_o bishop_n or_o the_o papist_n that_o be_v here_o to_o blame_v be_v this_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o order_n ans_fw-fr 1._o i_o think_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v
the_o same_o 2._o but_o this_o corrector_n of_o history_n take_v untruth_n not_o only_a into_o the_o completion_n but_o the_o stamina_n and_o scope_n of_o his_o book_n among_o all_o the_o rest_n suppose_v i_o to_o speak_v against_o a_o bishop_n as_o a_o bishop_n when_o i_o have_v trouble_v he_o with_o my_o repeat_n so_o often_o that_o i_o be_o for_o bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o office_n but_o the_o tumour_n and_o that_o tumour_n that_o make_v another_o species_n which_o i_o oppose_v do_v he_o not_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n bishopric_n be_v faulty_a yea_o as_o a_o corrupt_a species_n and_o as_o it_o be_v more_o tumid_a than_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o the_o patriarch_n more_o tumid_a than_o the_o metropolitan_n and_o that_o than_o the_o diocesanes_n and_o if_o dr._n hammond_n be_v not_o deceive_v who_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o state_v worship_v assembly_n in_o scripture_n time_n without_o a_o present_a bishop_n be_v not_o the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o a_o thousand_o or_o a_o hundred_o such_o assembly_n different_a from_o a_o bishop_n of_o one_o only_a and_o if_o many_o canon_n speak_v true_o that_o say_v a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v in_o every_o city_n that_o have_v a_o church_n and_o every_o great_a town_n like_o our_o corporation_n and_o market_n town_n be_v call_v a_o city_n do_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o one_o city_n and_o a_o bishop_n of_o 50_o or_o 40_o or_o 10_o differ_v so_o far_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v against_o one_o without_o be_v against_o the_o other_o do_v he_o speak_v against_o patriarch_n that_o speak_v against_o the_o pope_n or_o against_o diocesanes_n that_o speak_v against_o patriarch_n or_o against_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n that_o speak_v only_o against_o such_o diocesanes_n as_o put_v they_o all_o down_o and_o all_o their_o church_n and_o almost_o all_o true_a discipline_n of_o such_o church_n like_o erastians_n §_o 22._o p._n 319._o 322._o his_o charge_n on_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n shake_v the_o credit_n of_o church_n history_n as_o write_v that_o which_o no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v believe_v as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o they_o without_o love_v a_o malicious_a lye_n i_o speak_v to_o before_o if_o such_o historian_n believe_v not_o what_o they_o write_v or_o love_v a_o malicious_a lie_n alas_o who_o shall_v we_o believe_v be_v he_o better_o than_o they_o and_o his_o note_n that_o valesius_fw-la judge_v eusebius_n nicome_v no_o heretic_n i_o before_o note_v but_o i_o will_v follow_v that_o case_n no_o further_o lest_o he_o shall_v draw_v i_o to_o seem_v to_o charge_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n with_o sedition_n who_o i_o never_o intend_v so_o to_o charge_n but_o only_o to_o desire_v those_o that_o can_v excuse_v the_o language_n e._n g._n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a to_o ph●cas_n of_o ambrose_n to_o eugenius_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o maximus_n and_o many_o such_o like_a not_o implacable_o to_o reproach_n and_o hunt_v those_o that_o do_v no_o more_o or_o not_o so_o much_o §_o 23._o his_o full_a stomach_n discharge_v itself_o against_o i_o three_o time_n over_o with_o one_o charge_n p._n 314_o 320_o 352._o oliver_n cromwell_n and_o his_o son_n the_o david_n and_o absalon_n of_o mr._n b._n and_o he_o compare_v the_o most_o barbarous_a villain_n in_o the_o world_n to_o king_n david_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o his_o son_n ans_fw-fr reader_n if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n in_o any_o of_o my_o write_n after_o all_o these_o accusation_n of_o this_o man_n and_o many_o such_o other_o i_o must_v leave_v it_o to_o thyself_o how_o thou_o will_v name_v these_o man_n their_o history_n and_o their_o deal_n for_o if_o i_o name_v they_o they_o will_v say_v i_o rail_v yea_o what_o if_o this_o very_a man_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o know_v why_o and_o whence_o do_v even_o here_o p._n 352._o etc._n etc._n reprint_v the_o very_a epistle_n which_o he_o thus_o accuse_v and_o cite_v no_o such_o word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o know_v there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n there_o and_o yet_o thus_o affirm_v it_o what_o will_v you_o call_v this_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o himself_o be_v these_o many_o observe_v that_o you_o have_v be_v strange_o keep_v from_o participate_v in_o any_o of_o our_o late_a bloody_a contention_n that_o god_n may_v make_v you_o a_o healer_n of_o our_o handle_n breach_n and_o employ_v you_o in_o that_o temple_n work_n which_o david_n himself_o may_v not_o be_v honour_v with_o though_o it_o be_v in_o his_o mind_n because_o he_o have_v shed_v blood_n abundant_o and_o make_v great_a war_n 1_o chr._n 22._o 7_o 8._o be_v here_o ever_o a_o word_n of_o oliver_n be_v he_o here_o call_v david_n do_v i_o not_o purposely_o say_v david_n himself_n and_o cite_v the_o text_n lest_o any_o shall_v feign_v the_o same_o that_o he_o do_v any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o to_o accuse_v my_o thought_n and_o suspect_v that_o i_o have_v such_o a_o meaning_n and_o who_o make_v he_o acquaint_v with_o thought_n that_o be_v never_o utter_v or_o make_v he_o a_o judge_n of_o they_o if_o his_o and_o other_o man_n thought_n may_v be_v thus_o by_o conjecture_n accuse_v no_o enemy_n need_v to_o want_v matter_n of_o accusation_n it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v appeal_v to_o my_o conscience_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o my_o thought_n and_o 1._o by_o what_o authority_n will_v he_o so_o do_v 2._o but_o i_o will_v shrive_v myself_o to_o he_o this_o once_o it_o be_v so_o long_o since_o that_o true_o i_o remember_v not_o what_o be_v in_o my_o thought_n any_o further_a than_o my_o word_n express_v but_o i_o well_o remember_v my_o former_a action_n and_o what_o be_v then_o my_o judgement_n of_o oliver_n and_o his_o action_n and_o i_o use_v not_o to_o speak_v against_o my_o judgement_n many_o know_v that_o he_o be_v acquaint_v the_o first_o day_n that_o i_o go_v into_o the_o army_n which_o be_v after_o naseby_n fight_v that_o i_o be_v send_v by_o a_o assembly_n of_o divine_n to_o try_v whether_o i_o can_v turn_v the_o soldier_n against_o his_o subvert_v design_n then_o first_o discover_v to_o i_o he_o will_v never_o once_o speak_v to_o i_o while_o i_o be_v in_o the_o army_n and_o that_o ever_o after_o i_o be_v drive_v away_o i_o open_o in_o pulpit_n press_n and_o conference_n disow_v and_o warn_v man_n to_o disow_v his_o action_n against_o king_n and_o parliament_n and_o his_o usurpation_n and_o that_o i_o write_v against_o the_o engagement_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o ever_o i_o mean_v to_o call_v he_o david_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o never_o do_v it_o but_o they_o say_v old_a man_n can_v see_v better_o afar_o off_o than_o near_a at_o hand_n and_o so_o all_o these_o notorious_a untruth_n about_o visible_a present_a thing_n may_v yet_o consist_v with_o such_o man_n credibility_n about_o thing_n say_v and_o do_v 1300_o year_n ago_o §_o 24._o and_o now_o i_o be_o here_o i_o must_v not_o pass_v by_o his_o friendly_a admonition_n p._n 357._o after_o his_o recite_v my_o epistle_n if_o i_o be_v as_o worthy_a to_o advise_v mr._n b._n as_o he_o be_v to_o advise_v cromwell_n i_o will_v say_v it_o be_v much_o more_o adviseable_a for_o a_o christian_a special_o for_o one_o that_o think_v he_o be_v so_o near_o his_o eternal_a state_n to_o repent_v and_o cry_v peccavimas_fw-la than_o to_o stand_v on_o justification_n of_o the_o fact_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o be_v be_v usual_a for_o man_n to_o choose_v their_o own_o confessor_n but_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o time_n for_o pastor_n and_o confessor_n to_o be_v force_v on_o dissenter_n i_o will_v submit_v now_o to_o your_o way_n though_o my_o former_a confession_n and_o my_o communion_n with_o you_o have_v be_v turn_v to_o reproach_n and_o scorn_n 1._o i_o do_v daily_o beg_v earnest_o of_o god_n to_o let_v none_o of_o my_o sin_n be_v unknown_a to_o i_o and_o take_v for_o no_o sin_n and_o be_v unrepented_a of_o and_o that_o he_o will_v forgive_v that_o which_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v and_o do_v not_o 2._o i_o do_v not_o repent_v of_o own_v oliver_n action_n against_o king_n and_o parliament_n or_o his_o usurpation_n for_o i_o never_o own_v they_o nor_o the_o action_n of_o they_o that_o set_v up_o his_o son_n 3._o i_o do_v not_o repent_v that_o i_o love_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o i_o desire_v the_o governor_n though_o a_o usurper_n shall_v do_v good_a and_o not_o evil_a 4._o i_o do_v not_o repent_v that_o see_v the_o army_n rebellion_n and_o confusion_n i_o stir_v up_o ruler_n and_o people_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o favour_v so_o great_a sin_n 5._o but_o i_o do_v now_o by_o experience_n of_o other_o way_n perceive_v that_o i_o be_v sometime_o too_o eager_a in_o aggravate_v man_n
error_n and_o repent_v that_o i_o use_v not_o more_o forbearance_n of_o some_o of_o my_o accusation_n of_o some_o of_o they_o 6._o i_o do_v think_v that_o richard_n cromwell_n be_v a_o usurper_n but_o when_o we_o have_v be_v twelve_o year_n at_o least_o without_o a_o rightful_a governor_n i_o then_o think_v as_o thomas_n white_a alias_o blacklow_n the_o moderate_a papist_n write_v that_o the_o land_n can_v not_o subsist_v in_o society_n without_o some_o government_n and_o that_o no-government_n be_v worse_a to_o the_o people_n than_o a_o usurp_v one_o and_o that_o it_o be_v sometime_o lawful_a to_o submit_v and_o use_v a_o usurper_n when_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o approve_v his_o entrance_n and_o wherein_o i_o be_v deceive_v i_o be_o willing_a to_o be_v better_o inform_v 7._o but_o i_o do_v unfeigned_o repent_v that_o i_o write_v those_o two_o epistle_n though_o it_o be_v to_o put_v a_o man_n on_o to_o do_v good_a who_o i_o never_o see_v ●or_a ●●●●_o have_v the_o least_o to_o do_v with_o 8._o and_o i_o do_v more_o repent_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o viz._n that_o i_o appoint_v god_n a_o time_n and_o limit_v his_o providence_n and_o think_v that_o because_o so_o many_o army_n and_o endeavour_n have_v fail_v twelve_o or_o fourteen_o year_n that_o have_v attempt_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o king_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o probability_n of_o accomplish_v it_o i_o do_v not_o repent_v that_o i_o be_v not_o a_o prophet_n to_o know_v before_o what_o god_n will_v do_v for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n nor_o do_v i_o repent_v that_o i_o preach_v christ_n gospel_n under_o usurper_n but_o i_o repent_v that_o i_o wait_v not_o god_n time_n and_o do_v not_o better_o consider_v that_o want_n of_o humane_a power_n be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o omnipotency_n and_o nothing_o be_v difficult_a to_o he_o 9_o i_o be_v draw_v too_o far_o by_o mr._n harrington_n scorn_v and_o the_o dislike_n of_o sir_n henry_n vane_n attempt_n for_o a_o commonwealth_n to_o meddle_v with_o matter_n of_o government_n and_o to_o write_v my_o political_a aphorism_n call_v a_o holy_a commonwealth_n and_o i_o do_v unfeigned_o repent_v that_o ever_o i_o write_v and_o publish_v it_o and_o have_v not_o more_o confine_v myself_o to_o the_o matter_n proper_a to_o my_o call_v and_o let_v those_o meddle_v with_o form_n of_o government_n who_o be_v fit_a for_o it_o all_o these_o beside_o what_o be_v former_o say_v to_o mr._n bagshaw_n i_o declare_v my_o unfeigned_a repentance_n of_o and_o though_o it_o please_v you_o to_o feign_v i_o a_o schismatic_a and_o hater_n of_o repentance_n for_o speak_v against_o the_o fault●_n that_o need_v it_o i_o shall_v thank_v you_o to_o be_v a_o real_a helper_n of_o i_o in_o so_o necessary_a a_o work_n as_o repentance_n be_v and_o that_o i_o may_v do_v the_o like_a by_o you_o i_o shall_v now_o only_o requite_v you_o with_o this_o advice_n that_o before_o you_o write_v next_o you_o will_v set_v before_o your_o eye_n the_o nine_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o thy_o neighbour_n and_o that_o when_o you_o say_v your_o prayer_n you_o will_v be_v serious_a when_o you_o say_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o incline_v our_o heart_n to_o keep_v this_o law_n §_o 25._o a_o roman_a zeal_n tell_v we_o that_o faction_n and_o schism_n when_o animate_v by_o worldly_a interest_n and_o grow_v up_o to_o a_o malignant_a hatred_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o person_n that_o be_v averse_a to_o it_o be_v hardly_o bound_v but_o be_v thrive_a up_o towards_o destructive_a persecution_n as_o swell_a prelacy_n do_v towards_o the_o papacy_n and_o the_o inquisition_n it_o be_v not_o one_o or_o two_o fish_n that_o will_v satisfy_v the_o stomach_n of_o a_o pike_n nor_o be_v it_o the_o slander_v or_o ruine_v of_o one_o or_o two_o man_n or_o silence_v of_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n that_o will_v satisfy_v a_o malignant_a spirit_n one_o meal_n will_v not_o make_v a_o lean_a man_n fat_a whether_o there_o be_v a_o legion_n in_o those_o that_o will_v destroy_v a_o legion_n of_o christ_n servant_n or_o one_o have_v so_o much_o power_n i_o know_v not_o but_o the_o effect_n tell_v we_o what_o manner_n of_o spirit_n they_o be_v of_o but_o let_v the_o papist_n pass_v §_o 26._o when_o i_o read_v p._n 337_o and_o 358_o 359._o and_o such_o passage_n it_o make_v i_o think_v of_o they_o that_o cry_v his_fw-la blood_n be_v on_o we_o and_o our_o child_n together_o with_o our_o judge_n word_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o or_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o my_o brethren_n you_o do_v it_o or_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o p._n 337._o he_o say_v there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o value_v the_o peaceable_a resignation_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n when_o we_o consider_v by_o what_o usurpation_n and_o violence_n they_o be_v bring_v in_o and_o what_o a_o number_n of_o worthy_a learned_a minister_n be_v turn_v out_o to_o make_v vacancy_n for_o these_o man_n who_o be_v to_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o new_a mystery_n of_o religion_n which_o their_o old_a pastor_n have_v not_o the_o conscience_n or_o ability_n to_o teach_v they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o rebellion_n and_o p._n 358_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v many_o of_o those_o minister_n usurper_n and_o have_v intrude_v into_o the_o church_n of_o other_o man_n who_o have_v be_v silence_v and_o cast_v out_o there_o be_v many_o other_o that_o be_v intruder_n into_o the_o ministry_n and_o such_o not_o a_o few_o of_o they_o as_o mr._n b._n himself_o will_v not_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o have_v continue_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v such_o as_o will_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o rule_n that_o be_v then_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n but_o choose_v rather_o to_o leave_v their_o live_n and_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o help_v it_o any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v member_n of_o parliament_n for_o it_o be_v the_o law_n that_o tie_v they_o to_o their_o choice_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n if_o mr._n b._n mean_n what_o happen_v before_o the_o last_o civil_a war_n as_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o may_v than_o these_o ancient_a teacher_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o a_o antimonarchical_a antiepiscopal_a faction_n they_o will_v preach_v but_o they_o will_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o establish_v religion_n nay_o many_o of_o they_o will_v preach_v against_o it_o and_o against_o their_o governor_n too_o these_o be_v such_o incendiaries_n as_o no_o government_n will_v endure_v etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr when_o you_o have_v note_v this_o part_n of_o his_o history_n it_o will_v not_o be_v hard_a to_o judge_v of_o his_o credibility_n i._o the_o thing_n that_o he_o defend_v be_v the_o silence_v and_o prosecute_n of_o three_o sort_n of_o minister_n 1._o many_o hundred_o of_o nonconformist_n in_o the_o day_n of_o qu._n eliz._n k._n james_n and_o some_o few_o in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n charles_n 1._o 2._o many_o conformist_n in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n charles_n 1._o under_o bishop_n laud._n 3._o about_o 2000_o that_o conform_v not_o to_o the_o new_a law_n of_o uniformity_n in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n ch._n 2._o what_o these_o minister_n be_v or_o be_v and_o what_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o silence_v have_v be_v and_o what_o it_o have_v do_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o to_o many_o thousand_o of_o godly_a christian_n i_o will_v not_o be_v ●udge_n nor_o will_v i_o dispute_v that_o which_o all_o england_n see_v or_o feel_v but_o it_o seem_v so_o well_o do_v to_o our_o historian_n as_o that_o he_o be_v willing_a deliberate_o to_o justify_v or_o defend_v it_o which_o as_o i_o understand_v be_v to_o make_v it_o his_o own_o and_o to_o undertake_v to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o shall_v answer_v for_o it_o what_o if_o another_o have_v do_v as_o much_o against_o he_o as_o he_o have_v do_v against_o himself_o and_o for_o how_o small_a a_o prize_n ii_o as_o he_o before_o will_v insinuate_v that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o drunkard_n and_o ignorant_a man_n turn_v out_o be_v false_a though_o so_o judge_v upon_o the_o oath_n of_o man_n account_v the_o great_a lover_n of_o religion_n in_o their_o parish_n so_o he_o seem_v here_o to_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v only_o or_o chief_o into_o the_o place_n of_o learned_a worthy_a man_n that_o the_o silence_a minister_n succeed_v whereas_o it_o be_v not_o one_o of_o many_o that_o come_v into_o any_o such_o man_n place_n of_o they_o that_o be_v silence_v at_o the_o fatal_a bartholomew_n day_n iii_o he_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o when_o the_o parliament_n suppose_v by_o wrong_n put_v out_o either_o such_o as_o he_o or_o i_o describe_v the_o land_n must_v be_v under_o
can_v the_o leopard_n change_v his_o spot_n etc._n etc._n or_o they_o that_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v evil_a learn_v to_o do_v well_o and_o rom._n 8._o 6_o 7._o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o law_n nor_o can_v be_v i_o will_v not_o here_o too_o much_o contradict_v he_o 2._o but_o be_v it_o nothing_o that_o they_o can_v have_v do_v in_o parliament_n have_v they_o be_v willing_a 3._o be_v it_o unlawful_a for_o we_o to_o know_v if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o or_o deny_v it_o how_o much_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n do_v with_o the_o parliament-man_n 4._o he_o shall_v at_o least_o have_v stay_v till_o dr._n bates_n dr._n jacomb_n and_o i_o be_v dead_a who_o write_v and_o dispute_v with_o the_o bishop_n by_o the_o king_n commission_n before_o he_o have_v talk_v at_o this_o rate_n to_o the_o world_n do_v not_o the_o king_n make_v his_o declaration_n about_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o do_v he_o not_o under_o the_o broad_a seal_n commission_n those_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n to_o treat_v with_o we_o for_o the_o make_v such_o alteration_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o tender_a conscience_n do_v they_o not_o maintain_v that_o no_o alteration_n be_v thereto_o necessary_a and_o so_o end_v the_o treaty_n 5._o do_v they_o not_o in_o their_o next_o convocation_n lie_v aside_o the_o king_n indulgent_a declaration_n and_o make_v the_o addition_n to_o the_o liturgy_n and_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o help_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o none_o of_o their_o do_n 6._o do_v not_o england_n know_v that_o parliament_n since_o have_v by_o experience_n perceive_v their_o mistake_n and_o will_v have_v suspend_v our_o prosecution_n and_o restore_v we_o to_o unity_n and_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n will_v not_o consent_v but_o rage_n against_o it_o and_o preach_v and_o write_v to_o have_v we_o execute_v according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o no_o abatement_n to_o be_v make_v and_o as_o this_o man_n think_v that_o the_o church_n distraction_n be_v from_o project_n of_o moderation_n what_o name_n shall_v one_o give_v to_o such_o history_n as_o these_o the_o guilty_a can_v bear_v their_o name_n xii_o he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o law_n that_o tie_v they_o to_o their_o choice_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n ans_fw-fr 1._o suppose_v the_o word_n choice_n be_v proper_a here_o be_v it_o any_o justification_n of_o the_o executioner_n it_o be_v the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o 5th_n edict_n that_o tie_v all_o the_o protestant_a minister_n to_o conform_v to_o the_o interim_n or_o be_v go_v it_o be_v the_o law_n that_o tie_v the_o martyr_n in_o qu._n mary_n day_n to_o profess_v what_o they_o believe_v not_o or_o to_o be_v burn_v alas_o how_o can_v bonner_n and_o gardiner_n help_v it_o 2._o but_o how_o many_o bishop_n be_v against_o the_o pass_n of_o that_o bill_n and_o who_o persuade_v the_o lay-man_n to_o it_o must_v we_o not_o know_v when_o it_o be_v night_n if_o you_o deny_v it_o xiii_o he_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o ancient_n silence_v teacher_n before_o the_o civil_a war_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o antimonarchical_a and_o antiepiscopal_a faction_n ans_fw-fr 1._o which_o of_o they_o all_o say_v so_o much_o as_o mr._n hooker_n bp._n bilson_n bp._n jewel_n etc._n etc._n have_v do_v 2._o if_o you_o make_v any_o conscience_n of_o the_o 9th_o commandment_n prove_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o you_o say_v of_o those_o that_o be_v suspend_v and_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o time_n of_o a._n bp._n laud_n bp._n wren_n bp._n piercy_n etc._n etc._n for_o not_o read_v the_o book_n for_o lords-day_n dance_v and_o sport_n and_o that_o be_v prosecute_v for_o preach_v twice_o on_o the_o lordsday_n and_o for_o not_o turn_v the_o table_n altarwise_a and_o rail_v it_o in_o which_o even_o bp._n montague_n as_o well_o as_o williams_n be_v against_o be_v bishop_n miles_n smyth_n of_o gloucester_n be_v a._n bp._n abbot_n or_o grindall_n antimonarchical_a or_o antiepifcopal_a 3._o prove_v if_o you_o be_v able_a any_o antimonarchical_a principle_n word_n or_o deed_n by_o mr._n hildersham_n mr._n brinsley_n mr._n paul_n baine_n mr._n dod_n mr._n knewstubs_n and_o hundred_o of_o such_o i_o may_v name_v the_o most_o malicious_a be_v fain_o to_o talk_v of_o one_o knox_n or_o one_o goodman_n or_o one_o junius_n brutus_n that_o be_v hubertus_n languetus_n melancthous_n friend_n or_o somewhat_o in_o buchanan_n not_o the_o ten_o part_n so_o much_o as_o be_v common_o say_v by_o the_o papist_n with_o who_o our_o a._n bp._n bromhall_n and_o his_o companion_n so_o much_o plead_v for_o concord_n 4._o do_v not_o al._n cope_n and_o sander_n and_o pateson_n in_o the_o image_n of_o both_o church_n and_o late_o the_o nominal_a bellamy_n in_o his_o philanax_n anglicus_n and_o many_o more_o such_o say_v all_o the_o same_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o england_n and_o all_o that_o they_o deride_v as_o protestant_n of_o sincerity_n as_o guilty_a of_o far_o more_o rebellious_a principle_n and_o practice_n th●n_o ever_o you_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o mere_a nonconformist_n old_a or_o new_a and_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o accuse_v fourteen_o he_o say_v they_o will_v preach_v but_o they_o will_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o establish_a religion_n ans_fw-fr 1._o but_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v which_o be_v good_a and_o they_o be_v devote_v to_o if_o a_o man_n will_v not_o do_v all_o that_o you_o will_v have_v he_o to_o do_v shall_v he_o do_v nothing_o 2._o what_o be_v that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o establish_v religion_n it_o be_v the_o ceremony_n and_o subscription_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o liturgy_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v this_o a_o crime_n worthy_a the_o forbid_a man_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n or_o why_o shall_v the_o soul_n of_o thousand_o of_o the_o innocent_a people_n be_v so_o heavy_o punish_v for_o another_o man_n omission_n even_o because_o the_o teacher_n fear_v conformity_n 3._o but_o still_o we_o see_v what_o these_o man_n religion_n be_v have_v their_o religion_n be_v the_o scripture_n or_o any_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n common_a to_o the_o christian_a or_o protestant_a church_n the_o old_a nonconformist_n willing_o consent_v to_o it_o but_o here_o they_o show_v that_o their_o ceremony_n and_o proper_a liturgy_n form_n be_v their_o religion_n but_o then_o 1._o why_o do_v dr._n burges_n and_o all_o that_o plead_v for_o your_o ceremony_n and_o invention_n build_v all_o on_o this_o that_o you_o make_v they_o not_o any_o part_n of_o worship_n or_o religion_n which_o they_o confess_v man_n may_v not_o invent_v but_o mere_a accident_n 2._o how_o old_a then_o be_v your_o religion_n your_o liturgy_n be_v make_v since_o luther_n begin_v his_o reformation_n 3._o it_o seem_v then_o that_o you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o the_o protestant_n that_o have_v none_o of_o your_o ceremony_n liturgy_n or_o subscription_n 4._o be_v not_o then_o your_o church_n of_o a_o singular_a religion_n from_o all_o the_o world_n and_o consequent_o a_o singular_a church_n and_o be_v it_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n then_o or_o a_o schismatical_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o you_o show_v more_o evident_o than_o by_o such_o word_n that_o yourself_o make_v rule_n and_o circumstance_n be_v your_o religion_n for_o 1._o you_o make_v conformity_n to_o they_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la more_o necessary_a than_o our_o preach_v the_o gospel_n or_o our_o church_n communion_n or_o any_o public_a church_n worship_n of_o god_n 2._o and_o you_o excommunicate_v by_o your_o rule_n or_o canon_n every_o member_n of_o christ_n in_o england_n that_o do_v but_o think_v and_o say_v that_o any_o thing_n of_o your_o imposition_n liturgy_n ceremony_n or_o government_n be_v sinful_a 3._o and_o yet_o when_o you_o have_v do_v you_o call_v all_o your_o imposition_n thing_n indifferent_a 4._o and_o thereby_o you_o declare_v that_o your_o religion_n in_o part_n be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a 5._o and_o no_o man_n or_o woman_n shall_v be_v of_o your_o church_n that_o can_v know_v all_o the_o indifferent_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n which_o may_v be_v impose_v on_o they_o to_o be_v indifferent_a and_o not_o unlawful_a when_o you_o know_v or_o you_o know_v not_o who_o you_o dwell_v among_o that_o we_o have_v much_o ado_n to_o get_v one_o half_a your_o church_n to_o know_v thing_n necessary_a 6._o the_o papist_n that_o put_v a_o great_a necessity_n on_o their_o invention_n will_v deride_v you_o for_o a_o indifferent_a religion_n there_o be_v a_o poor_a puritan_n nonconformi_v that_o fear_v lie_v that_o go_v about_o the_o street_n with_o ink_n to_o fell_a and_o be_v wont_n true_o to_o cry_v very_o good_a ink_n very_o good_a ink_n but_o once_o his_o ink_n a_o little_a miscarry_v and_o he_o dare_v not_o call_v it_o
also_o desire_v that_o you_o call_v not_o the_o next_o parliament_n which_o consist_v most_o of_o the_o same_o man_n presbyterian_o or_o nonconformist_n nor_o the_o other_o since_o they_o or_o at_o least_o that_o hereafter_o before_o we_o dispute_v we_o may_v better_o agree_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o our_o term_n and_o i_o declare_v to_o the_o reader_n that_o nothing_o in_o all_o this_o book_n be_v intend_v against_o the_o primitive_a church-government_n or_o episcopacy_n nor_o against_o the_o good_a bishop_n clergy_n council_n or_o canon_n which_o be_v many_o nor_o against_o king_n parliament_z magistracy_n the_o law_n or_o liturgy_n or_o church_n communion_n nor_o against_o our_o peaceable_a and_o patient_a submission_n where_o we_o dare_v not_o practical_o obey_v but_o only_o against_o the_o disease_n and_o degeneracy_n of_o bishop_n clergy_n council_n and_o canon_n and_o those_o divide_v practice_n by_o which_o they_o have_v for_o 1200_o year_n and_o more_o be_v tear_v the_o christian_a world_n into_o the_o sect_n of_o which_o it_o now_o consist_v and_o against_o the_o whole_a ascendent_a change_n from_o the_o primitive_a episcopacy_n to_o papal_a maturity_n and_o against_o our_o swear_n subscribe_v declare_v covenant_v profess_v and_o practise_v where_o we_o understand_v not_o the_o imposer_n sense_n and_o be_v unwilling_a by_o our_o private_a interpretation_n to_o deceive_v they_o and_o where_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o will_v be_v heinous_a sin_n to_o we_o not_o meddle_v with_o the_o case_n of_o lawmaker_n or_o conformist_n who_o have_v no_o such_o fear_n but_o think_v all_o good_a chrysostome_n before_o cite_v in_o act._n 1._o hom._n 3._o p._n mihi_fw-la 472._o speak_v hard_a than_o i_o ever_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n which_o erasmus_n translate_v non_fw-la temere_fw-la a●co_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la affectus_fw-la sum_fw-la &_o sentio_fw-la non_fw-fr arbitrer_fw-fr inter_fw-la sac●rdotes_n multos_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la salui_fw-la fiant_fw-la sed_fw-la multo_fw-la ●l●●es_fw-la qui_fw-la p●reant_fw-la his_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o which_o some_o give_v why_o they_o think_v most_o physician_n kill_v more_o than_o they_o cure_v because_o there_o be_v so_o much_o wisdom_n goodness_n watchfulness_n and_o diligence_n require_v to_o their_o call_v which_o few_o of_o they_o have_v luther_n be_v much_o sharp_a than_o i_o ever_o be_v when_o he_o say_v hieronymus_n &_o alii_fw-la patres_fw-la vixerant_fw-la in_o temporali_fw-la successione_n ecclesiae_fw-la expertes_fw-la cr●●●s_fw-la &_o persecutionis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la enim_fw-la jam_fw-la tum_fw-la coeperant_fw-la cr●s●●re_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d ●pib●s_v existimatione_fw-la &_o gloria_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la et_fw-la plerique_fw-la etiam_fw-la tyrannidem_fw-la exercebant_fw-la in_o populum_fw-la cui_fw-la praeerant_fw-la ut_fw-la testatur_fw-la historia_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la pauci_fw-la faciebant_fw-la sua_fw-la officia_fw-la etc._n etc._n loc._n com._n 4._o class_n p._n 79_o 80._o et_fw-fr cap._n 27._o p._n 48._o de_fw-la synodis_fw-la in_o posterioribus_fw-la conciliis_fw-la nunquam_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la de_fw-la opinionibus_fw-la &_o quaestionibus_fw-la disputatum_fw-la after_o the_o first_o ut_fw-la mihi_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la pene_fw-la tam_fw-la suspectum_fw-la &_o invisum_fw-la sit_fw-la quam_fw-la nomen_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrii_fw-la what_o melancthon_n think_v of_o the_o papal_a design_n of_o magnify_v council_n and_o plead_v the_o necessity_n of_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n see_v in_o his_o epistle_n especial_o of_o the_o conference_n at_o ratisbone_n dr._n henry_n moor_n in_o his_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n say_v p._n 1●2_n that_o principle_n tend_v to_o the_o ruine_n of_o faith_n which_o suppose_v that_o without_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o no_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o this_o succession_n may_v be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o misordination_n or_o misconsecration_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o bishop_n the_o person_n thus_o ordain_v be_v atheist_n or_o jew_n or_o ordain_v by_o they_o that_o be_v so_o as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v not_o feel_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o he_o believe_v or_o not_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n without_o he_o be_v first_o assure_v that_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n that_o have_v a_o uninterrupted_a lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o now_o perhaps_o episcopius_n and_o curcellaeus_n will_v be_v more_o regard_v read_v that_o notable_a preface_n of_o curcellaeus_n to_o episcopius_n work_v p._n 12_o 13._o resp_n experientiam_fw-la docere_fw-la nullas_fw-la unquam_fw-la controversias_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la inter_fw-la christianos_n exortas_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la synodali_fw-la faeliciter_fw-la terminatas_fw-la fuisse_fw-la &_o certiorem_fw-la multo_fw-la pacis_fw-la viam_fw-la esse_fw-la next_o he_o show_v how_o little_a good_a even_o the_o nicene_n council_n do_v and_o how_o much_o worse_a thing_n be_v after_o hierome_n say_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v arian_n and_o constantius_n reproach_v liberius_n for_o be_v with_o one_o man_n against_o all_o the_o world_n the_o vulgar_a dicterium_fw-la be_v omne_fw-la concilium_fw-la parit_fw-la bellum_fw-la whence_o he_o gather_v that_o council_n such_o as_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o have_v non_fw-la esse_fw-la idoneum_fw-la componendis_fw-la religionis_fw-la dissidiis_fw-la remedium_fw-la et_fw-la quamdiu_fw-la illud_fw-la usur_fw-la pabitur_fw-la perpetuas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la &_o republica_n turbas_fw-la fore_fw-la episcopii_n &_o praecipuorum_fw-la emiovit_fw-la fides_fw-la &_o animi_fw-la magnitudo_fw-la quod_fw-la ne_fw-la promisso_fw-la quidem_fw-la solutionis_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la quo_fw-la antea_fw-la fruebantur_fw-la stipendii_fw-la induci_fw-la potuerint_fw-la ut_fw-la se_fw-la ad_fw-la silentium_fw-la quod_fw-la imperabatur_fw-la servandum_fw-la obstringerent_n etiamsi_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la in_o magna_fw-la rei_fw-la familiaris_fw-la augustin_a versarentur_fw-la so_o copious_a and_o sharp_a be_v episcopius_n qu._n 52._o p._n 56._o b._n in_o maintain_v that_o the_o magistrate_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o forbid_v sacred_a assembly_n to_o tolerable_a dissenter_n and_o that_o minister_n and_o people_n forbid_v they_o must_v hold_v on_o to_o the_o death_n that_o i_o will_v not_o recite_v the_o word_n but_o desire_v his_o admirer_n to_o read_v they_o a_o account_n to_o edward_n lord_n bishop_n of_o cork_n and_o rosse_n in_o ireland_n of_o the_o success_n of_o his_o censure_n of_o richard_n baxter_n in_o england_n detect_v his_o manifold_a untruth_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n §_o 1._o to_o give_v my_o character_n of_o you_o who_o i_o know_v not_o as_o you_o do_v of_o i_o be_v none_o of_o my_o work_n but_o 1._o your_o style_n allow_v i_o to_o say_v that_o by_o it_o you_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o conscience_n fear_v god_n 2._o and_o yet_o your_o matter_n assure_v i_o that_o you_o speak_v abundance_n of_o untruth_n confident_o i_o suppose_v partly_o by_o not_o know_v the_o person_n and_o thing_n of_o which_o you_o speak_v and_o partly_o by_o think_v that_o you_o ought_v to_o believe_v the_o false_a reporter_n with_o who_o you_o be_v better_o acquaint_v §_o 2._o the_o strait_n which_o you_o cast_v we_o into_o be_v unavoidable_a either_o we_o must_v seem_v to_o own_o all_o the_o false_a accusation_n bring_v against_o we_o which_o will_v hurt_v other_o far_a more_o than_o we_o or_o else_o we_o must_v deny_v and_o contradict_v they_o and_o that_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o intolerable_a addition_n to_o our_o guilt_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v suppose_v such_o intemperate_a fierce_a abusive_a person_n as_o you_o describe_v i_o while_o you_o think_v we_o give_v you_o the_o lie_v or_o make_v you_o slanderer_n but_o we_o can_v cure_v your_o misresentment_n but_o must_v be_v content_a to_o bear_v your_o censure_n while_o we_o call_v you_o not_o liar_n but_o only_o acquaint_v you_o with_o the_o truth_n §_o 3._o for_o my_o own_o part_n my_o final_a judgement_n be_v so_o near_o and_o i_o be_o conscious_a of_o so_o much_o evil_n in_o myself_o that_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v hasty_a in_o my_o own_o vindication_n but_o much_o reason_n to_o take_v all_o hint_n and_o help_n for_o deep_a search_n and_o will_v not_o justify_v my_o style_n and_o god_n know_v i_o be_o afraid_a lest_o selfishness_n or_o partiality_n shall_v hinder_v i_o from_o find_v out_o my_o sin_n and_o i_o daily_a and_o earnest_o beg_v of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o know_v to_o i_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v impenitent_a but_o either_o prejudice_n converse_n or_o somewhat_o else_o make_v a_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o your_o judgement_n and_o i_o of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o i_o can_v help_v it_o if_o i_o err_v it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o willingness_n to_o see_v my_o error_n and_o open_o retract_v it_o nor_o for_o want_v of_o a_o ordinary_a diligence_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n the_o sum_n of_o our_o difference_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v understand_v you_o be_v in_o these_o particular_n i._o whether_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n impose_v
it_o but_o we_o be_v mistake_v no_o doubt_v man_n can_v write_v learned_a volume_n to_o defend_v any_o of_o these_o and_o if_o one_o do_v but_o say_v they_o please_v not_o god_n man_n may_v be_v find_v that_o can_v say_v i_o believe_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o you_o be_v mistake_v and_o speak_v unpeaceable_o god_n be_v please_v with_o it_o all_o sure_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v be_v much_o to_o justify_v god_n himself_o who_o be_v thus_o slander_v as_o the_o friend_n of_o every_o man_n sin_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o there_o be_v numerous_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n when_o every_o selfish_a man_n make_v a_o god_n and_o a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o fit_v to_o his_o interest_n and_o mind_n but_o when_o all_o man_n centre_n only_o in_o one_o god_n and_o bring_v their_o mind_n to_o he_o and_o not_o conceited_o his_o to_o they_o we_o may_v yet_o be_v one._n and_o if_o we_o can_v make_v man_n know_v that_o god_n be_v not_o for_o they_o and_o accept_v not_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o innocent_a blood_n however_o man_n think_v that_o they_o do_v he_o good_a service_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o have_v this_o know_v it_o be_v long_a since_o unhumble_v sinner_n turn_v church-confession_n into_o auricular_a if_o saul_n do_v say_v at_o last_o i_o have_v sin_v he_o will_v yet_o be_v honour_v before_o the_o people_n but_o the_o time_n be_v near_o when_o those_o that_o honour_n god_n he_o will_v honour_v and_o those_o that_o despise_v he_o shall_v be_v light_o esteem_v few_o man_n live_v can_v easy_o bear_v with_o other_o for_o different_a form_n and_o ceremony_n than_o i_o but_o i_o take_v not_o the_o silence_v and_o ruine_v of_o 2000_o minister_n for_o ceremony_n be_v that_o the_o worst_a of_o it_o to_o be_v a_o ceremony_n §_o 6._o pag._n 69._o you_o say_v we_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o mind_n yet_o a_o sad_a word_n from_o a_o bishop_n do_v you_o think_v that_o any_o two_o man_n on_o earth_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v those_o agree_v who_o paul_n persuade_v rom._n 14._o to_o receive_v each_o other_o but_o not_o to_o doubtful_a disputation_n and_o not_o to_o judge_v or_o despise_v each_o other_o much_o less_o to_o silence_n imprison_v and_o destroy_v we_o be_v agree_v in_o all_o that_o be_v constitutive_a of_o christianity_n and_o agree_v that_o all_o christian_n shall_v love_v other_o as_o themselves_o and_o do_v as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o i_o confess_v if_o you_o have_v such_o eminent_a self-denial_n as_o to_o be_v willing_a if_o ever_o you_o differ_v from_o the_o public_a imposition_n about_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o any_o one_o thing_n to_o be_v not_o only_o cast_v out_o of_o your_o lordship_n and_o bishopric_n but_o to_o be_v silence_v imprison_a and_o destroy_v i_o can_v accuse_v you_o of_o partiality_n but_o of_o error_n i_o have_v know_v too_o many_o conformist_n who_o need_v no_o bishop_n to_o silence_v they_o they_o never_o preach_v but_o that_o will_v not_o justify_v their_o desire_n that_o other_o be_v silence_v i_o have_v oft_o enough_o tell_v you_o in_o how_o many_o thing_n the_o conformist_n be_v disagree_v i_o now_o say_v the_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v not_o agree_v of_o the_o very_a species_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o their_o disagreement_n of_o the_o constitutive_a national_a head_n or_o governor_n they_o be_v not_o agree_v whether_o it_o be_v only_o a_o part_n of_o a_o universal_a humane_a political_a church_n subject_n to_o a_o universal_a humane_a supreme_a power_n who_o have_v the_o right_a of_o legislation_n and_o judgement_n over_o they_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o complete_a national_a church_n of_o itself_o a_o part_n only_o of_o the_o universal_a as_o head_v by_o christ_n but_o not_o as_o by_o man_n or_o as_o humane_a polity_n have_v no_o foreign_a governor_n monarchical_a or_o aristocratical_a pope_n or_o council_n overdo_v be_v illdoing_a and_o undo_n he_o that_o will_v make_v such_o a_o law_n of_o concord_n as_o that_o none_o shall_v live_v out_o of_o prison_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o age_n complexion_n appetite_n and_o opinion_n will_v depose_v the_o king_n by_o leave_v he_o no_o subject_n the_o inquisition_n be_v set_v up_o in_o love_n of_o unity_n but_o we_o know_v that_o we_o shall_v differ_v while_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n only_o the_o perfect_a world_n have_v perfect_a concord_n i_o great_o rejoice_v in_o that_o concord_n which_o be_v among_o all_o that_o true_o love_v god_n they_o love_v one_o another_o and_o agree_v in_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o church_n of_o the_o conformist_n be_v all_o agree_v for_o crossing_n and_o the_o surplice_n and_o for_o the_o impose_v oath_n profession_n and_o covenant_n oh_o that_o all_o our_o parishioner_n who_o plead_v for_o the_o church_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v true_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o deceiver_n and_o that_o man_n die_v not_o as_o dog_n but_o have_v a_o life_n of_o future_a retribution_n §_o 7._o p._n 69._o ask_v be_v not_o almost_o all_o the_o westminster_n assembly_n episcopal_n conformable_a man_n when_o they_o come_v thither_o he_o can_v say_v no_o not_o in_o their_o heart_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o fruit_n and_o he_o cite_v some_o word_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o parliament_n jun._n 12._o 1643._o ans_fw-fr 1._o see_v here_o a_o bishop_n that_o know_v the_o heart_n of_o hundred_o of_o man_n who_o he_o never_o see_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o profession_n and_o constant_a practice_n 2._o and_o he_o can_v prove_v by_o their_o report_n the_o parliament_n word_n what_o be_v these_o minister_n own_o judgement_n 3._o and_o he_o can_v prove_v by_o those_o word_n in_o jun._n 1643._o what_o be_v their_o judgement_n a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o and_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o scot_n argument_n do_v not_o change_v they_o 4._o and_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o those_o be_v no_o episcopal_a conformist_n who_o be_v for_o the_o ancient_a episcopacy_n only_o describe_v by_o bishop_n usher_n and_o take_v the_o english_a frame_n to_o be_v only_o lawful_a but_o not_o unalterable_a or_o best_a and_o if_o real_o he_o do_v take_v he_o to_o be_v no_o episcopal_a conformist_n who_o be_v for_o endure_v any_o way_n but_o their_o own_o it_o be_v he_o and_o not_o i_o that_o give_v they_o so_o bad_a a_o character_n it_o be_v he_o and_o not_o i_o that_o intimate_v that_o those_o moderate_a conformist_n who_o have_v rather_o church-government_n be_v reform_v than_o such_o confusion_n make_v by_o silence_v and_o hunt_v christian_n be_v at_o the_o heart_n no_o episcopal_a conformist_n their_o heart_n i_o confess_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o silencer_n and_o hunter_n §_o 8._o he_o make_v i_o a_o false_a historian_n for_o fix_v the_o war_n on_o the_o erastian_n party_n in_o parliament_n ans_fw-fr do_v i_o lie_v it_o only_o on_o the_o erastians_n have_v i_o not_o undeniable_o prove_v that_o the_o war_n here_o begin_v between_o two_o episcopal_a party_n of_o which_o one_o part_n be_v of_o a._n bp._n abbot_n mr._n hooker_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o parliament_n mind_n and_o the_o other_o of_o bp._n laud_n sibthorps_n maynwaring_n heylin_n a._n bp._n bromhalls_n etc._n etc._n mind_n and_o the_o first_o sort_n some_o of_o they_o think_v episcopacy_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o the_o english_a frame_n not_o unreformable_a and_o the_o other_o sort_n think_v it_o be_v but_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la and_o these_o be_v call_v by_o some_o erastians_n let_v he_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o produce_v my_o historical_a proof_n even_o to_o single_a man_n by_o name_n that_o the_o english_a war_n begin_v between_o these_o two_o party_n and_o i_o defy_v all_o his_o false_a contradiction_n only_o suppose_v 1._o that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o king_n nor_o of_o the_o war_n in_o ireland_n or_o scotland_n 2._o that_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v most_o for_o the_o parliament_n and_o the_o papist_n most_o against_o they_o but_o when_o i_o have_v say_v so_o much_o to_o mr._n hinkley_n already_o to_o prove_v this_o do_v this_o lord_n bishop_n think_v to_o be_v believe_v without_o confute_v it_o §_o 9_o but_o it_o transcend_v all_o bound_n of_o historical_a credibility_n that_o he_o answer_v this_o by_o say_v he_o and_o all_o his_o abettor_n must_v know_v the_o catalogue_n of_o that_o parliament_n and_o that_o assembly_n be_v still_o in_o our_o hand_n the_o copy_n of_o their_o speech_n and_o journal_o of_o their_o vote_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr they_o be_v so_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o such_o historian_n you_o have_v many_o of_o they_o in_o whitlock_n memorial_n i_o know_v so_o great_a a_o number_n myself_o of_o the_o parliament_n assembly_n and_o army_n as_o make_v i_o pity_v the_o
paper_n describe_v eight_o such_o we_o do_v but_o begin_v to_o debate_v one_o of_o they_o cast_v such_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n church_n that_o dare_v not_o take_v the_o sacrament_n kneel_v though_o they_o be_v mistake_v and_o our_o time_n end_v dr._n pierce_v undertake_v to_o prove_v it_o a_o mercy_n to_o they_o to_o deny_v they_o the_o sacrament_n and_o he_o make_v a_o motion_n to_o i_o that_o he_o and_o i_o may_v go_v about_o the_o land_n to_o preach_v man_n into_o satisfaction_n and_o conformity_n i_o ask_v he_o how_o i_o can_v do_v that_o when_o they_o intend_v to_o silence_v i_o for_o though_o i_o scruple_v not_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n if_o they_o make_v any_o one_o sin_n the_o condition_n of_o my_o ministry_n i_o shall_v be_v silence_v though_o they_o abate_v all_o the_o rest_n it_o may_v be_v this_o go_v for_o all_o or_o nothing_o and_o i_o be_o sorry_a that_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n st._n james_n be_v that_o say_v he_o that_o break_v one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o and_o christ_n be_v who_o say_v he_o that_o break_v one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o command_n and_o teach_v man_n so_o shall_v be_v call_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o all_o inconvenience_n but_o all_o flat_a sin_n that_o we_o crave_v in_o vain_a to_o have_v be_v exempt_v from_o much_o less_o be_v it_o the_o establishment_n of_o all_o that_o we_o propose_v to_o have_v be_v treat_v of_o open_o profess_v ourselves_o ready_a to_o alter_v any_o thing_n amiss_o or_o needless_a upon_o treaty_n and_o suppose_v there_o will_v be_v many_o such_o word_n but_o they_o will_v not_o touch_v our_o offer_a addition_n nor_o entertain_v any_o treaty_n about_o they_o and_o now_o pity_v yourself_o who_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o believe_v such_o reverend_a prelate_n as_o you_o say_v and_o pity_v such_o as_o your_o write_n will_v deceive_v §_o 17._o that_o you_o take_v it_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o a_o christian_a temper_n to_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o name_n and_o describe_v the_o sin_n that_o cause_v they_o and_o that_o but_o in_o a_o necessitate_a apology_n for_o the_o sufferer_n be_v no_o wonder_n the_o reason_n and_o your_o answer_n i_o give_v you_o before_o §_o 4._o and_o 5._o i_o think_v it_o no_o breach_n of_o peace_n with_o persecutor_n or_o silencer_n to_o tell_v they_o what_o they_o do_v especial_o when_o the_o sufferer_n be_v feign_v to_o deserve_v it_o all_o and_o not_o to_o sin_n and_o that_o deliberate_o be_v make_v a_o sin_n deserve_v all_o that_o we_o suffer_v and_o the_o nation_n by_o it_o §_o 18._o but_o p._n 77._o tell_v we_o yet_o more_o whence_o your_o error_n come_v even_o by_o believe_v false_a report_n and_o then_o report_v what_o you_o believe_v you_o say_v some_o people_n have_v talk_v of_o a_o combination_n or_o pact_n among_o themselves_o that_o except_o they_o may_v have_v their_o own_o will_n throughout_o they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n know_v what_o a_o breach_n they_o can_v make_v and_o how_o considerable_a they_o be_v ans_fw-fr 1._o do_v you_o not_o think_v that_o rogers_n bradford_n philpot_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v so_o in_o qu._n mary_n day_n and_o that_o it_o be_v they_o that_o make_v the_o breach_n by_o be_v burn_v what_o be_v it_o that_o such_o historian_n may_v not_o say_v so_o luther_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o devil_n bucer_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o devil_n so_o be_v oeclampadius_fw-la calvin_n be_v a_o stigmatise_v sodomite_n and_o what_o not_o and_o even_o the_o most_o public_a thing_n be_v yet_o uncertain_a before_o our_o eye_n godfrey_n kill_v himself_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o plot_n the_o presbyterian_o have_v a_o plot_n against_o the_o king_n the_o nonconformist_n silence_v themselves_o and_o do_v not_o the_o citizen_n of_o london_n burn_v their_o own_o house_n when_o you_o that_o be_v a_o bishop_n cite_v other_o great_a bishop_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o you_o do_v may_v it_o not_o come_v in_o time_n to_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thence_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o 2._o but_o how_o do_v you_o think_v all_o these_o that_o be_v scatter_v all_o over_o england_n and_o know_v not_o one_o another_o by_o name_n or_o dwelling_n shall_v so_o confederate_a 3._o do_v but_o think_v of_o it_o as_o a_o man_n there_o be_v nine_o or_o ten_o thousand_o minister_n that_o have_v conform_v to_o the_o parliament_n way_n in_o possession_n they_o be_v all_o to_o conform_v or_o be_v cast_v out_o the_o book_n and_o act_n of_o uniformity_n come_v not_o out_o of_o the_o press_n till_o about_o that_o very_a day_n aug._n 24_o neither_o conformist_n nor_o after_o nonconformist_n can_v see_v it_o but_o those_o in_o or_o near_a london_n what_o time_n be_v there_o to_o tell_v they_o all_o over_o england_n in_o one_o day_n how_o know_v we_o who_o will_v conform_v and_o who_o will_v not_o when_o nine_o thousand_o be_v equal_o in_o possession_n if_o we_o have_v write_v to_o they_o all_o will_v not_o one_o thousand_o of_o our_o letter_n have_v detect_v it_o or_o at_o least_o some_o of_o those_o that_o conform_a with_o who_o we_o prevail_v not_o 4._o what_o be_v it_o that_o move_v they_o all_o to_o this_o confederacy_n to_o suffer_v ruin_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v themselves_o considerable_a you_o say_v and_o show_v what_o a_o breach_n they_o can_v make_v and_o for_o what_o unless_o they_o may_v have_v all_o their_o own_o will_n and_o what_o be_v their_o will_n be_v it_o to_o be_v lord_n bishop_n or_o domineer_v over_o any_o or_o to_o get_v great_a benefice_n i_o think_v no_o highway_n robber_n do_v any_o villainy_n mere_o to_o show_v what_o mischief_n they_o can_v do_v much_o less_o ruin_v themselves_o to_o show_v that_o they_o can_v do_v mischief_n by_o suffer_v some_o such_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o some_o odd_a circumcellian_o that_o they_o kill_v themselves_o to_o make_v other_o think_v their_o persecutor_n but_o persecution_n be_v more_o hate_v than_o than_o now_o do_v the_o former_a life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o two_o thousand_o man_n signify_v a_o spirit_n so_o much_o worse_a than_o the_o rest_n 5._o and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o other_o seven_o thousand_o or_o eight_o thousand_o that_o conform_a do_v confederate_a beforehand_o to_o conform_v how_o can_v they_o do_v it_o who_o declare_v assent_v and_o consent_v to_o every_o thing_n contain_v and_o prescribe_v in_o and_o by_o the_o book_n which_o they_o never_o see_v unless_o they_o confederate_v at_o a_o venture_n to_o do_v whatever_o be_v impose_v and_o if_o seven_o thousand_o can_v agree_v without_o confederate_v why_o not_o two_o thousand_o i_o can_v not_o then_o have_v my_o post_n letter_n pass_v without_o interception_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o no_o letter_n of_o this_o confederacy_n be_v take_v and_o i_o will_v tell_v not_o you_o but_o those_o that_o believe_v i_o how_o far_o we_o be_v from_o it_o when_o we_o be_v all_o cast_v out_o and_o some_o new_a motion_n be_v make_v for_o our_o service_n one_o weak_a man_n move_v here_o that_o we_o may_v draw_v up_o a_o consent_a judgement_n to_o how_o much_o we_o can_v yield_v that_o we_o may_v not_o differ_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o business_n to_o make_v a_o faction_n or_o to_o strengthen_v a_o party_n nor_o be_v we_o all_o of_o one_o judgement_n about_o every_o ceremony_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n must_v go_v against_o his_o judgement_n for_o a_o combination_n with_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o will_v abate_v but_o so_o much_o as_o any_o one_o man_n conscience_n will_v be_v satisfy_v in_o that_o one_o man_n must_v serve_v the_o church_n according_o and_o if_o any_o be_v take_v in_o the_o rest_n will_v rejoice_v this_o answer_v silence_v that_o motion_n and_o i_o never_o hear_v any_o move_v it_o more_o and_o i_o be_o full_o assure_v there_o be_v never_o such_o a_o combination_n but_o with_o this_o exception_n how_o far_o any_o think_v the_o covenant_n bind_v they_o against_o our_o prelacy_n i_o can_v tell_v those_o that_o i_o converse_v with_o say_v it_o bind_v they_o to_o no_o more_o than_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o before_o but_o i_o confess_v we_o do_v all_o confederate_n in_o our_o baptism_n against_o wilful_a sin_n and_o i_o know_v of_o no_o other_o confederacy_n but_o these_o which_o indeed_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v all_o man_n forbear_v what_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v sinful_a §_o 19_o you_o add_v but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o fair_a to_o over-reckon_a know_o and_o in_o ordinary_a course_n two_o hundred_o in_o the_o sum_n as_o mr._n baxter_n and_o other_o do_v p._n 155_o 210._o thereby_o to_o swell_v the_o account_n to_o the_o great_a odium_fw-la by_o
complain_v roundly_o two_o thousand_o this_o i_o must_v conclude_v to_o be_v do_v know_o for_o sometime_o he_o only_o mention_n one_o thousand_o eight_o hundred_o p._n 151_o etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr i_o be_o persuade_v that_o it_o be_v not_o know_o that_o you_o speak_v so_o much_o beside_o the_o truth_n but_o for_o want_v of_o know_v what_o and_o who_o you_o talk_v of_o i_o never_o meddle_v with_o gather_v the_o number_n mr._n calamy_n do_v and_o show_v we_o a_o list_n of_o 1800_o upon_o which_o i_o long_o mention_v no_o more_o and_o seldom_o see_v he_o afterward_o but_o mr._n ennis_n who_o be_v more_o with_o he_o assure_v i_o that_o they_o have_v after_o a_o account_n of_o at_o least_o 200_o more_o who_o be_v omit_v i_o sometime_o to_o speak_v the_o least_o mention_n the_o 1800_o and_o sometime_o say_v about_o 2000_o and_o by_o his_o last_o account_n that_o be_v the_o least_o yet_o with_o a_o lord_n bishop_n that_o know_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o i_o know_o over_o reckon_v but_o if_o god_n be_v please_v with_o their_o silence_v why_o do_v you_o take_v this_o ill_n §_o 20._o the_o next_o and_o great_a accusation_n be_v my_o extenuate_a the_o bishop_n clemency_n and_o aggravate_v our_o suffering_n and_o that_o against_o my_o conscience_n i_o impute_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o bloodiness_n which_o they_o never_o intend_v but_o abhor_v and_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v what_o i_o say_v of_o the_o death_n of_o any_o by_o imprisonment_n or_o want_n ans_fw-fr the_o good_a lady_n that_o pity_v the_o beggar_n when_o she_o come_v in_o out_o of_o the_o frost_n and_o snow_n when_o she_o have_v warm_v herself_o chide_v they_o away_o and_o say_v it_o be_v warm_a enough_o i_o can_v name_v you_o those_o in_o london_n that_o travel_v out_o of_o the_o north_n in_o great_a want_n and_o take_v up_o with_o such_o cold_a lodging_n here_o in_o great_a want_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v past_a cure_n before_o their_o misery_n be_v know_v how_o many_o poor_a quaker_n have_v die_v in_o prison_n many_o know_v it_o be_v like_o you_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o death_n of_o mr._n field_n a_o worthy_a minister_n in_o the_o gatehouse_n nor_o of_o mr._n thompson_n in_o the_o noisome_a prison_n at_o bristol_n nor_o of_o reverend_a mr._n hughes_n of_o plimouth_n death_n cause_v by_o his_o prison_n sickness_n perhaps_o you_o never_o read_v the_o life_n suffering_n and_o death_n of_o excellent_a joseph_n allen_n of_o taunton_n i_o will_v not_o be_v the_o gatherer_n of_o a_o large_a catalogue_n but_o i_o believe_v some_o other_o will_n but_o these_o you_o know_v not_o of_o §_o 21._o the_o word_n in_o my_o book_n which_o i_o speak_v argumentative_o show_v clear_o whither_o their_o cause_n will_v lead_v they_o if_o they_o trust_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o unity_n by_o force_n you_o unworthy_o feign_v that_o i_o speak_v as_o accuse_v the_o bishop_n inclination_n my_o argument_n be_v if_o you_o think_v by_o violence_n to_o effect_v your_o end_n it_o must_v be_v either_o by_o change_v man_n judgement_n or_o by_o force_v they_o as_o hypocrite_n to_o go_v against_o their_o judgement_n or_o else_o by_o utter_a destroy_v they_o till_o there_o be_v no_o dissenter_n but_o none_o of_o these_o three_o way_n will_v do_v it_o ergo_fw-la violence_n will_v not_o do_v it_o 1._o i_o prove_v that_o force_n will_v not_o change_v their_o judgement_n 2._o i_o prove_v they_o be_v such_o man_n as_o will_v rather_o suffer_v death_n than_o sin_n against_o their_o conscience_n and_o so_o less_o suffering_n which_o cure_v not_o do_v but_o exasperate_v the_o disease_n 3._o i_o prove_v that_o if_o when_o less_o do_v no_o good_a you_o will_v destroy_v they_o that_o will_v not_o do_v your_o work_n but_o cross_v it_o and_o do_v this_o signify_v that_o i_o charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o bloody_a purpose_n they_o open_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v punish_v we_o that_o must_v bring_v we_o to_o concord_n i_o tell_v they_o lesser_n will_v not_o do_v it_o and_o great_a will_n but_o hurt_v themselves_o a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o i_o hereby_o rather_o infer_v that_o bishop_n will_v not_o be_v bloody_a than_o that_o they_o will_v when_o i_o argue_v ab_fw-la incommodo_fw-la true_o sir_n i_o see_v nothing_o in_o your_o book_n which_o tempt_v i_o to_o lament_v that_o i_o miss_v the_o happiness_n of_o your_o academical_a education_n or_o dispute_n nor_o do_v i_o envy_v those_o that_o now_o enjoy_v it_o god_n save_v his_o church_n from_o the_o worse_a part_n of_o they_o §_o 21._o you_o say_v p._n 79._o you_o must_v needs_o look_v on_o my_o aggravate_v my_o own_o and_o the_o dissenter_n suffering_n beyond_o truth_n you_o be_v sure_a beyond_o probability_n to_o have_v proceed_v from_o want_n of_o temper_n as_o for_o say_v that_o some_o have_v live_v on_o brown_a bread_n and_o water_n ans_fw-fr i_o find_v still_o that_o our_o difference_n lie_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n do_v in_o the_o open_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o we_o be_v englishman_n i_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o end_v it_o o_o what_o be_v history_n my_o own_o suffering_n by_o they_o be_v very_o small_a save_o the_o hinder_v of_o my_o labour_n leave_v to_o work_n be_v all_o the_o preferment_n that_o ever_o i_o desire_v of_o they_o what_o i_o have_v have_v have_v be_v against_o their_o will_n who_o have_v call_v out_o for_o my_o great_a restraint_n god_n have_v enable_v i_o by_o the_o charity_n of_o other_o to_o send_v some_o small_a relief_n to_o a_o few_o of_o those_o who_o case_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v some_o of_o they_o have_v seven_o or_o eight_o child_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o of_o their_o own_o to_o maintain_v they_o and_o live_v in_o country_n where_o scarce_o two_o gentleman_n of_o estate_n within_o their_o reach_n do_v befriend_v they_o and_o the_o people_n be_v general_o poor_a and_o many_o of_o these_o have_v none_o to_o preach_v to_o be_v not_o permit_v and_o when_o they_o attempt_v to_o meet_v with_o some_o few_o secret_o to_o fast_o and_o pray_v in_o some_o case_n of_o need_n have_v have_v their_o few_o good_n carry_v away_o by_o distress_n good_a alderman_n ashhurst_n now_o with_o christ_n take_v care_n of_o many_o and_o have_v show_v i_o letter_n and_o certificate_n of_o undoubted_a credit_n in_o the_o very_a word_n which_o i_o name_v one_o be_v now_o near_o we_o that_o be_v put_v to_o get_v his_o live_n by_o spin_v mr._n chadwick_n be_v the_o last_o of_o who_o i_o read_v those_o word_n in_o a_o just_a certificate_n that_o he_o and_o his_o child_n have_v long_o live_v on_o mere_a brown_a rye_n bread_n and_o water_n it_o be_v now_o above_o a_o dozen_o year_n since_o dr._n vermuxden_n tell_v i_o that_o mr._n matthew_n hill_n be_v his_o patient_n with_o hydropical_a swell_v leg_n with_o drink_v water_n and_o use_v answerable_a food_n through_o mere_a poverty_n but_o god_n turn_v it_o to_o good_a for_o necessity_n drive_v he_o when_o a_o little_a strengthen_v to_o mary-land_n where_o he_o have_v be_v almost_o the_o only_a able_a minister_n they_o have_v we_o that_o know_v they_o ourselves_o and_o beg_v money_n to_o relieve_v they_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v liar_n for_o tell_v that_o which_o all_o their_o neighbour_n know_v through_o god_n mercy_n few_o in_o london_n suffer_v so_o much_o though_o divers_a be_v in_o great_a straits_n but_o great_a number_n in_o the_o country_n who_o live_v among_o the_o poor_a have_v not_o some_o of_o they_o now_o and_o then_o a_o little_a relief_n from_o london_n be_v like_a to_o beg_v for_o bread_n or_o fall_v into_o mortal_a disease_n by_o food_n unfit_a for_o nature_n even_o in_o london_n they_o that_o know_v mr._n farnworth_n mr._n spinage_n and_o some_o other_o and_o how_o they_o live_v and_o die_v understand_v i_o i_o will_v name_v mr._n martin_n former_o of_o weedon_n this_o very_o poor_a in_o london_n to_o tell_v you_o of_o your_o impartiality_n though_o he_o lose_v one_o arm_n in_o the_o king_n army_n he_o have_v not_o a_o day_n abate_v he_o in_o warwick_n gaol_n for_o preach_v §_o 22._o as_o to_o his_o repeat_v all_o my_o mention_n of_o their_o deal_n and_o my_o blame_v the_o bishop_n at_o the_o savoy_n for_o our_o present_a division_n and_o my_o aggravate_v the_o evil_n which_o violence_n will_v produce_v if_o they_o trust_v to_o that_o way_n i_o judge_v it_o all_o necessary_a to_o be_v speak_v unknown_a sin_n will_v not_o be_v repent_v of_o nor_o forbear_v nor_o unknown_a danger_n prevent_v nor_o the_o unknown_a needs_o of_o the_o people_n soul_n relieve_v he_o ask_v be_v this_o the_o way_n to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o we_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n what_o peace_n can_v we_o have_v with_o they_o that_o think_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o silence_v
ignorant_a world_n which_o be_v abuse_v by_o such_o historian_n as_o you_o and_o you_o §_o 10._o as_o for_o your_o assure_v i_o that_o you_o look_v one_o day_n to_o answer_v for_o all_o you_o say_v it_o mind_v i_o of_o the_o word_n of_o your_o dr._n ash●ton_n chaplain_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o ormond_n who_o as_o go_v to_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v through_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n that_o we_o conform_v not_o the_o inquisitor_n also_o believe_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o some_o man_n do_v not_o confident_o ascribe_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n §_o 11._o your_o praise_n of_o i_o be_v above_o my_o desert_n i_o be_o worse_a than_o you_o be_v aware_a of_o but_o man_n sin_n against_o christ_n church_n and_o servant_n in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n be_v never_o the_o less_o for_o that_o §_o 12._o you_o show_v we_o that_o you_o be_v deceive_v before_o you_o deceive_v you_o do_v but_o lead_v other_o into_o the_o way_n of_o falsehood_n which_o you_o be_v lead_v into_o yourself_o when_o you_o say_v i_o be_o say_fw-la to_o have_v assert_v that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o any_o actual_a sin_n a_o lord_n bishop_n morley_n p._n 13._o tell_v it_o you_o and_o you_o a_o lord_n bishop_n tell_v it_o other_o and_o thus_o the_o poor_a world_n have_v be_v long_o use_v so_o that_o of_o such_o historian_n man_n at_o last_o may_v grow_v to_o take_v it_o for_o a_o valid_a consequence_n it_o be_v write_v by_o they_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v incredible_a i_o tell_v you_o first_o in_o general_n that_o i_o have_v see_v few_o book_n in_o all_o my_o life_n which_o in_o so_o few_o sheet_n have_v so_o many_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n do_v before_o many_o as_o that_o letter_n of_o bishop_n morley_n which_o upon_o your_o provocation_n i_o will_v manifest_v by_o print_v my_o answer_n to_o he_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o press_n 2._o and_o as_o to_o your_o instance_n the_o case_n be_v this_o dr._n lany_n impertinent_o talk_v of_o our_o be_v justify_v only_o by_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o habit_n i_o ask_v he_o whether_o we_o be_v unjustified_a in_o our_o sleep_n which_o lead_v we_o further_o and_o occasion_v i_o to_o say_v to_o some_o objection_n of_o he_o that_o man_n be_v not_o always_o do_v moral_a act_n good_a or_o evil_n and_o thence_o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o always_o actual_o sin_v viz._n in_o a_o man_n sleep_n he_o may_v live_v sometime_o and_o not_o actual_o sin_n as_o also_o in_o a_o apoplexy_n and_o other_o loss_n of_o reason_n hence_o the_o credible_a bishop_n morley_n print_v that_o i_o say_v a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o any_o actual_a sin_n yea_o and_o such_o other_o reason_n be_v give_v for_o his_o forbid_v i_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o now_o another_o pious_a l._n bp._n go_v to_o answer_v it_o at_o judgement_n publish_v it_o as_o from_o he_o o_o what_o a_o world_n be_v this_o and_o by_o what_o hand_n be_v we_o cast_v down_o be_v my_o assertion_n false_a or_o doubtful_a dr._n bates_n and_o dr._n jacombe_n who_o be_v present_a be_v yet_o both_o live_v by_o such_o man_n and_o mean_n be_v the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v arise_v o_o lord_n and_o save_v it_o from_o they_o §_o 13._o you_o tell_v i_o as_o bp._n morley_n of_o be_v the_o top_n of_o a_o faction_n of_o my_o own_o make_n neither_o episcopal_a presbyterian_a independent_a or_o erastian_n ans_fw-fr so_o to_o be_v against_o all_o faction_n be_v to_o be_v the_o top_n of_o a_o faction_n i_o be_o neither_o a_o arian_n nor_o a_o sabellian_n nor_o a_o apollinarian_a nor_o a_o macedonian_a nor_o a_o nestorian_a or_o eutychian_a or_o monothelite_n or_o a_o papist_n etc._n etc._n conclude_v ergo_fw-la i_o be_o the_o top_n of_o a_o new_a heresy_n and_o silence_n and_o imprison_v i_o for_o it_o and_o your_o diocesane_a conformity_n will_v be_v past_o all_o suspicion_n even_o at_o the_o heart_n but_o you_o will_v one_o day_n know_v that_o to_o be_v against_o all_o faction_n and_o yet_o to_o bear_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o love_v all_o christian_n as_o such_o be_v a_o way_n that_o have_v a_o better_a author_n §_o 14._o p._n 73_o 74._o as_o to_o your_o extol_v friend_n a_o nonconformist_n who_o you_o say_v tell_v you_o that_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o bear_v be_v gainsay_v in_o any_o thing_n for_o want_v of_o academic_a dispute_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o be_v your_o great_a friend_n so_o excellent_a a_o man_n and_o be_v it_o a_o good_a work_n to_o silence_v he_o with_o which_o in_o your_o conscience_n you_o think_v god_n be_v please_v 2._o now_o you_o name_v he_o not_o he_o can_v contradict_v you_o mr._n bagshaw_n say_v something_o like_o it_o of_o mr._n herle_v prolocutor_n of_o the_o assembly_n which_o his_o acquaintance_n contradict_v 3._o i_o justify_v not_o my_o patience_n it_o be_v too_o little_a but_o very_o if_o you_o have_v silence_v i_o alone_o and_o god_n church_n and_o thousand_o of_o soul_n have_v be_v spare_v i_o think_v you_o have_v never_o hear_v i_o twice_o complain_v judge_v you_o whether_o i_o can_v endure_v to_o be_v gainsay_v when_o i_o think_v there_o be_v forty_o book_n write_v against_o i_o by_o infidel_n socinian_n papist_n prelatist_n quaker_n seeker_n antinomian_o anabaptist_n sabbatarian_o separatist_n and_o some_o presbyterian_o independent_o erastians_n politician_n etc._n etc._n which_o for_o the_o far_o great_a part_n i_o never_o answer_v though_o some_o of_o they_o write_v by_o prelatist_n and_o papist_n have_v speak_v fire_n and_o sword_n nor_o to_o my_o remembrance_n do_v any_o or_o all_o these_o book_n by_o trouble_v i_o ever_o break_v one_o hour_n of_o my_o sleep_n nor_o ever_o grieve_v i_o so_o much_o as_o my_o own_o sin_n and_o pain_n which_o yet_o be_v never_o extreme_a have_v grieve_v i_o one_o day_n alas_o sir_n how_o light_a a_o thing_n be_v the_o contradiction_n or_o reproach_n of_o man_n who_o be_v speak_v and_o die_v almost_o at_o once_o §_o 15._o p._n 75._o as_o to_o my_o political_a aphorism_n i_o have_v oft_o tell_v you_o i_o wish_v they_o have_v never_o be_v write_v but_o all_o in_o they_o be_v not_o wrong_v which_o bishop_n be_v against_o the_o first_o passage_n challenge_v by_o your_o bishop_n morley_n be_v my_o calling_n a_o pretence_n to_o unlimited_a monarchy_n by_o the_o name_n of_o tyranny_n add_v my_o reason_n because_o they_o be_v limit_v by_o god_n who_o be_v over_o all_o minister_n be_v never_o under_o turk_n think_v worthy_a of_o punishment_n for_o such_o a_o assertion_n but_o bishop_n morley_n be_v no_o turk_n if_o monarch_n be_v not_o limit_v by_o god_n they_o may_v command_v all_o their_o subject_n to_o deny_v god_n or_o blaspheme_v he_o to_o take_v perjury_n murder_n and_o adultery_n for_o duty_n and_o they_o be_v unwise_a if_o ever_o they_o will_v be_v sick_a die_v or_o come_v to_o judgement_n §_o 16._o you_o say_v i_o be_v tell_v by_o a_o reverend_a prelate_n that_o at_o the_o conference_n at_o the_o savoy_n mr._n baxter_n be_v demand_v what_o will_v satisfy_v he_o reply_v all_o or_o nothing_o on_o this_o i_o reflect_v on_o what_o that_o give_v divine_a tell_v i_o ans_fw-fr alas_o good_a man_n if_o for_o all_o other_o your_o historical_a notice_n you_o be_v fall_v into_o such_o hand_n what_o a_o mass_n of_o untruth_n be_v in_o your_o brain_n but_o why_o will_v you_o dishonour_v reverend_a prelate_n so_o much_o as_o to_o father_n they_o on_o such_o i_o never_o hear_v the_o question_n put_v what_o will_v satisfy_v you_o nor_o any_o such_o answer_n as_o all_o or_o nothing_o when_o the_o king_n commission_v we_o to_o treat_v of_o such_o alteration_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o tender_a conscience_n the_o bishop_n 1._o will_v not_o treat_v till_o we_o will_v give_v they_o in_o write_v all_o that_o we_o blame_v in_o the_o liturgy_n and_o all_o the_o alteration_n we_o will_v have_v and_o all_o the_o additional_a form_n we_o desire_v 2._o when_o thus_o constrain_v we_o offer_v these_o on_o supposition_n that_o on_o debate_n much_o of_o it_o will_v be_v deny_v we_o or_o alter_v but_o they_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v we_o any_o debate_n on_o what_o we_o offer_v nor_o a_o word_n against_o our_o additional_a form_n reply_v or_o petition_n for_o peace_n 3._o to_o the_o last_o hour_n they_o maintain_v that_o no_o alteration_n at_o all_o be_v necessary_a to_o tender_a conscience_n and_o so_o they_o end_v and_o the_o convocation_n double_v and_o treble_v our_o burden_n and_o the_o bishop_n in_o parliament_n together_o once_o bishop_n cousin_n desire_v we_o to_o lay_v by_o inconvenience_n and_o name_n only_o what_o we_o take_v for_o downright_a sin_n i_o give_v he_o a_o